Ascendance of a Bookworm Part 5 Vol 5
Table of Contents
Apprentice Blues and the Orphanage Children
The Archduke Conference’s Starbinding
Work in the Underground Archive
Deeper into the Underground Archive
The Archduke Conference’s Dedication Ritual
A Comfy Life with My Family by You Shiina
Prologue
Streaming in through the window was the warm
spring sunlight, which made the plant life a more vivid green and the flowers a
vibrant array of colors. It was the perfect occasion for a casual stroll, but
the castle garden was empty of people; everyone was busy with the upcoming
Archduke Conference. Some cut direct paths through the garden to save time, but
none were taking in the scenery.
Bonifatius, like so many others, had no time
to appreciate the changing of the seasons. In fact, seeing the increasing
vibrancy of the garden made him feel worse—it was a painful reminder that they
had so little time before the Archduke Conference. He advanced to the tea party
room, taking care not to let his irritation show on his face.
He had told his attendants to arrange a
meeting with Sylvester—there was something they needed to discuss—and they had
eventually decided upon this lunchtime. It was clear how full the archduke’s
hands were from the fact that he was having his food brought to the break room
right next to his office.
“Ah, Rihyarda...”
Among those preparing lunch in the break room
was none other than Rihyarda. Only then did Bonifatius remember—she had
returned to being Sylvester’s attendant. She was an unusual retainer in that
she changed whom she served according to the aub’s orders. For the most part,
she tended to members of the archducal family who were in difficult positions
and struggling to get retainers of their own.
After being trained as an attendant by
Gretchen, an old member of the archducal family, Rihyarda had followed the
orders of the aub two generations ago and served Gabriele when she married in
from Ahrensbach, then Veronica when the Leisegangs were ostracizing her. She
had even been sent to Bonifatius’s estate by Sylvester’s father, Adelbert, the
previous archduke. Bonifatius had asked for his son, Karstedt, to be tutored
prior to his baptism, after which he would enter the castle as an archduke
candidate.
Then, after Karstedt was baptized, Veronica
had requested that Rihyarda be assigned to Georgine, who had needed a tutor
they could trust. Adelbert had accepted, and Rihyarda had become Georgine’s
head attendant. Later, when Sylvester was born, she had been made his nurse; as
a male, he had taken priority to become the next archduke.
Sometime later, Rihyarda had come to serve
Rozemyne as her head attendant. Sylvester had ordered it because Rozemyne was
raised in the temple and would therefore struggle to find retainers, but
Bonifatius had recently started to suspect that Sylvester had also wanted to
prevent Rozemyne from socializing with her family.
“Welcome,” Rihyarda said. “Lord Sylvester’s
work has taken him a bit longer than planned; he sent an ordonnanz just a
moment ago and should be here soon.” She guided Bonifatius to his seat, then
directed the other attendants to serve him.
“It’s his own fault, but Sylvester sure is
busy, huh?” Bonifatius remarked.
“Indeed. He has never had so much work to do
before. Do be gentle with him.”
“I’m not as soft as Ferdinand. An archduke
doing his own work is how things were always supposed to be.”
Because of the purge, Sylvester was operating
with fewer retainers than usual—but that was far from the only reason for his
enormous workload. In the castle, Wilfried and Bonifatius were able to help
with the duties that had previously been done by Ferdinand, but everything that
was rightfully the work of an archduke had been dropped squarely in Sylvester’s
lap.
“Still,” Rihyarda sighed, “I wish this hadn’t
happened so close to the Archduke Conference, when he’s already so busy with
his preparations...”
“You know, as the archduke, he could at least
lend a hand in training Wilfried to take his place. Now that Rozemyne has
outright refused to help the kid, she might even start dumping her work on
him.”
Bonifatius had supported all three
archdukes—his father, younger brother, and nephew. Sylvester had come to him
for help three years after becoming aub. He had wanted to push Veronica and her
retainers into retirement, which he had intended to do by relieving everyone above a certain age of their duties. In the end,
Bonifatius and Veronica had stepped down from their roles, though they had
continued to provide mana to the foundation.
Now, however, Bonifatius was anything but
retired. He was frequenting the training grounds, drilling the knights, and
helping with desk work—all to impress his adorable granddaughter and secure
more opportunities to spend time with her.
Bonifatius had originally had a second,
ulterior motive as well: if the Leisegangs had managed to establish Rozemyne as
Sylvester’s successor, then he could have spent so much more time with her
under the guise of training her to be the next archduchess. However, he had
given up on that idea after Rozemyne shot him down and said that she would
rather stay in the temple. Getting time with his granddaughter was no easy
feat.
“My, my...” Rihyarda said. “Training the next
archduke is your job, Lord Bonifatius. As I recall, that promise was the only
reason you managed to avoid taking the archducal seat yourself.”
“Some history is too ancient to discuss...”
Rihyarda cackled. “A promise is a promise, no
matter how long ago it was made.”
Bonifatius grimaced on instinct; he often
found it hard to deal with Rihyarda when she knew so much about his past. As
she had said, he had once made a promise to his father, who had served as the
archduke two generations ago. To avoid having to rule the duchy himself,
Bonifatius had agreed to become an educator of archduke candidates and transfer
his knowledge to the next generation. Adelbert had not been at all well, so he
had needed someone to teach his son in case he died prematurely.
“Give me a break,” Bonifatius grumbled. “I
should be enjoying my retirement, but I’ve been helping out in the castle
instead. I’ve even been educating Wilfried—which is more than I signed up for,
if you ask me. Adelbert was sickly and needed support;
Sylvester could easily manage by himself. I want to spend my time like any
other grandfather: relaxing and doting on my granddaughter.”
“How can you do that when you still don’t know
how to control your strength?”
Much to Bonifatius’s frustration, everyone
seemed to fear for Rozemyne’s life the very moment he got close to her. People
worked to keep them apart as much as possible.
I mean, I do feel bad about the time I got a bit
too excited and almost threw her into the ceiling, but...
After that experience, Bonifatius had
committed to memory that Rozemyne wasn’t like his other grandchildren, who were
always eager to train with him.
“You two seem to be having fun,” Sylvester
opined as he entered the room with his entourage. He asked Rihyarda and
Karstedt to stay—as his attendant and guard, respectively—then told his other
retainers to leave and eat lunch. They had an equally harsh afternoon to
prepare themselves for.
Together, Bonifatius’s attendant and Rihyarda
presented their lords with plates of decorated vegetables. They introduced the
dish as...
“Crispy-crispy launeide-and-sujaru salad”?
Bonifatius didn’t recognize the name at all.
Was it another new dish? Rozemyne’s chefs had
dramatically changed the castle’s menu. After waiting for Sylvester to take the
first bite, he tried what turned out to be a slightly sour vegetable.
Sylvester normally hates vegetables, but he’s
eating like there’s no tomorrow. My granddaughter’s recipes are the best in the
world.
Bonifatius chewed the bitter vegetables—which
young children famously despised—while silently praising Rozemyne. She had
prepared them in a way that stopped even Sylvester from complaining.
“So, what’s the issue?” Sylvester asked midway
through the meal, the picture of exhaustion. “Concerned about something?”
“About everything.”
Bonifatius knew that he was about to increase the already tiresome burden on
Sylvester, but only the archduke could resolve his grievances. “First of all,
you need to whip Wilfried into shape. If his attitude doesn’t change soon, I’m
going to wash my hands of him.”
Sylvester took a sharp breath, his eyes wide
open. Meanwhile, Rihyarda exclaimed, “Lord Bonifatius! Such words are not to be
spoken lightly!”
Bonifatius was in charge of preparing Wilfried
to become the next archduke; by refusing to help the boy any further, he would
essentially be declaring him unfit to rule. Bonifatius understood this
perfectly well.
“His attitude?” Sylvester repeated. “What do
you mean? He came to me with some complaints, but that was before Spring
Prayer. He even ended up coming around. Is there still a problem?”
“Have his retainers told you nothing?”
Bonifatius asked.
“They informed me that the Leisegang nobles
treated him cruelly and asked that I reprimand them. Of course, I requested
more details. I remember the Leisegangs as being rude but never particularly
cruel.”
Wilfried’s retainers had in fact spoken to the
archduke, but not about their lord’s work ethic. Instead, they had reported on
how the Leisegang nobles had treated him during Spring Prayer.
“He recklessly charged into the homes of one
Leisegang after another, including those who wish to use this purge to
eliminate all traces of the former Veronica faction,” Bonifatius explained. “A
giebe trying to contain those extremists could say that Wilfried was stirring
the pot, and they wouldn’t be wrong. Why did you let him go?”
“Florencia told me that, for him to gain more
self-awareness as the next archduke, he needs to experience the consequences of
his actions.”
A man’s decisions as the archduke could end up
having a dramatic impact on the duchy he ruled, so it was crucial that he
always be held accountable for them. That was why Wilfried needed more
experience before assuming the role himself. Gathering intelligence was
absolutely essential when it came to making the decision one considered to be
most correct; only after choosing which information was trustworthy and the
most accurate could one make an educated judgment.
Sylvester continued, “Spring Prayer is crucial
to Ehrenfest; the duchy’s harvest is greatly dependent on the chalices we hand
out. Plus, as with all such religious events, the onus falls on Rozemyne. As
much as the Leisegangs might hate Wilfried, they wouldn’t risk doing anything
to him. It was the perfect opportunity for him to experience their anger
firsthand, in a safe environment—and to understand it more intimately than if
we had merely explained the situation to him. It would also teach him the importance
of gathering information... or so Florencia said.”
“I see...” Bonifatius murmured, then crossed
his arms. Such experience really was important for the next archduke. “But, as
it turns out, this was too great a burden for Wilfried to bear. His work ethic
has gotten worse since his return from Spring Prayer. Even after five days of
warning him, his attitude has not improved.”
“A mere five days?!” Rihyarda cried. “Give him
more time; we all come up short every now and again. Surely this isn’t enough
for you to cast him aside.” She was quick to protest, but she hadn’t seen
Wilfried at work. “A mere five days” to her was “an excruciating five days” to
Bonifatius and the retainers.
“The problem is not that he failed. Rather,
he’s abandoning his duties as the next archduke and continuously flaunting his
defiance. I cannot even begin to describe the foolishness of exposing one’s
weaknesses to opposing nobles. Just how old is that buffoon?”
Wilfried was now approaching his fourth year
at the Royal Academy, yet he was acting in a way that would have earned a newly
baptized child a scolding. One had to wonder whether he was behaving so
immaturely around the nobles of other duchies, and it went without saying that
nobody would want to entrust Ehrenfest’s future to someone who acted so
emotionally.
“Everyone is busy enough preparing for the
upcoming Archduke Conference,” Bonifatius said. “If anyone should take the lead
right now, it should be those of the archducal family who enacted the purge in
the first place. Yet the next archduke is refusing to work and continues to be
defiant even when warned. I can’t imagine what—if anything—must be going
through his head. If nothing changes and everyone comes to despise him, then he
will have brought about his own undoing. Does he not understand the severity of
this?”
In the first place, Bonifatius was unable to
give Wilfried too strong a scolding when they were in public. Doing so would
risk making the boy look unfit to rule, which was dangerous when so many nobles
already wanted Rozemyne to take his place. No matter how many times he was
warned, however, Wilfried would only ever pout and say, “You’re only harsh with
me because you want Rozemyne to be the next aub.”
Indeed, it made sense that Wilfried was
reluctant to accept advice from someone who was supporting Rozemyne. For that
reason, Bonifatius had asked Lamprecht to give warnings in his stead. Five days
later, however, nothing had changed.
“Wilfried is proud to have stood among the
top-ranking archduke candidates as an honor student, but those good grades
won’t mean a thing unless he starts acting like a proper archduke,” Bonifatius
concluded.
“You know, Florencia was worried about the
same thing. She feared that his hard work was improving his grades and nothing
else...” Sylvester said, bringing his spoon to his mouth while he tried to
remember the conversation.
Bonifatius grimaced. It sounded as though
Sylvester wasn’t taking his wife’s opinion seriously. “It seems to me that
Wilfried isn’t the only one who needs to start listening more. Don’t tell me
you ignored a warning that important.”
“No, no, I didn’t ignore it. Her warning was
why I relieved Oswald of duty. He wasn’t giving Wilfried a proper education. It
was also why I’ve started listening to the boy’s complaints about how the purge
has impacted his life.”
Oswald was the embodiment of Veronica’s
methods, and it seemed that his manipulation tactics had only gotten worse
after Wilfried became engaged to Rozemyne and secured his position as the next
Aub Ehrenfest.
“Oswald took his work seriously and was
completely loyal to Wilfried,” Sylvester continued. “The problem was that he
expressed this loyalty and carried out his duties exactly as he did during
Mother’s era. He never realized that what had once been marks of excellence
were now marks of tyranny. Or, well... maybe he did and just couldn’t change
his ways. Perhaps he didn’t want to change them. At any rate, to honor his
loyalty, I gave him the option of resigning to save face.”
Bonifatius had been told that Oswald resigned
because of the purge, but now he knew the truth: the former head attendant had
been relieved of duty after failing to give Wilfried a proper education.
“I sincerely hope that giving Wilfried a new
head attendant improves things,” Bonifatius said, “but his retainers are all
too soft on him. Lamprecht even said to stop comparing him to Rozemyne.”
“It was milady herself who first made that
request...” Rihyarda said, referring to when everyone had worked together to
help Wilfried catch up in time for his debut. “She said that my boy would end
up crushed under the weight of the pressure.”
Bonifatius paused, thinking back to all the
times he had compared the two at work. “That’s news to me. Still, Rihyarda...
that was between his baptism and debut, wasn’t it? How long will it remain
relevant? At the Royal Academy, he’s going to be compared to Rozemyne whether
he likes it or not. Are his retainers really still treading on eggshells, even
now that he’s going into his fourth year?”
“Milady spoke as though it would always be
relevant, but I do not know how long it will actually stick. That said,
indeed—it will not apply when it comes to other nobles.”
Rozemyne’s request had only been feasible when
Wilfried was young and still receiving his education in the isolated northern
building. It was inevitable that he would be compared to other archduke
candidates at the Royal Academy, and people were guaranteed to focus on the
quality of his work while he helped out in the castle. On top of all that, when
he came of age, he would be compared to Ehrenfest’s other archduke candidates
for the sake of picking the next aub. That was just how it was.
“Sylvester,” Bonifatius said, “if your son
doesn’t intend to improve, then remove him from his position as the next
archduke.”
“I would disown Rozemyne in the same breath,”
Sylvester replied, narrowing his dark-green eyes.
Bonifatius sighed; he knew that Sylvester
wasn’t bluffing. During this conflict with the Leisegangs, he had discovered
the true reasons for Rozemyne’s adoption. She had been taken into the archducal
family to save her from the tyranny of an Ahrensbach archnoble who had
infiltrated the temple, to prevent Veronica from warping the lives of any more
victims, and so that Sylvester could use her printing industry to bring the
shaken duchy under one banner.
Even though Rozemyne had so many talents,
Sylvester had absolutely no intention of making a child who wasn’t Florencia’s
the next archduke. Bonifatius even recalled Sylvester telling him that, if
making his granddaughter the next aub was truly his aim, he should have become
the aub himself instead of running from his duty.
“How is Florencia?” Bonifatius asked, changing
the subject. He still didn’t believe that Wilfried was speaking or acting as
the next archduke should, but continuing his demands would get him nowhere.
Sylvester’s expression softened. “Her morning
sickness has settled down, but she can hardly relax knowing that our kids are
so busy. Even while she’s so unwell, she keeps trying to help with the
workload, which only makes her retainers worry.”
“Could she not leave the conference
preparations to the children and just perform final checks? Charlotte can more
or less take care of everything else. She’s motivated and a fast learner.”
Anytime Florencia was feeling especially sick,
Charlotte would go to the office where Bonifatius and the others worked to help
out and ask questions. On such occasions, it was obvious how hard she was
trying to support her mother. At other times, she would apparently help
Brunhilde with intraduchy communications and socializing.
“Charlotte’s working hard, while Brunhilde and
Clarissa are going above and beyond to prepare for the Archduke Conference,”
Sylvester said, looking relieved. “The silver lining in all this is that we’ll
be able to attend without Florencia needing to overexert herself.”
Bonifatius merely nodded in response, his
features drawn into a frown. He agreed that Brunhilde was a reliable helper—she
had said that she was used to this manner of work after preparing for the
Interduchy Tournament—and it was good that Florencia’s health was being taken
into consideration. However, Sylvester’s relief was exactly why he was blind to
the issue staring them all in the face.
“Brunhilde is now set to become your second
wife,” Bonifatius eventually said, “but the duchy’s nobles still see her as
Rozemyne’s retainer. That’s how they see Rihyarda too, for that matter. As for
Philine and Clarissa, they’re working under Leberecht. It seems to all that
Rozemyne is heavily involved in this upcoming Archduke Conference.”
“Well, they’re not wrong. She’s transcribing
books and performing a Starbind Ceremony at the royal family’s request.”
“That isn’t what I meant,” Bonifatius replied.
He thought that Sylvester sounded much too relaxed, and surely he wasn’t the
only one who found it so exasperating. “You don’t even have time to go to the
dining hall for lunch. Florencia is unable to rest, so Brunhilde and Charlotte
are doing their best to support her. Rozemyne’s retainers are working so hard
that everyone assumes she’s deeply involved with the Archduke Conference, even
though she isn’t even in the castle. Melchior has declared that he’ll take her
place in the temple. Everyone is proving themselves—everyone except Wilfried,
who seems content with grumbling about how he was treated during Spring Prayer
and shirking his duties in full view of so many others! I implore you, think
for one moment how the nobles visiting the office must see him!”
Sylvester fell silent. The visiting nobles
wouldn’t care about how the Leisegangs were treating Wilfried, nor would they
care how hurt he was feeling. Their only concern was whether he was acting like
and producing results expected of the next archduke.
“In the end, it falls to you to decide who
should serve as the next archduke,” Bonifatius said. “I don’t have anything
else to say about the matter, but know that I’m taking a break from educating
Wilfried. There’s no point rushing him when he cannot even complete the work he
has been given. My time is better spent on my own duties.”
“Alright. I’ll warn Wilfried myself.”
Wilfried was bound to acknowledge a warning
from his own father, the archduke—that was what Bonifatius believed, at least.
He relaxed a bit, relieved to have gotten one of his concerns through to
Sylvester, then looked down at the plate of meat that had been put before him.
He could tell from the browned skin that it was a bird of some kind, but he
couldn’t work out anything beyond that.
“This is crun-crun ju-ju farba, according to
Lady Rozemyne.”
“I see,” Bonifatius replied with a nod. He
knew what farbas were, but the “crun-crun ju-ju” part meant absolutely nothing
to him. At the very least, it seemed that the names Rozemyne came up with often
had repetitious onomatopoeia crammed into them. He had once asked whether they
had something to do with the ingredients or how they were cooked, but not even
the chefs knew. Rozemyne was naming her dishes in her own Rozemyne way.
Weird names aside, the recipes taste great, and
my granddaughter remains amazing.
“Sylvester, have you heard any... rumors about Rozemyne lately?” Bonifatius asked. “I came
across a few strange ones myself...”
“Strange rumors? Like what?” Sylvester
replied. He turned to look at Rihyarda, but neither she nor Karstedt seemed to
have any idea either.
“It would seem that those once of the former
Veronica faction are saying—albeit only amongst themselves—that Rozemyne is in
love with Ferdinand. They claim that she prioritizes him over her own fiancé,
and the two apparently made physical contact when they reunited on the night of
the Interduchy Tournament...”
Bonifatius hadn’t been present to witness
anything like that, but Sylvester and Rihyarda had. Surely they had noticed
something. His anticipation soon faded, however, as the two merely blinked in
bewilderment.
“On the night of the Interduchy
Tournament...?” Sylvester asked. “I don’t know about that... You were with her,
right, Rihyarda? Did you see anything?”
“I was with milady the entire day but saw
nothing to warrant rumors. Rest assured, I would have reported any such
behavior. At most... there was the medical inspection. He did technically touch
her then, but only as part of a standard procedure to check on her poor
health.” She frowned and placed a hand on her cheek. “Was it Oswald who began
that rumor? He certainly has a malicious interpretation of events.”
Bonifatius blinked, surprised that she had
made such a quick deduction. “What makes you so sure it was him?”
“By the time it happened, Lord Sylvester and
the other student retainers had already moved to the dining hall to eat. The
only ones present were Lady Rozemyne, my boy Ferdinand, our other guests, and
the attendants serving their meals—Oswald and me.”
Everyone understood right away. Rozemyne or
Ferdinand certainly wouldn’t have spread such a rumor, and that it was being
circulated through the former Veronica faction meant it could only have come
from Oswald or Wilfried.
“Yes, Oswald was most likely involved,”
Bonifatius said. “We shouldn’t jump to any conclusions, however. It’s possible
that another noble happened to hear Rozemyne rejoicing about her reunion with
Ferdinand, exaggerated the details, and then spread some deceptive rumor.” A
single malicious actor could turn even the most heartwarming news into
something corrupt. And with that in mind, the rumor could have come from one of
Rozemyne’s retainers making an innocuous comment.
Sylvester looked contemplative. “Bonifatius,
where’s that rumor spreading from? Not the source, but the people helping it
circulate. Is it really only about the night of the Interduchy Tournament?”
Bonifatius had already tried to investigate
the matter, to no avail; the Leisegangs were too busy despairing about
Rozemyne’s refusal to be the next aub and her decision to stay in the temple to
be of any use, while the nobles of the former Veronica faction were avoiding
Bonifatius and his retainers for fear of punishment. Despite his best efforts,
nobody had seemed to know anything.
“To be frank, I don’t know either,” Bonifatius
said. “The most I can contribute is that, when I tried to warn Wilfried about
all this, he said that Rozemyne was to blame for inspiring the rumor in the
first place.”
“What?” Sylvester put his head in his hands.
“You mean to say that Wilfried is substantiating the
rumor instead of denying it? That can’t be right. He can’t be that thoughtless.
Karstedt, we’re going to look into this ourselves.”
From there, Bonifatius could extrapolate that
the rumors were indeed only spreading among Wilfried and those of the former
Veronica faction.
“Let’s assume for a moment that Oswald was responsible,” Bonifatius ventured. “Was it revenge for
being relieved of duty?”
Rihyarda shook her head. “As I see it, Oswald always has Wilfried as his top priority. It appears more
likely that he was only damaging milady’s reputation to protect his lord.” She
believed that he had tried to drag down Rozemyne to divert negative attention
away from Wilfried. All those present recognized it as a method that Veronica
had employed often.
“That’s one troublesome kind of devotion...”
Sylvester muttered, his face twisting in displeasure. Rihyarda nodded in
agreement, then suddenly looked worried.
“However... Lady Rozemyne has
grown quite considerably. Coupled with the fact that Lord Ferdinand is no
longer in Ehrenfest, I think the time has come for her to reevaluate her
relationship with him. A few words of advice might be in order.”
Rozemyne had spent so long looking more or
less like a child, but now she actually looked old enough to be attending the
Royal Academy. This was advantageous in many regards, but a lot of things that
had once been permitted due to her young appearance were now no longer
acceptable. She could no longer be afforded the same leeway.
Let’s just hope Rozemyne doesn’t end up like
Georgine.
Bonifatius crossed his arms as he reflected on
the past. Veronica had been nothing but ruthless when raising Georgine, all to
ensure that Karstedt—a Leisegang—would never become the aub. The only person
who had ever treated Georgine nicely and given her any respite was her uncle,
Bezewanst. He had served as the High Bishop back then, which had caused
problems when it came time for Georgine to attend the Royal Academy. As a
noble, she hadn’t been allowed to have any connections to the temple, so she
had immediately been forbidden from contacting him. This development hadn’t
come as a surprise to anyone, but Georgine had been devastated
nonetheless—something she had made painfully clear.
Bonifatius had wanted to extend a helping hand
to his niece, but his first wife’s relationship with Veronica hadn’t been the
slightest bit positive. Plus, with Georgine viewing Karstedt as an enemy, there
hadn’t been anything he could do to get closer to her.
This time, however, I’ll do the right thing. I’ll
shower Rozemyne with all the love I’ve got!
Indeed, he would shower her with support to
help her through the emotional torment of needing to take a step back from
Ferdinand. But as Bonifatius was pondering how best to go about that, Sylvester
spoke up.
“If people really are spreading those rumors,
we’ll need to stamp them out. Bonifatius, have you taken action yet?”
“No matter what we do, we’re going to have a
hard time putting out these fires without Rozemyne here. We would have noticed
them sooner if she had been at the castle, and we would have responded faster
too.”
Rozemyne’s retainers would have been quick to
notice any strange rumors about their lady. Moreover, if she had been spending
time with Wilfried in the castle, anyone trying to argue that she was closer to
Ferdinand wouldn’t have had much of a leg to stand on. As for Bonifatius
himself, although the temple’s reputation was improving with all the
countrywide changes, he was still reluctant about leaving his adorable
granddaughter there.
“Everybody knows Rozemyne for her brilliance
and charm, so why keep drawing attention to the blemish that is her temple
upbringing?” Bonifatius asked. “She would have done herself a lot more favors
by leaving the temple to someone else and gathering support from the nobility.”
“I thought the same,” Rihyarda interjected,
“but milady really does treasure her time in the temple. One should compare it
to how apprentice knights staying in the knight dormitories are allowed to
return home at regular intervals.” She had started serving Rozemyne right after
the girl was baptized, so if she said that Rozemyne valued her time in the
temple, Bonifatius saw no reason to doubt her.
“Still, it’s because she was raised in the
temple that she needs to be taught how to be a proper first wife,” he said, the
Leisegangs’ complaints coming to mind. “She should be socializing, not hiding
away in the temple.”
As far as the Leisegangs were concerned, their
princess was being very uncooperative. Things had settled down a bit after
Brunhilde’s engagement was announced, but many houses still wanted Rozemyne out
of the temple, and their cooperation would be crucial moving forward.
“Overseeing duchy industries is a job for aubs
and scholars,” Bonifatius declared. “You need to take charge of the printing
industry with Wilfried at your side while Florencia teaches Rozemyne how to be
a first wife. That’s final.”
Sylvester yelped. “If my workload gets any
more unbearable, I’ll seriously die!”
“You’re a professional when it comes to
shirking duties; I’m sure you’ll discover a way to get some rest.”
Rihyarda and Karstedt both grinned, looking
equal parts amused and in agreement.
Upon seeing his retainers’ smiles, Sylvester
let out a displeased groan. He took another bite of meat, then scanned the room
as he chewed. “I understand your point, Bonifatius, but it’s too late to tell
Rozemyne to come back from the temple. Her leaving now would only cause more
problems.”
“You’d need to do more work, sure, but would
it really affect much else?”
The temple wasn’t of much importance to
Bonifatius; it was merely where people with desires too crude to mention in
public went to have their needs met. Although it had changed somewhat over the
past few years, it still wasn’t a good place for someone as young as Rozemyne
to be staying.
“It would affect our religious ceremonies,
which would directly impact the duchy’s harvest,” Sylvester replied. “Consider
also that our meetings with the merchants take place in the lower city—and
nobody can deny that our business with other duchies has only been going so
well thanks to the commoners’ input. Above all else, don’t forget about those
children of the former Veronica faction staying in the temple; who will keep a
close eye on them if not Rozemyne’s retainers?”
“Ngh...”
He was right; they had spared the children of
those criminals from execution, but the archducal family still needed to watch
them closely. Rozemyne was compassionate to a fault when it came to kids, but
Hartmut and her other retainers would remain vigilant.
“Speaking of which—her retainers are a problem
too,” Bonifatius said.
“You’re going to complain about them as well
as Wilfried...?” Sylvester asked, taken aback. Rihyarda and Karstedt looked
equally surprised, but Bonifatius was more amazed that they hadn’t noticed the
issue themselves.
“Her retainers aren’t even trying to encourage
her to perform normal socializing. In fact, they seem to be purposefully
avoiding it. This behavior is sullying her good name among the Leisegangs, her
power base. Something must be done.”
Bonifatius had already tried to warn
Cornelius, but the boy had merely replied that the old methods weren’t
applicable to Rozemyne. He had said that speeding along the generational shift
and preparing to socialize like the top-ranking duchies took priority instead.
“I take no issue with this generational
shift,” Bonifatius continued, “but a future first wife absolutely needs to know
how to perform traditional socializing. This new form to appease the
top-ranking duchies can come later, once she knows Ehrenfest’s own ways.”
Indeed, socializing with the top-ranking
duchies would most likely require a new approach, but Ehrenfest nobles would
only respond to more traditional methods. They would serve as her foundations
and stop the earth from giving out beneath her feet.
Still, Bonifatius persisted. “Rozemyne refuses
to socialize here in Ehrenfest because she claims to be too busy with temple
work, but her retainers have done nothing to remedy this. How can a first wife
not know proper socializing? You should appreciate better than anyone the fate
of an archducal family that no longer understands its people.”
Bonifatius couldn’t see a future where
Rozemyne’s shortcoming wouldn’t cause her problems. He knew that being open to
new methods was important, but how would she convince the other nobles to try
them if she couldn’t properly communicate with them?
“That won’t ever be feasible for Rozemyne...”
Sylvester said. “She was raised in the temple. And, after she was baptized, she
received an education from Ferdinand, not the Leisegangs.”
Ferdinand, too, had endured a particularly
unique upbringing. His mother had passed away before his baptism, so he had
entered the castle as an archducal family member without a support base to
speak of. He had been ostracized by Veronica, the first wife at the time;
raised without a chance to properly interact with other Ehrenfest nobles; and
relegated to the temple after his father’s death. One could hardly describe him
as an expert on socializing.
“Milady works hard in her own way,” Rihyarda
interjected while setting a plate in front of Sylvester, “but there is much
that she only understands on a surface level. She is by no means progressing as
everybody hoped. My boy Wilfried is guilty of a similar cycle of errors;
although he can mimic things, he seldom fundamentally understands them.”
“You would install an archducal couple
incapable of proper socializing?” Bonifatius asked. “I fear for Ehrenfest’s
future.”
“Brunhilde is going to support them as my
second wife,” Sylvester replied. “Rozemyne’s true strength comes from the fact
that she surrounds herself with people who make up for what she lacks.”
Rozemyne had very few adult retainers in her
service, but her underage retainers were so well trained that it barely even
mattered. Making up her retinue were Hartmut, who had been taught how to gather
information by Ferdinand and Justus; her apprentice scholars, who were capable
of negotiating with commoners; her guard knights, who had overcome their faults
and gotten stronger; and her attendants, who could bring even top-ranking
duchies to the negotiating table.
“Rozemyne is good at raising people,”
Sylvester concluded. “Even I covet her retainers.”
Bonifatius paused in reflection. Damuel was a
layknight, but he was gradually securing more mana through compression and was
an expert at using it precisely. Judithe had been advised to prioritize her aim
over her sword arm, and the rate at which she was progressing suggested that
she had taken those words to heart. Angelica wasn’t the most thoughtful, but
she loyally followed her orders and boasted lightning-fast reflexes. Leonore
had a good memory and excellent leadership skills, which she put to use as a
budding commander. And as for Cornelius, while he didn’t have any notable
strengths, he didn’t have any weaknesses either, meaning he could easily fight
alongside anyone.
These retainers had a common thread running
through them: Rozemyne had advised them all and gotten them on the right path.
“I’m worried about her name-sworn retainers,”
Bonifatius clarified, “but Rozemyne should be able to control them.”
“Right. They definitely could grow into
problems.”
Bonifatius recalled when he and the children
had investigated the estates of those name-sworn to Georgine. He had noticed
then that those who had used name-swearing to avoid punishment by association
had varying opinions about their position and contrasting degrees of
appreciation for the archducal family.
“Not to mention,” Bonifatius said, “those old
enough to remember when Veronica forced others to give their names came to view
Rozemyne with the same fear and unease, even though she was saving their
lives.”
“I don’t see why...” Sylvester said, looking
annoyed as he started on his dessert. “I’m the one who suggested it.”
Bonifatius tried the dessert as well. It had
an unusual yet intriguing mouthfeel, meaning it had no doubt come from his
granddaughter—and that thought was precisely the issue. “These days, everyone
assumes that anything bizarre and original must have come from Rozemyne. Rumor
has it that you were simply acting in support of an idea she came up with. And,
since you dismiss your retainers when making such important decisions, nobody
can confirm otherwise.”
“Well,” Sylvester murmured, “I suppose I came
up with the idea after Rozemyne suggested that we
spare Viscount Dahldolf’s life in return for his name...”
“Oh...?”
Ferdinand had been instructing the Knight’s
Order and doing some work in the shadows, but Bonifatius hadn’t known the
details. By the time he had even noticed, it had all been over, and the entire
event had been covered up.
So it did come from Rozemyne...
“Name-swearing is not something to be forced
on others,” Bonifatius noted. “The problem here is that some nobles now believe
Rozemyne disregarded its true meaning as an expression of voluntary loyalty.
Nobles who were around to witness Veronica’s distorted version of name-swearing
even fear that the unfortunate tradition might rise again.”
Unbeknownst to the archduke, Gabriele,
Veronica, and Georgine had together spent three generations demanding names as
proof of obedience. Under normal circumstances, names were offered willingly
and as a show of absolute respect; they weren’t some commodity to be traded in
exchange for one’s life. Bonifatius had to wonder whether Rozemyne knew that
her suggestion had twisted the intended meaning of such a noble gesture. At
this rate, she was going to receive the same criticisms and reproach as
Veronica and Georgine.
“It isn’t always the case that wild new ideas
are ultimately accepted,” Bonifatius remarked. “We must advise Rozemyne to
spend time as a regular noble and take steps to ensure that people don’t fear
her.”
“I understand your point, but our current
situation would be much worse if not for Rozemyne’s input,” Sylvester rebutted.
“Her original ideas have saved us more times than I can count. I’m not going to
make her stop completely. Instead, I’ll just take responsibility for her
actions, whatever the consequences might be. Another bad rumor or two about me
won’t change a thing.” Again, he was speaking as though it were no big deal.
Bonifatius was overcome with a flash of
irritation as he said, “Ehrenfest certainly won’t benefit from more crass
hearsay about its archduke.” Would the considerate Rozemyne really be okay with
her ideas damaging Sylvester’s reputation and forcing him to take the blame for
any bad outcomes? He doubted it.
How much does she even know about all this?
Was Rozemyne being kept in the dark by her
retainers just as Wilfried was by his? Did she need advice from a third party?
Bonifatius crossed his arms, trying to imagine what fate would befall his
granddaughter if she remained unable to socialize with even her family.
Apprentice Blues and the Orphanage Children
By the time Spring Prayer was completely over,
it was midway through the season. The bitter weather had given way to vibrant
greenery that seemed to thrive more by the day.
Amid the dazzling sunshine, carriages from the
castle arrived at the temple’s front gates. Their doors opened, and the
children soon to be blue-robes gracefully alighted. Gone was the anxiety they
had shown during their tour; instead, they were overflowing with vigor as they
climbed the temple steps.
As an archducal family member, Melchior had
come by highbeast rather than by carriage like the others. I welcomed them all
as the High Bishop; henceforth, they would be living here at the temple.
“Right,” I said, “let us go to the High
Bishop’s chambers and perform the fealty ceremony.”
To become a blue-robe, one first needed to
perform a rite wherein one would vow to serve the gods. It brought to mind
memories of when I’d performed it myself, only this time I would be leading the
prayers.
After swallowing my nerves and carrying out
the fealty ceremony, I started giving the children their robes. Hopefully they
would work hard and grow as people.
“Now, allow me to explain life in the temple.”
Everyone would eat breakfast at second bell,
then go to the High Priest’s chambers with their attendants to receive work and
instructions from Hartmut or his attendants. That was also when they would
report on the day before and detail the progress they had made. From there,
they would work in their chambers and study religious ceremonies until third
bell, when they would move to the orphanage to study noble matters such as
written lessons and the harspiel under Wilma’s and Rosina’s tutelage.
Fourth bell was lunch, then the children would
generally be allowed to spend the afternoon as they pleased. They could train;
go to the workshop to help out or speak with merchants; transcribe books; study
to be a knight, scholar, or whatever they wanted to be when they were older;
study the printing and paper-making industries; and so on. They could even go
to the castle, as long as they got permission first.
“Sixth bell marks dinnertime,” I said. “This
is probably earlier than you are used to, but those in the orphanage would need
to wait even longer if we took our meals any later. As for when you go to bed,
however, that is up to you. Are there any questions?”
One boy raised his hand. “Are the children in
the orphanage following the same schedule?”
“Not exactly. They must clean the temple,
gather in the forest, work in the orphanage, and perform other such duties.
That said, you will get to spend time with them during evenings when your work
has been completed, and on rainy days.”
The coming of spring meant the orphans would
be going outside more, which also meant they wouldn’t have as much time to
study. I intended to have their work called early on some days so that they
would at least have some evenings for studying, but everyone in the orphanage
needed to be treated equally—hence why the blue-robes would receive time off as
well. No matter whether they were nobles, commoners, or the children of
criminals, they would each receive as much work—and as much food—as the others.
“Can we go to the forest too?” Nikolaus asked,
a hopeful glint in his eye.
I shook my head and plainly replied,
“Blue-robes are not allowed to go to the forest, I am afraid.” If we allowed
the children of nobles to go and something happened to them, the blame would
swiftly fall on the commoners—specifically Gil, Lutz, the eldest resident of
the orphanage, and the guards who had allowed them to pass. I wasn’t going to
take any chances.
“Now, head to your rooms with your respective
attendants and get changed,” I said. “The children in the orphanage are waiting
for you, so please make the most of this opportunity to spend time with them.”
To help the blue-robes ease into their new
lives at the temple, they hadn’t been assigned any work today. Well, they would
need to tour the temple’s facilities after lunch, but that was about it. I’d
also wanted to spend a while introducing the Rozemyne Workshop’s books, which
were stored in the temple’s book room as well as in the orphanage, but everyone
else had rejected that idea.
They said that my impassioned recommendations
would make the children less likely to read the
books. Is that mean or what?
“Rozemyne, will you be going to the orphanage
too?” Melchior asked, blue robes in hand.
I nodded in response; I wanted to hear the
children’s thoughts about spring life, since it meant leaving the orphanage
more often.
“Shall we go together, then? There is
something I wish to report as well.”
Melchior then went to get changed. In the
meantime, I asked Hartmut how work in the temple was progressing. Frietack had
done his very best over Spring Prayer, but we still weren’t up to date.
“Losing those blue priests has had a much
greater impact than I expected,” I said.
“But we now have new apprentice blue-robes and
can pile work onto their attendants,” Hartmut replied with a beaming smile. “It
was losing Lord Ferdinand that wounded us the most. Oh, have the specifics of
the Archduke Conference’s Starbind Ceremony been decided yet?”
“It seems that the Sovereign temple will
prepare the divine instruments, offerings, and such. I will merely be holding
our bible and wearing my ceremonial robes.”
Each bible needed to be registered with its
owner’s mana, so you couldn’t just borrow one from somebody else. Even if the
Sovereign High Bishop had given me permission to use his, there wouldn’t have
been much of a point; so much of the text was invisible, it wouldn’t be of any
use.
“Do not forget your most important helper,
Lady Rozemyne. I will be attending as High Priest to support you.”
“I did not forget you, Hartmut; I simply knew
that you would come along no matter what I or anyone else said.” After seeing
him force his way into the Royal Academy’s ceremonies, I couldn’t imagine a
reality where he stayed in Ehrenfest and patiently awaited my return.
Next, I turned to my knights. “Speaking of the
ceremony—the royal family has permitted me to bring some guards, but they must be dressed as blue priests or shrine maidens. I would
like my adult knights to accompany me, but are you all willing?”
“Absolutely,” Angelica replied without missing
a beat. “I am your guard knight, after all.”
Cornelius and Damuel agreed as well; they had
already worn robes for the Dedication Ritual. Leonore nodded too.
“Furthermore,” I continued, “at the royal
family’s instruction, I am to spend the rest of the Archduke Conference hidden
in the library’s underground archive. I will need guards and attendants there
as well, but only archnobles can enter. Cornelius, Leonore, I intend to ask you
both to guard me, but Ottilie is my only choice for attendants. Would it be
wise of me to give her this duty? I am particularly concerned about Clarissa.”
Clarissa was due to attend the Archduke
Conference, where she would play a key role in our negotiations with
Dunkelfelger. We naturally wanted Ottilie to keep an eye on her, but that
wouldn’t be possible if she was accompanying me to the underground archive. It
was a potentially dangerous situation, indeed.
“My mother is your retainer,” Hartmut said.
“It is only natural that she should join you. My father is going to be there as
well, and Clarissa would never do anything to bother you. Well, probably not.”
You had me in the first half... but what was that
last part, Hartmut?!
As unease washed over me, Leonore smiled and
said, “Fear not, Lady Rozemyne. Lieseleta may not be able to enter the archive,
but she can take care of everything else, from
preparing tea to managing your chambers. In my opinion, it would be best for
Ottilie to join you.”
At times like this, when I needed to leave the
temple and carry myself as a proper noble, Rihyarda’s absence became all the
more painful. That said, the archducal couple had it a lot worse; they wouldn’t
get to hide away in an underground archive.
I sighed. “If only Damuel could read through
the old documents with me...”
“From the very bottom of my heart, I am glad that I cannot enter an archive for royals and archduke
candidates,” Damuel interjected, trembling. “I would die of stress.”
If entering an archive was too much for him,
was he really okay with attending the two royals’ Starbinding? He would need to
don blue robes and stand atop the shrine in front of every single archducal
couple in Yurgenschmidt. The answer was probably no, but I decided not to say
anything. Giving him a way out would leave me with one fewer guard on the day.
Well, I’m sure he’ll survive. Good luck, Damuel.
“Because I’m underage, I wasn’t able to help
with Spring Prayer,” Philine muttered, overcome with disappointment. “I won’t
be able to attend the Archduke Conference for the same reason. No matter what I
do, I can’t be of any use to you...”
“That isn’t true,” Damuel said, trying to
cheer her up. “We need people to look after the temple while Hartmut and Lady
Rozemyne are away. You’re a huge help to all of us.”
“I’m glad to hear you say that,” Philine
replied, her cheeks blushing crimson as she smiled up at him. Was she...
beaming? She seemed positively radiant.
W-Wait, what? She practically has hearts in her
eyes! Doesn’t she like Roderick? I’m pretty sure Damuel said she likes
Roderick!
As I stared at them in confusion, Melchior
reentered the room, having finished changing. I would have liked to leave
Hartmut here in his chambers so that he could continue with his work, but he
insisted on coming with us to the orphanage; after witnessing me break and
reform my feystone for the children, he was convinced that I might once again
do something extraordinary out of the blue. I tried to explain that nothing was
going to happen, but he refused to believe me. I couldn’t understand why.
I started toward the orphanage with Melchior,
walking at his slow pace. He told me that his reports about Spring Prayer had
surprised Sylvester and that he had been praised for passing on the soldiers’
messages.
“Right now, I’m memorizing the prayers you
taught me so that I can join in with the Harvest Festival.”
Everyone in the castle was up to their eyes in
work, but there wasn’t anything that Melchior could do to help out. This had
made him feel useless and isolated, which had made him want to come to the
temple as soon as possible.
“By the way, did you get a report too?” he
asked.
“About what?”
“The silver cloth they found in the former
Giebe Gerlach’s estate.”
Laurenz and Matthias had assisted with that
investigation, but they hadn’t yet reported their findings to me. They were on
duty tomorrow, and my intention was for us to discuss the matter then.
“Lord Bonifatius said that it was strange,”
Melchior continued, “so the scholars examined it. Turns out he was right. Um...
I didn’t really understand why, though. I thought you might be able to explain
it better.”
Yeah... The most I know is that it was weird.
There isn’t much more I can say.
I promised to give him a better explanation
once I was abreast of the situation myself, and it was then that we reached the
orphanage. Inside, we could see children in blue robes playing with the
orphans.
“Melchior,” I said, “please go play with the
others. I need to speak with Wilma.”
“Okay.”
I watched as Melchior mingled with the other
children, then asked Wilma about the recent state of the orphanage. She shot a
worried glance toward the stairs before she answered.
“Some of the children have lost motivation
since the others left.”
The children growing up without magic tools of
their own were having to expend their mana using the tools in their families’
estates. Most had assumed that only the heir of each house would receive a tool
and be treated as a noble but, because everyone was gathered in the orphanage,
they had soon realized the truth: some houses gave magic tools to the younger
siblings as well.
“They had stayed strong by telling themselves
that their families still needed them,” she continued, “but when nobody came,
they lost the will to work hard.”
The disheartened children boasted more mana
and status than the laynoble children who had been taken back, but they didn’t
have magic tools. On top of that, they were no longer needed by their parents;
even if they returned home, they would simply be made into servants and spend
their time fueling their houses’ magic tools. Working hard in the orphanage
wouldn’t magically turn them into nobles, so they were now wasting each day
with their heads in the clouds.
“Hartmut,” I said, “even if the children were
given their magic tools now, it would still be too late for them, right?”
Konrad had needed to give up on becoming a noble after losing his.
“Not necessarily. It would depend on their
mana quantities and the number of rejuvenation potions they had access to. That
said, forcibly rejuvenating one’s mana and trying to force it all into a magic
tool will place a tremendous burden on one’s body, and the combined cost of the
magic tool and the rejuvenation potions will not be cheap. It was by this means
that the apprentice blue priests were returned to noble society after the civil
war.”
Of course, those apprentice blue priests had
needed some financial support from their family to be able to afford the
method. I had been on the verge of giving up, but I at least wanted to try
Hartmut’s suggestion.
“However,” he continued, looking down at me,
“I cannot allow you to shoulder the burden of preparing magic tools and
rejuvenation potions for every child in the orphanage. You will only be High
Bishop for three more years; we cannot continue to support abandoned children
in that fashion once you are gone, and it would violate the orphanage’s code of
equality. Not to mention, what would drive you to go to such lengths for the
sake of children from the former Veronica faction? If you stick your neck out for
them, expect to be swarmed by families who believe their children deserve magic
tools as well. Under no circumstances can you put orphans as your highest
priority.”
I clapped my hands together in realization.
“Well, consider it from another angle: I am going out of my way to save not
just those of the former Veronica faction but all of the children under my
jurisdiction in the orphanage. It does not matter what faction they are from,
nor whether they are nobles or commoners with the Devouring—I will assist them
all, preserving the orphanage’s code of equality.”
“Lady Rozemyne...” Hartmut said, his eyes
wide. Then he shrugged. “We cannot come to a decision ourselves; the aub must
choose whether to execute your idea. Perhaps you could invite him to reobtain
his divine protections.”
Divine Protections All Around
“Sylvester. Grandfather. I’m glad to see you
both.”
I had told Sylvester that I wanted to discuss
something when he came for the ritual, and he had arrived with Bonifatius in
tow. The latter’s distaste for the temple must have diminished since his
previous visit.
Melchior and I guided our two visitors and
their retainers to the High Bishop’s chambers, then gave them tea and sweets
while asking about the castle. I had already received a report from Philine and
Clarissa in my library, and my other retainers had given me information too,
but it was important to hear things from a variety of perspectives.
Everyone in Sylvester’s sphere was fully
dedicated to preparing for the Archduke Conference. He mentioned that I should
praise Clarissa in particular, since she was working especially hard to get
Ehrenfest ready for its negotiations with Dunkelfelger.
“Naturally, we can’t give her full access to
everything when she’s only recently come of age and hasn’t even married into
Ehrenfest yet,” Sylvester said. “Leberecht is limiting what information she’s
given, and she’ll only be attending our discussion with Dunkelfelger. Still,
her passion and attention to detail are inspiring everyone around her.”
Clarissa was approaching her work with almost
obsessive fervor. I wanted to believe she was trying to make up for how much
trouble she had caused us all, but Hartmut had revealed that she was actually
just desperate to keep her place in the Archduke Conference group, since it was
the only way she would get to see me perform the Starbind Ceremony.
Well, better than not being motivated to work, I
guess?
“Together with some of the scholars, the
Knight’s Order has been investigating the silver cloth found at the former
Giebe Gerlach’s estate,” Bonifatius said. “Laurenz and Matthias have given you
an overview, I assume?”
I nodded. He was referring to the same silver
cloth that Melchior had mentioned. When they first came to serve in the temple,
Laurenz and Matthias had said that the cloth rejected any kind of mana, but
they had told me little else; Bonifatius had apparently coerced them into
silence so that he could report to me himself. In the words of my two
apprentice knights, he had wanted me to invite him here to ask about the cloth.
His bias against the temple was less extreme than before, but he still wasn’t
willing to come without a good reason or an invitation.
“Melchior told me first,” I replied, “then I
received a report from Laurenz and Matthias the next day. I still don’t quite
understand what the cloth is, though. I’ve been looking forward to hearing a
proper explanation from you, Grandfather.”
Bonifatius grinned. “We learned something new
just yesterday. Sylvester’s already been told, so we can discuss it while he’s
performing his ritual.” He turned to Sylvester and started shooing him away.
“Go on, then. Knowing what your memory’s like, it won’t be long before you
start forgetting the gods’ names again.”
To his credit, Sylvester didn’t get mad at
all. “Desperate for some alone time with your granddaughter, huh?” he asked
Bonifatius, returning a grin of his own as he stood up. “Ferdinand once said
that a discussion with Rozemyne can boggle the mind, so yeah, I’ll do my ritual
first. Lead the way.”
“Allow me, Father,” Melchior declared,
standing up in his blue robes. “I deliberately learned the way to the chapel
and prepared the offerings so that I could assist you.” Then, overflowing with
motivation, he marched toward the door with his retainers.
Sylvester followed after him and said, “Tell
me about the other kids. We can’t really discuss them in the castle, can we?”
I turned to Bonifatius, so eager for his
report that I was leaning forward despite myself. “Now then—do tell me about
this silver cloth. Laurenz and Matthias told me only that it contained no mana
at all; they said that I should ask you for any further details.”
“Well, this is the
cloth in question,” Bonifatius said, and pulled it out for me to see. I asked
for his permission to take it, then examined it closely.
The silver cloth was about as large as the
palm of my hand. One side was smooth, while the other was frayed and uneven,
indicating that it was torn. Otherwise, it appeared to be a normal piece of
cloth. I didn’t understand what was so strange about it.
“There’s nothing unusual about it not
containing any mana, is there?” I asked. “Most of the clothes worn by commoners
are made with such cloth. Even the mana-dyed kind that we nobles use slowly
loses its mana over time.”
“The cloth you’re holding hasn’t simply been
drained of mana, nor is its mana capacity too low for us to sense. Under such
circumstances, it would have been possible to channel more mana into it or
improve its capacity. Rather, that cloth contains absolutely no mana at all,
and none can be poured into it.”
According to the scholars, the cloth had been
made exclusively from manaless materials, using a process that likewise didn’t
require any mana.
“Materials that don’t contain any mana...?” I asked. “This is my first time hearing of
such a thing.”
Yurgenschmidt was enriched first with the mana
of the Zent, then with the mana of the aubs and giebes across its many
territories. In other words, everything contained at least some
mana. One could make leather that didn’t conduct it, using materials from
feybeasts or feyplants that were resistant to or reflected mana, but that was
about it; the materials themselves still contained mana.
“The silver cloth found in Gerlach’s summer
estate was deliberately torn,” Bonifatius said. “How strange that he would go
to the effort when he was trying to escape and already short on time.”
“Perhaps he was in a rush,” I ventured. I’d
assumed that he had gotten it caught in a door during his rush to leave the
estate, but the looks on my knights’ faces implied that none of them agreed
with me.
“In a situation where one’s cape gets caught
in a door or the like, it would make much more sense to cut it with messer,”
Cornelius explained. “Knights are taught to morph their schtappes as quickly as
possible, and a weak scholar would surely choose a spell over brute strength.”
Tearing the cloth by hand wouldn’t have been
appropriate behavior for a proper noble, and it would have wasted too much time
during a last-minute escape. That was why it had caught Bonifatius’s attention.
In a situation like that, my commoner instincts
would have kicked in for sure. Using my schtappe wouldn’t even have occurred to
me.
“In that case, why was the cloth torn?” I
asked.
“Remember how I said that it doesn’t interact
with mana?” Bonifatius replied. “It cannot be cut with a schtappe-formed
weapon.” He then signaled to his retainer and said, “Prepare the stand.”
At once, the retainer placed the silver cloth
atop some boards stacked on the table. Bonifatius used messer to morph his
schtappe into a knife, which he then brought down on the cloth with unstoppable
force. There was a booming crash as the boards
shattered... but the cloth atop it hadn’t even been pierced. It had done
nothing to cushion the impact, but mana couldn’t pass through it at all.
“You can see now why he tore it,” Bonifatius
concluded. “From there, the most troubling part of the cloth was its ability to
pass through the border barrier.”
“Excuse me?”
“The aub cannot detect the passing of small
amounts of mana, such as that of commoners. You remember this, I expect. It
follows, then, that a cloth through which mana cannot pass at all would not be
detected either.”
Curious, Bonifatius had decided to experiment.
He had asked Sylvester to form a small, simple barrier, through which he had
poked a finger wrapped in the silver cloth. Sylvester hadn’t been able to
detect it at all.
“So... the former Giebe Gerlach could easily
have escaped the duchy?” I asked.
“Exactly. We believe he used this cloth to
pass through the barrier. Questions remain, however. How did he get from the
Noble’s Quarter to Gerlach, and where did he get the cloth in the first place?”
I paused, racking my brain for answers.
“Assuming he was completely wrapped in the cloth, could he have used a
teleportation circle for objects?”
“No. The cloth contains no mana at all, so the
teleportation circle would neither detect it nor activate. We tried ourselves,
but nothing we wrapped in the cloth would teleport, no matter how small.”
The scholars had apparently asked the same
question and, using the cloth, tried to get living things to teleport as
objects. They hadn’t been successful.
“However,” Bonifatius continued, “in the
hidden room where we found the cloth, we also came across traces of something
having been burned. Matthias told us that his father would always burn any
teleportation circles he used to commit misdeeds, so it seems very likely that
he used one for something.”
“Father used magic tools to burn teleportation
circles he had no further use for,” Matthias added. “I expect that he tried to
burn the silver cloth as well, but its immunity to mana meant it was
unaffected.”
Bonifatius crossed his arms and nodded. “Under
any other circumstances, I suspect he might have been a lot more thorough about
removing evidence, but he was in a room that only his blood relatives could
enter. He likely never thought that Matthias would be spared, let alone that he
would assist us with our investigation.”
“But aren’t relatives normally brought in to
help with such investigations?” I asked. Matthias had been safe at the Royal
Academy, so it seemed obvious that he would have helped out.
Bonifatius shook his head with a frown.
“Opening a hidden room requires the mana of someone registered to it, so that
might seem like a good idea, but such people would already be in mana-sealing
bracelets. Removing said bracelets wouldn’t be an option either—by no means
could we allow the relative of a criminal to enter a hidden room potentially
filled with dangerous magic tools.”
The investigating knights wouldn’t know what
magic tools were being stored in the hidden room or where they were being kept.
Taking a relative there without the appropriate mana restraints would introduce
all sorts of risks. Perhaps they would attempt a suicidal counterattack with
whatever they had available.
“The best we could do by ourselves was look
for evidence, and search through memories with the aub’s permission,” he
explained. “Of course, the trug had greatly limited which memories we could
access, and trying to view them by force risked doing serious harm to the
person being searched—especially when their mana was ill matched and they were
resisting the entire time. I expect that Giebe Gerlach believed he had
eliminated everything that might trace back to his doings, including Matthias
himself. I can say with all certainty that he did not expect his son or Laurenz
to betray him to protect the children of the former Veronica faction, nor did
it occur to him that the aub might offer to spare their lives. We could only
include them in our investigation because they had given their names to members
of the archducal family who had ordered them not to resist. They were extremely
helpful, and their assistance enabled us to find valuable evidence and items.
There is no mistaking that.”
Bonifatius was showering Laurenz and Matthias
with praise, but I could instinctively feel the mood growing heavier. I sat up
straight, suddenly more anxious than before.
He continued, “You were so determined to save
these young boys’ lives that you decided to use any means necessary. That led
you to propose that the children of criminals be given a chance to give their
names. The aub acknowledged your suggestion, and those who went along with it
were spared.”
“Lord Bonifatius, I think you are mistaken,”
Hartmut interjected. “To begin with, it was the aub who—”
Bonifatius raised a hand and silenced the
protest with a single glare. “Rozemyne first made the suggestion for Viscount
Dahldolf, did she not? She was acting out of compassion and was relieved when
so many were eventually spared. She might even have considered it a good
thing.” He inhaled slowly, then gave me a stern look. “However, I want you to know
that, as a consequence, some believe you have stomped on the pride and dignity
of others—that you threatened them with death to acquire their servitude.
Name-swearing is supposed to be a sacred act. Even now, I do not support it
being used to allow the families of criminals to escape punishment.”
I recognized those eyes; Roderick had given me
the same look while saying exactly the same thing. My heart grew heavy. I
didn’t regret saving Matthias and the others—not in the slightest. I was glad
to have found a way to spare those who hadn’t committed any crimes. Yet, at the
same time, I’d never really stopped to consider how they felt. I’d never
considered the fact that I was stomping on their pride.
“Now that you have set this precedent,” he
went on, “others will come forth, also wanting to swear their names to avoid
punishment. It might even spread to other duchies; nowhere is there such an
abundance of nobles that execution is a simple task. If swearing one’s name for
this reason becomes common, then those who would have given theirs out of
genuine fealty will start having second thoughts, lest they be misconstrued as
criminals themselves. You will have fundamentally changed the meaning of name-swearing.”
It felt as though he had just dumped a bucket
of cold water over me. That reality had never even crossed my mind, and now I
couldn’t keep my fists from trembling. I’d never expected this to turn into
such a big issue. My only intention had been to save lives—but, at the same
time, I supposed that my own naivety was to blame.
“Sylvester always permits your unique ideas,”
Bonifatius said. “He even said that he would take the blame for any negative
consequences they might have. In his words, his reputation is already so poor
that a few new controversies would not change anything. Did you know that?”
I shook my head; Sylvester had never said
anything of the sort to me. “I really am sorry... I didn’t stop to consider the
consequences...”
“Rozemyne, I see your desire to save lives as
nothing short of a virtue, but you must consider both the influence your
authority has on society and the damage that can come from modifying
traditions. As I understand it, the implementation of so many seemingly minor
changes over the years is why religious ceremonies and the temple in general
are now viewed so poorly. You saw with your own eyes how much something as
simple as a new High Bishop can change the atmosphere of the temple.”
All of a sudden, Bonifatius seemed to relax.
“But, uh... that’s enough lecturing from me, I think. No need to shed any
tears. In an ideal world, it wouldn’t have fallen to me to tell you all this.
Such remonstrations should come from your parents—of whom you have plenty—and
your retainers share the blame for not daring to admonish you when you truly
need it. I am sick of doing the dirty work and receiving so much ire for it.”
He then turned to my retainers and said, “Get a grip, you lot. Pay more heed to
your lady’s actions such that she doesn’t make more enemies and turn the people
against her.”
“Our sincerest apologies!”
No sooner had my retainers cried out than a
bell rang on the other side of the door. Sylvester’s ritual was evidently
finished.
“Ahaha!” he laughed, barging through the door
with a victorious grin. “I got twenty-one divine
protections! Coupled with the ones I got before, I might just beat you,
Rozemyne!”
The tension weighing down on us all vanished,
though we struggled to immediately match Sylvester’s enthusiasm. “I... I see,”
I said. “I suppose all those years of prayer really did pay off.”
“Not to mention, I got the Life element, so
now I’m omni-elemental. I dunno how much prayer it takes to get new elements,
but this seems pretty important, huh?”
If praying while supplying one’s foundation
became customary for archducal families, I could only assume that we would all eventually become omni-elemental.
“Wait, omni-elemental?!” I exclaimed. “Does
that mean you got Ewigeliebe’s divine protection?!”
“Nah, I didn’t get it from him but from the
subordinates Dauerleben and Schlaftraum. There was also... Actually, um...
Forget it. Not something to be said in polite company.”
Waaait. Let me guess... Beischmacht?
In socially acceptable terms, Beischmacht was
most associated with vigorous nighttime endeavors. I
wasn’t sure whether my guess was correct, but I wasn’t going to ask with
Melchior in the room. Instead, I put on a vague smile and pretended to know.
“Anyway—they might have been subordinates, but
I got plenty of Life protections from them. Did, uh... something happen, by the
way? I heard your retainers apologize from all the way outside. What did
Bonifatius say to them?” He carefully scanned the room, clearly more interested
in changing the subject than anything else.
“I simply scolded them for not being on top of
things,” Bonifatius replied, keeping the details vague. “Don’t want them
thinking they can protect Rozemyne the way they’re going.”
I decided not to reveal too much either. So,
rather than telling Sylvester that I now knew what great lengths he was going
to for my sake, I merely offered him a seat and smiled as Fran poured some tea.
“Before my lecture, we were trying to figure
out where in the world Giebe Gerlach might have gotten that cloth,” Bonifatius
explained.
“I see,” Sylvester murmured. “Yeah, that’s
important. It might be a new magic tool that hasn’t been announced anywhere.”
Umm... I’m not sure we can go about calling it a
magic tool. It doesn’t contain any mana whatsoever.
Putting aside my pointless nitpick, I recalled
what Giebe Kirnberger had said to me about Bosgeiz. “Erm, actually... I was
told that feystones are seldom found in other countries, so maybe this material
that doesn’t contain any mana came from one of them.” Manaless materials
couldn’t be found in Yurgenschmidt, but maybe they were available in other
countries.
“I haven’t heard anything about this—not even
during our Archduke Conferences. Yurgenschmidt was trading with other countries
up until the civil war, but I don’t remember us importing any cloth like that.”
Bonifatius nodded in agreement.
“Well, feystones were one of our country’s
chief exports before the civil war,” I said. “It wouldn’t surprise me if the
countries receiving them went through a lot of changes too after their supply
was abruptly cut off.”
Even back on Earth, when we had started
running out of oil, we had desperately begun searching for alternative energy
sources. It was an extremely obvious course of action to preserve one’s
existing resources while searching for something new to use. If news of the
Bosgeiz gate’s closure had reached other countries, then it was possible that
they had started preparing for if their own gates were closed too. They might
even have decided to keep their trump cards secret instead of presenting them
during the Archduke Conference.
“If the former Giebe Gerlach is alive, I can’t
imagine he went anywhere but Ahrensbach,” Bonifatius mused. “Plus, Ahrensbach
is the only duchy that still has an open country gate. It might still have a
connection to other countries.” He paused, clearly deep in thought, then shook
his head and muttered, “This kind of thinking was Ferdinand’s job.”
“Then let us ask him,” I said. “He can look
into whether Lanzenave has any similar cloth. Above all else, though, we need
to inform him of the dangers in Ahrensbach. Giebe Gerlach might be there now,
and this mana-immune cloth seems like a serious threat to us nobles. Not even
Ferdinand would be able to put up a fight if someone used the cloth to block
his every attack. He’s in more danger than any of us right now...”
Not to mention, although we had only found a
scrap of cloth, it seemed reasonable to assume that the same material might
have been used to make weapons and armor as well. If either Giebe Gerlach or
Georgine had such equipment, well... One would need some very carefully
thought-out countermeasures to stand a chance.
“Sylvester won’t object to us informing
Ferdinand, I’m sure,” Bonifatius said. “However, if Ahrensbach’s censors pick
up on our warnings, we’ll only make the situation worse. Do you have a means of
passing their checks?”
I could only blink in response. Bonifatius was
smiling at me, but his blue eyes were intently watching my every move.
Sylvester was doing the same. It felt entirely like they were testing me—and,
now that I thought about it, Ferdinand had told me to
keep our shining ink a secret.
After putting on my best fake smile, I placed
a hand on my cheek and quizzically cocked my head. “Is it not Sylvester who
does? He said as much during dinner. The best I could do is perhaps ask
Ferdinand’s disciple, Raimund, to give him a letter or a message from us when I
return to the Royal Academy. Or maybe I could try to find a moment to speak
with him at the Archduke Conference, during the Starbind Ceremony. Do you have
any better ideas, Grandfather?”
Bonifatius’s expression softened a little,
then he shook his head at me and said, “Nope.” Seeing the sharpness in his eyes
fade away made me want to sigh in relief.
Sylvester looked at me and stroked his chin.
“I’m sorry to say this, Rozemyne, but Ferdinand won’t be attending the Archduke
Conference. Aub Ahrensbach passed away a few days ago, and now Lady Detlinde
needs to dye her foundation. It’s best that her mana not change until the
process is complete, so their Starbind Ceremony is being delayed until next
year.”
Ferdinand had sent Sylvester a letter to that
effect. In it, he had also mentioned that he would be participating in
Ahrensbach’s Spring Prayer, which meant we would need to adjust our response a
little.
“It’s being delayed an entire year...?” I
asked. “Then what’s happening with Ferdinand?”
“What do you mean?”
“His wedding can’t be held until the
foundation has been dyed, so will he be able to return to Ehrenfest? Or will
they at least give him a hidden room?” I asked anxiously. Going an entire
season without somewhere to relax was bad enough, but a whole year?
Bonifatius gave me a look of slight
exasperation. “What’re you getting so worked up about? He won’t be able to
return unless his engagement is canceled—and, in any case, it’s normal not to
be given a hidden room until you’re married. Another year is a fairly long
time, but it isn’t something for you to worry about.”
Um... Isn’t it, though?
My eyes flitted between Sylvester and
Bonifatius, which elicited a sigh from the former. “It seems that you don’t
have the best understanding of noble weddings,” he said, then turned to
Bonifatius. “I’ll take care of this, Uncle. Why don’t you go perform your
divine protections ritual?”
“Hm... I suppose I will,” Bonifatius replied.
“Melchior, if you would.” He left the room, though he kept glancing back at me
on his way out. Once he was gone and the door was once again shut, Sylvester
let out a heavy sigh, then looked me straight in the eye.
“Rozemyne, what’s your relationship with
Ferdinand?”
“Umm...”
I tilted my head, not at all sure where his
question had come from. It seemed a bit late to be asking something like that.
“Shouldn’t you know that already?” I asked.
“Ferdinand is my guardian. He’s someone who looks after me. What more is there
to say?”
Karstedt, who was standing behind Sylvester as
his guard, smiled in approval of my response. “I thought that might be the
case. Ferdinand must feel the same way.”
“Exactly. Was that not obvious?”
“Hmm...” Sylvester paused as if mustering his
courage, then looked over everyone in the room, including our retainers. “By
noble standards, Rozemyne... your relationship with Ferdinand is unusually
close.”
I nodded and replied, “Um, right...” but I
didn’t have a clue what he meant. To begin with, what were these “noble
standards” he was referring to? Sylvester must have noticed my complete lack of
understanding because, after exchanging a look with Karstedt, he attempted to
elaborate.
“Look,” he said, clearly struggling to get the
words out. “The truth is... there’s a rumor that you’re in love with
Ferdinand.”
“This is news to me. I have no idea what might
have caused it.”
My response caused a stir among our retainers;
some cleared their throats in apparent discomfort, while others exchanged
surprised murmurs. Again, I was completely lost. Yes, it was true that I
trusted Ferdinand more than I trusted any other noble. He was like family to
me, and I loved him as much as I did Lutz or Tuuli. But was I in love with him? Where had that assumption even come from?
“Is there a reason for that
misinterpretation?” I asked.
Karstedt’s brow furrowed into a very reluctant
frown. “Er, well... It isn’t too strange for a guardian to give his estate to
his charge, but rarely are the staff and furniture kept the same. Ferdinand
opted to leave the rooms as they were. He also put his valuables in your care
and trusts you to send them to him as he needs them. It, uh... really is a bit
much.”
By managing the estate for Ferdinand and doing
what he asked of me, I was apparently doing the jobs that most people would
entrust to the women in their family.
“Excuse me...?” I said. “Eckhart and Justus
can rely on Mother and Rihyarda to send them their belongings, but Ferdinand
doesn’t have a mother to do that for him, does he? Besides, the most I really
do is tell the attendant he left behind what he wants. I don’t see the issue.”
It wasn’t like I was personally loading his
things for him. At most, I would send an ordonnanz to Lasfam, who would take
care of the rest. How people could see that as even remotely romantic was
beyond me. Plus, Ferdinand wasn’t even living in Ehrenfest anymore; he had
moved to Ahrensbach two seasons ago. Why were such rumors spreading now, of all
times?
“Under normal circumstances, those who leave
home to marry into another duchy take all of their belongings with them,”
Karstedt explained. “Ferdinand wasn’t able to do that, though. Because he was
summoned to Ahrensbach on such short notice, he had to leave his things here
for another season.”
That reminded me—Clarissa had gone to
Frenbeltag’s border gate to pick up her belongings, and she had announced upon
returning that she now had absolutely everything she needed. This wasn’t really
important, but my understanding was that people moving to another duchy didn’t
usually bring too many clothes with them; instead, they ordered new ones that
better matched the fashion senses of their new home. They mostly brought
underclothes, which went unseen and therefore didn’t need to be stylish.
“By leaving his belongings at home,” Karstedt
continued, “Ferdinand is making it seem like he hopes for a divorce.”
“Wait, really?” I asked. “Is his marriage
going to be okay, then? We sent him more of his luggage in the spring, but only
what he requested. His rooms aren’t yet empty or anything.” Naturally, I
omitted the fact that Lasfam was eagerly waiting to be called over as well,
once things were ready.
Sylvester stared at me, wide-eyed, and said,
“I think I should manage Ferdinand’s belongings from
now on. Can’t keep leaving them to you.”
Karstedt looked equally taken aback.
“Why not?” I asked.
“Above all else, because Ferdinand ceased
being your guardian when he moved to Ahrensbach. Now, seasons later, everyone
sees your relationship in a different light. You should wise up and do the
same. You aren’t his charge anymore. He isn’t your guardian.”
There was nothing wrong with my receiving his
estate; the issue was that our relationship hadn’t changed after the fact.
Karstedt crossed his arms, frowning once
again. “You’re probably thinking that this has all come out of nowhere, but the
truth is that our perception was just as naive as yours. It was only after
people started warning us of the problem that we noticed it ourselves. You’ve
also matured quite a lot—in a physical sense, that is. You’ve gotten taller,
and now you actually look old enough to be attending the Royal Academy. Our
knowledge of your situation made us slow on the uptake, but people no longer
see you as a mere child admiring her guardian.”
I gazed down at my body. The hem of my dresses
had needed to be lengthened after I woke up from the jureve, and everyone had
assured me I was now old enough to be a student... but nobody had treated me
any differently. That was probably because, at the time, I’d looked as though I
hadn’t even been baptized yet. I’d even appeared to be younger than Wilfried
and Charlotte, owing to our heights.
Now, however, the way that people viewed me
had started to change. I’d celebrated the fact that I was growing at last, but
I also hadn’t realized how much of an impact it would have on how others saw me
and the things I did.
“Also...” Sylvester hesitantly continued,
“some people have been voicing their concerns that you are too worried about
Ferdinand now living in Ahrensbach. They think you’re not even half as worried
about your fiancé.”
“And they’re right,” I said. “If someone asked
me whether I was more worried about Ferdinand or Wilfried right now, my answer
would absolutely be the former.”
Karstedt winced, while Sylvester smacked a
hand against his own forehead and groaned. Had I said something wrong? I
watched them both carefully as they continued their display of exasperation. It
wasn’t long before Karstedt was face-palming and Sylvester was crossing his
arms while staring up at the ceiling in thought.
After a moment, Sylvester returned his
attention to me, evidently conflicted. “Look... could you also
show some concern for your fiancé?” he asked. “He’s facing Leisegang
almost entirely by himself, you know.”
“He has some of my
concern. I advised him to let some time pass before approaching the Leisegangs,
and I’ve actively tried to share my intelligence with him. However, no matter
what happens, I will always prioritize Ferdinand.”
“Why?”
I met his eye and said, “Wilfried may
technically be my fiancé, but consider all the roles Ferdinand played for my
sake. As my guardian, he did a veritable mountain of work in my stead. As my
mentor, he granted me books, knowledge, and the perspective needed to survive
in noble society. And, as my doctor, he paid closer attention to my health than
anybody else. He has granted me so much, while Wilfried grants me almost
nothing. We’ve also spent so much more time together.”
To be frank, it was pointless to even compare
the two. In terms of my appreciation, they were in completely different worlds.
“Not to mention,” I continued, “although you
say that Wilfried is fighting this battle alone, he has two considerate parents
doting on him, as well as Charlotte and Melchior to provide assistance whenever
he needs it. Even I can—and do—help him as long as it doesn’t interfere with my
temple work. How can you expect me to worry about him as much as I do about
Ferdinand?”
I loved Tuuli and the others, but I didn’t
spend my days worrying about whether they had enough food to eat, whether their
lives were in danger, or anything like that. Ferdinand, however, was stranded
in Ahrensbach without a workshop or a hidden room. He was always up to his eyes
in work and wary of everyone but the two trustworthy retainers by his side.
Aside from them, there was nobody with whom he could speak openly. He also had
a tendency to skip meals and go without sleep when he was busy. Even on the occasions
when he did eat, he was so wary of poison that he refused to touch anything
unfamiliar.
Worst of all, Ferdinand was engaged to a girl
who looked identical to Veronica. Had he been living
an easy and carefree life in Ahrensbach, I wouldn’t have needed to worry about
him so much.
“Should the day come when Wilfried starts
prioritizing work over his basic needs, all the while sustaining himself with
rejuvenation potions and ignoring his retainers’ every call to rest, then I will worry about him and Ferdinand in equal measure.
But that hasn’t happened yet, has it? In fact, I don’t believe he’s acting at
all out of the ordinary.”
Sylvester and our retainers were speechless,
while Karstedt rubbed his brow and muttered, “So that’s
how you decide whom to be concerned about...?”
“Is there something wrong with that, Father?”
“Well, don’t people usually base such
priorities on familiarity or, uh... closeness? You’re at an age where you
should get along better with your fiancé than your guardian.”
“So you were my age when you got close with Mother, hm?”
“Er, I, ah... Forget I said anything.” He
cleared his throat and averted his gaze, trying to avoid the subject, but that
awkward gesture told me everything I needed to know; he had
started getting cozy with Elvira around then.
Karstedt wanted me to behave more like my age,
but that was exactly the problem. I’d spent twenty-two years on Earth before
coming to this world, meaning I was now well into my adulthood. Wilfried, on
the other hand, was still only a child. I struggled to see him as someone my
age, let alone develop romantic feelings for him.
At the very least, he’d need to be as old as I
was when I died.
“Still, aren’t you worried about him?”
Karstedt asked me. “You’re aware of the trouble with the Leisegangs.”
“Like I said, I do feel some
concern for him. I attempted to share intelligence with his retainers and even
made him a protective charm. He was anything but receptive, though. He refused
to accept any information from me and wouldn’t even thank me for the charm I
gave him.”
I’d expected at least a thank-you message
delivered through his retainers, but no. He hadn’t even sent me an ordonnanz to
confirm that he’d received the charm. Was he pleased with it? Did he think I
was overstepping? I didn’t have a clue, and I certainly wasn’t motivated to
make him another. To be honest, I was so busy and saw him so infrequently these
days that I sometimes forgot he even existed.
“He was definitely in the wrong there,”
Sylvester said. “I can’t excuse him for that.”
“Oh, also—I was going to advise him not to
clamor for the Leisegangs’ support and to instead take his time, but my
retainers stopped me. They said that he was too wounded from what he had
experienced during Spring Prayer and would only lash out at me in response.”
Sylvester exhaled. “No surprises there.”
“Chances are they weren’t wrong either...”
Karstedt added, sighing as well.
Everyone seemed convinced that the best course
of action was to keep Wilfried in the dark. He was acting aloof, sure, but was
that really the best response? I told Sylvester about the vague things
Cornelius and the others had said to me, then launched into my main questions.
“So, what state is Wilfried in right now,
exactly? Should I refrain from approaching him, as my retainers advise?”
Sylvester took a moment to consider his
answer, while his retainers and Karstedt all watched with troubled frowns.
“For now... yeah,” Sylvester eventually
replied. “I think we can all agree that Wilfried needs to accept a few truths,
no matter how unpleasant they might be. But I could also say the same for you,
Rozemyne. I think the two of you should stay apart until you can both accept
things for what they are.”
“I’m not sure I understand,” I said, cocking
my head at him. “What truths am I refusing to accept?”
Sylvester’s dark-green eyes looked straight
into mine. “First of all, Ferdinand isn’t your guardian anymore; he belongs to
another duchy. Second, he’s no longer expected to aid you; now that Aub
Ahrensbach is gone, he needs to support Lady Detlinde while she begins dyeing
her foundation. And third, to top it all off, you’re engaged to Wilfried. I
won’t say it’s wrong of you to worry about Ferdinand. I mean, I’m worried about
him too. But you can’t keep using that as an excuse to cling to him. As comforting
as his presence might be... you need to let him go. You’re going to spend the
rest of your life with Wilfried, and the two of you need to start learning to
support one another.”
Okay... You’ve got me there.
As much as I didn’t want to admit it, those
were all things I would need to come to terms with eventually. It was tough,
though; I didn’t want to end my relationship with Ferdinand. Even now, I could
at least complain to him in my letters, ask him to discreetly teach me things,
and simply take comfort in speaking with him.
“Rozemyne... it was nice to have Ferdinand
looking out for you, wasn’t it? He always paved the way forward or at least set
you on the right path. Then he left, and you suddenly stopped meshing with
people in the same way. Despite your best attempts to do things as he taught
you, they never produce the same results. Am I right?”
“Yeah... Anytime I end up in a sticky
situation, I can’t help but think, ‘Ferdinand would have stopped me before
things got this bad.’”
His expression softened. “Same here. His
departure really made me realize how little I was thinking for myself. But the
sad truth is that he’s never coming back to Ehrenfest. As much as it hurts, we
need to accept that.”
Clarissa had told me that Sylvester was in a
disastrous state right now. In her words, he had underestimated the
consequences of the purge and fumbled its execution. Well, she had phrased it
more politely than that, but still. Little did she know, the true reason for
the chaos was that we had initially intended to carry out the purge while
Ferdinand was still in Ehrenfest. He had planned to contain the Leisegangs for
us, and we had assumed that he would be able to help us with the cleanup before
moving to Ahrensbach.
Of course, Ferdinand had ended up departing
much sooner than anticipated, leaving us to manage the finer details and
correct every minor mishap or miscalculation ourselves. Sylvester and I had
always been deeply reliant on him, so doing everything for ourselves had been
much easier said than done.
“Rozemyne, Wilfried is one of your strongest
ties to Ehrenfest,” Sylvester continued. “You need to do more to get along with
each other. Getting close to him is one of the best ways you can prevent other
parties from trying to claim you for themselves.”
I nodded slowly. Unpleasant though it was,
this was a problem I would need to resolve myself. “But what can I do to get
closer to him?”
“For now... just pretend. You can start by
acting like you’re more worried about him. We need to put a stop to these
rumors that you care more about Ferdinand than your fiancé.”
He was asking for the impossible, but I
responded with a dispassionate “Okay.” How was I even supposed to make people
believe I was worried about Wilfried...? Nothing about his situation seemed to
warrant my concern. He wasn’t at risk of going hungry like the children in the
orphanage, nor had he run away from home as Lutz did that one time. Perhaps I
could support him as I did Tuuli whenever she was feeling anxious about her
seamstress work, but he already had adult scholars to rely on. In fact, I didn’t
think he was struggling with his workload in the first place.
Sylvester wanted me to show more concern for
Wilfried than for Ferdinand, but that was a big ask. To begin with, I would
need to send him an ordonnanz every day at dinnertime, reminding him to eat;
stop by his hidden room every now and again to drag him back out into the
outside world; and stay in close contact with his attendants to ensure he was
getting enough sleep.
I imagine we’d fall at the first hurdle, though.
I’d contact him at dinnertime, he’d reply that he obviously isn’t working so
late, then I’d need to bite back the urge to tell him that he isn’t working
hard enough then.
“So, what was it you wanted to discuss?”
Sylvester asked.
I explained that some of the children in the
orphanage had grown despondent and outlined my intention to prepare magic tools
and rejuvenation potions for them.
Sylvester grimaced. “You don’t need to do all
that. People consider it extreme enough that you spared their lives and gave
them a home in the orphanage. If you do any more, they’re going to ask you to
devote those resources to the children in their faction instead.”
He had said exactly the same thing as Hartmut,
so I gave exactly the same response: “I merely wish to save the children of the
orphanage I am expected to oversee. If we can provide for those who don’t have
magic tools, then we can prevent more unnecessary deaths. If we leave them to
their fate, it will be as though they were never even born.”
“The children won’t have enough money to cover
the expenses, and you won’t be able to provide for them all. Last time we
discussed supporting the children in the orphanage and playroom, you suggested
using their parents’ money. I agreed. But these children don’t have magic tools
for a reason—because their parents can’t afford to pay for them. How do you
expect to fund this endeavor?”
He was right—we had only been able to support
the other children because we were getting money from their parents. Even
better, it was socially acceptable, since it reinforced the traditional idea
that parents were responsible for their kids. That approach wouldn’t help us in
this case, though; if we wanted to start providing magic tools, we would need
to adapt it.
“Well, I was thinking we could loan them the tools, then get them to pay us back once
they’re older and employed,” I said. We had already set that precedent by
loaning the children of the former Veronica faction the money they needed to
make it through the Royal Academy, on the basis that they would repay their
debts after graduating.
Sylvester gave me a look of exasperation. “I
can accept loaning a few years’ worth of money to apprentices who can already
work to support themselves, but you’re suggesting that we saddle these children
with an immense debt before they’ve even been baptized. You need to remember
that living as a noble is expensive enough already, and people from the temple
don’t even have parents or relatives to rely on. How can you expect them to
manage loan repayments on top of everything else?”
“Um... Well...”
“I was fine with saving those kids’ lives, but
I refuse to cover their expenses. They have mana, and if they can get by with
supplemental funding and their own earnings, then having them stay in the
temple as blue priests seems fine to me. I can’t think of a single reason to
make orphans without magic tools into nobles.”
“But...”
“Rozemyne, the possessions taken from the
former Veronica faction were mine to distribute among my allies. That I gave
the children you saved anything at all was generous enough, especially when
those belongings could have gone to the nobles of our faction. Instead of
asking for more, be grateful that I’ve already gone above and beyond for them.
Just as Bonifatius said, you need to consider the broader consequences of your
actions.”
Unable to argue, I merely hung my head in
response. Helping the children wouldn’t be easy. I didn’t know what my actions
might inspire or how far the consequences would reach.
I want to save them, but I don’t know what the
right solution is.
“Before you start getting caught up in things
that shouldn’t concern you, think about the things that should. Have you
finished preparing for the Archduke Conference’s Starbind Ceremony?”
“We’ve already decided who’s going to guard me
and who will accompany me to the library.”
“Good. Be back at the castle. You know when.”
As we continued to discuss the Archduke
Conference, Bonifatius returned from his ritual. He was slouching his extremely
broad shoulders and generally looked upset.
“How did your ritual go?” I asked.
Bonifatius shot Sylvester a resentful glare
and then muttered, “I received... seventeen.” He was frustrated that he hadn’t
gotten as many divine protections as his nephew.
“Uncle, although we both started praying at
the same time, I spent a lot longer offering mana when I needed to dye the
foundation,” Sylvester said. “That probably explains it. Anyway, which gods
gave you their protection?” He sounded really eager, probably because he had
ended up with some unusual protections after his own ritual.
Bonifatius grunted, clenching and unclenching
his hand. “I turned omni-elemental too. Got most protections from gods about
fighting. I’ll need to head to the training grounds to test how much stronger
I’ve gotten.”
“Okay, Master!” Angelica exclaimed, lighting
up at once. “Let’s have a match right away!”
At the same time, Cornelius let out a howl.
“At your age, why do you still care about getting
stronger?!”
The Archduke Conference’s Starbinding
“Is that everything?” I asked Hartmut, who was
directing the gray priests as they loaded my Pandabus with luggage.
“Yes,” he replied with a nod, brimming with
confidence. “The ceremonial robes, the minor goods, the bible... Everything.”
Next, I turned to my temple attendants. “Fran,
Monika, Zahm—I entrust the temple to you in my absence. Please oversee the
education of the new blue priests.”
“Understood. We shall await your return.”
“Welcome back, Lady Rozemyne.”
“Thank you. Have all the preparations been
made?”
It had been quite a while since I was last in
the castle, but I needed to make sure everything was ready for the Archduke
Conference before I reveled in being back. The adults accompanying me seemed on
edge, maybe because I was having to perform the Starbind Ceremony and assist
the royal family despite being underage.
“We have with us our attire and the goods we
are bringing to the conference,” I said. “Please do check everything. This box
marked ‘ceremonial outfits’ contains the blue robes, though I don’t know whose
are whose.”
This time, we weren’t just bringing my
clothes; we had ceremonial robes for my guard knights as well. Ottilie and
Lieseleta started checking through our luggage from the temple.
“These outfits are acceptable, though we will
need to prepare extra ink and plant paper...”
“Allow me,” Clarissa interjected, beaming at
this opportunity to act as my retainer. “I assume this
should suffice.” She showed us a wooden box containing an entire day’s worth of
scholarly equipment. There was more than enough for us to complete our
translation work in the library’s basement.
“Hartmut,” I said, “you intend to join the
negotiations as a scholar once the Starbind Ceremony is over, don’t you? Do you
have all that you’ll require?”
“I will only be attending to obtain
information and increase the head count, but rest assured—I am prepared enough
that I shan’t tarnish your good name.”
Because of the purge, the archducal couple’s
retinue wasn’t of an appropriate size for an eighth-ranked duchy. New retainers
were being trained as we spoke, but they wouldn’t be ready in time for the
conference, which was why Hartmut had agreed to participate after finishing his
duties as the High Priest.
“I’m impressed that you managed to prepare
while staying on top of your High Priest work,” I remarked. “As always,
Hartmut, your excellence surprises me.”
“I am honored. Although, in this case... it
was only feasible because of Clarissa and my father.” He glanced to his side,
where his fiancée was standing with an expression that practically screamed, “I
worked super hard.” I would probably need to consult Hartmut’s parents on how
much she was exhausting them, but at least she was doing her best.
“The aub complimented your efforts as well,
Clarissa. You and Hartmut are my only scholars participating in the Archduke
Conference. I am eager to see your results.”
“Yes, my lady! You can count on us.”
Only adults could attend the Archduke
Conference. From my retinue, that meant Ottilie, Lieseleta, Hartmut, Clarissa,
Cornelius, Leonore, Damuel, and Angelica. Two attendants, two scholars, and
four knights.
After our luggage was checked, I addressed the
underage squad. “Philine, Roderick, visit the temple as often as you can. I
want you to help Fran and the others take care of the blue priests, while
simultaneously keeping an eye on the orphanage.” Their presence as nobles would
also deter the adult blue priests from pulling any tricks.
“We’ve been so busy in the High Priest’s
chambers now that Hartmut is training Melchior’s retainers,” Roderick said. “At
least now we can relax a bit and work on our transcriptions.”
Poor, naive Roderick... If he thought that
Hartmut’s absence was going to secure him some time off, then he was in for a
very unpleasant surprise. A long to-do list was surely awaiting him in the High
Priest’s chambers.
“Matthias, Laurenz,” I continued, “please go
to the temple on days when you don’t have training. I would like you to assist
Philine and Roderick, and check on how Nikolaus and the others are doing with
their own training.”
“Days we don’t have training?” Laurenz
repeated with a pained smile. “Oh, what a dream that would be. Lord Bonifatius
is working us harder and with even more vigor now that he has so many divine
protections.”
Matthias looked at the sword on his hip. “We
have also been learning how to deal with mana-immune silver cloth. The knights
have been ordered to train with normal, non-schtappe weapons.”
The discovery of the silver cloth had made us
all the more convinced that the former Giebe Gerlach had survived. As his son,
Matthias must have been dealing with a storm of conflicting emotions. His brow
was drawn into a grave frown.
“We’ll need them when it counts, but they’re
heavy and just get in the way most of the time,” Laurenz added. “Am I right,
Matthias?” He gave his friend a slap on the back, making him look up with a
start and adopt a more neutral expression.
“We have only ever used feystone armor and
schtappe-made weapons, which have almost no weight at all, so this silver cloth
mystery is very troublesome,” Matthias opined. “I intend to train to get better
at using metal weaponry.”
“Judithe,” I said, “I want you to stay in the
castle. I’ve received word that Brunhilde is visiting with Bertilde for her
training, but I dare not leave Gretia to hold the fort alone. Some nobles are
none too pleased with the name-sworn of the former Veronica faction...”
Ottilie and Lieseleta were both accompanying
me to the Archduke Conference, leaving Gretia alone in the castle. I couldn’t
imagine that asking for help from Matthias or Laurenz, her fellow name-sworn,
would do the situation much good, plus there was Gretia’s discomfort around men
to take into consideration. A female knight like Judithe was the perfect match.
“Understood,” she replied, accepting the job
with a bright smile. “You can count on me.”
“There won’t be any problems while I’m in the
northern building, but I thank you for your concern,” Gretia assured me,
lowering her gaze.
“Very well. But if staying in the castle ever
becomes too much, you can go to the temple with Judithe,” I said. Losing my
liaison in the castle wouldn’t be ideal, but the last thing I wanted was for
her to suffer.
After a good night’s rest, it was already time
for us to go. The servants and chefs were the first to leave. Hugo and Rosina
were among them, but Ella wasn’t even in the castle; she was pregnant and on
maternity leave. The luggage was then sent box by box, while the scholars and
retainers teleported over. I was to leave right before the archducal couple and
would be sandwiched between Cornelius and Leonore.
“Be careful, Sister.”
“I wanted to see your ceremony too...”
After speaking with Charlotte and Melchior,
who had come to see me off, I turned my attention to Wilfried. Sylvester had
evidently been correct in saying that we were still in denial; aside from some
perfunctory farewells exchanged over dinner last night, we hadn’t spoken at
all.
I can’t leave things at that. It wouldn’t be
right.
“Wilfried,” I said, smiling for the sake of
appearances, “my ordonnanzes won’t be able to reach you from the Royal Academy,
so I’m afraid you’ll need to go without my usual correspondence. Unless...
shall we exchange letters?”
He blanched. “I’m just glad you’ll be gone for
a while. I can finally be free from your ordonnanzes.”
“Oh, but I sent those out of concern for you.”
“You hound me about my work and meals every
single day, from sunrise to sunset. It’s like you’re urging me to work more or something!”
As per Sylvester’s suggestion, I was trying to
show Wilfried as much concern as I would normally have shown Ferdinand. This
included sending him daily ordonnanzes, which he evidently didn’t appreciate. I
was contemplating whether it was even worth continuing the endeavor when I saw
him get jabbed in the side by one of his retainers. At once, Wilfried cast
aside his upset frown and adopted a smile.
“I’m really worried about you needing to help
the royal family in the underground archive, but do your best,” he said.
“Remember that you’re representing all of Ehrenfest.”
“And you continue to supply the foundational
magics,” I replied. “Grandfather and the aub obtained many divine protections
as a result of their dedicated prayer. If you let your guard down, Charlotte
and Melchior may surpass you.”
Wilfried glanced over at Charlotte and
Melchior, then... Nothing. I’d expected him to declare that he’d never lose or
that he wouldn’t let his younger siblings beat him, but he didn’t say anything
at all; he just stood there with a cynical smile. As I stepped onto the
teleporter, I couldn’t help but feel uneasy about it.
“Lady Rozemyne, please relax until the rooms
are ready.”
After arriving in the teleportation hall,
which looked more or less the same as it did during the school term, I moved to
the common room and waited while my attendants carried out the usual
preparations. Rather than being filled with chattering students, it was awash
with scholars and attendants whom I’d only ever seen during the feast where all
nobles gathered. I was more familiar with the knights, at least—as was to be
expected, since I saw them during trombe hunts, when blessing them to fight the
Lord of Winter, and on other such occasions.
And, of course, the knights, scholars, and
attendants gathered in the common room were all adults.
I must be the only shorty in the room... It makes
me feel as though I don’t belong here—which is entirely true, to be honest.
“Lady Rozemyne. Good day.”
Elvira approached me in full scholar attire,
and we started to discuss our printing trade with other duchies. I sipped the
tea that Norbert had poured for me all the while, and it wasn’t long before
some very curious scholars in the business were gathered around us.
“Lady Rozemyne, these are the books the aub
has permitted us to sell. As I understand it, Muriella has reported this to you
already, but have those in the lower city been informed?”
“Indeed,” I said, “they have confirmed as much
already. Furthermore, the Merchant’s Guild reported that the training of those
from Groschel is progressing smoothly and they have more than enough product
ready.”
Elvira nodded and then flashed a smile, an
unmistakable glint in her dark eyes. “How goes the third volume of The Story of Fernestine?”
“As per the order, the Rozemyne Workshop and
the workshops in Groschel are on pace to have it printed in time for summer. I
am unsure how much progress those in Groschel have currently made, but we have
already completed our first copies in the Rozemyne Workshop. I have brought
them to be presented during the Archduke Conference and will have them sent to
your room later.”
“Oh my! I thank you ever so much.”
Just as Elvira gave me a giddy smile, the
archducal couple entered the common room. Sylvester looked the same as always.
As for Florencia, she looked much better than she had during the Interduchy
Tournament; her morning sickness had presumably improved. Her belly was a little more prominent than usual, but not enough that
anyone would notice she was pregnant at a glance.
Standing among their retainers were Rihyarda
and Karstedt. I’d seen them last night during dinner, but it was always nice to
know that they were doing well.
“Rozemyne, the Starbind Ceremony is on the
first day,” Sylvester told me. “Don’t forget to prepare. As soon as breakfast
and such is over, you’ll meet with the Sovereign temple in the auditorium where
the ritual is being held. I know that working for the royal family won’t be
easy, but I need you to see this through.”
“Right.”
After that, Sylvester and Florencia continued
to their rooms. Their presence had caused the scholars to pause their work—I
supposed that they hadn’t wanted to rush around in the presence of the
archducal couple—but now they were busily resuming their preparations for
tomorrow. The knights, in contrast, seemed a little bored. That went for my own
knights as well; their only duty right now was to stand around the common room.
“Do the knights not have anything to do
today?” I asked Cornelius.
“We held our meetings before we came here and
won’t have much on our plates until the tea parties and other such gatherings
have been scheduled,” he replied, also looking over the listless knights. There
were far too many of them here in the common room, even for an important job
like guarding the archducal family.
“If there aren’t any rules forbidding adults
from using the Royal Academy’s gathering spot, perhaps you could take the
knights there,” I said. “After getting the archduke’s permission, of course.”
“To hunt?” Angelica asked, immediately forcing
her way into our conversation. Her face had lit up at the very idea. “I’ve
heard that the feybeasts there have gotten much stronger due to your blessings,
Lady Rozemyne. I really want to go.”
The other knights really must have been bored;
I noticed that most of them were listening in as well.
“I cannot go myself, since I need to prepare
for the Starbind Ceremony, but I will at least be able to regenerate the spot
on the final day of the conference. In other words, gather to your heart’s
content. I would also ask that you bring some of what you collect back to me; I
used up a lot of my materials while making everyone’s charms and am looking to
replenish my supply. I can offer financial compensation.”
Angelica started to fidget, as did Damuel.
Cornelius was still, but I could sense that he was raring to go; he must have
wanted to get in on the action as well.
In response to their excitement, Leonore
giggled. “I will stay to guard the room so that the rest of you can hunt.”
“Er, are you sure?” Cornelius asked. “You’d
need to wait here on your own.”
“Yes, but I am sure you will gather for me the
most wondrous feystone,” Leonore chirped with a beaming smile, seeming more
lovey-dovey than I’d ever seen her before.
It was then that Lieseleta entered the common
room to inform me that my room was ready. As I went there with Leonore, I
noticed Elvira out of the corner of my eye; she was eagerly writing something
down, looking as though she had just happened upon an excellent idea for a
story.
Mother, please! Focus on the Archduke Conference!
“It was incredible, Lady Rozemyne!” Angelica
exclaimed during dinner. “There were so many strong feybeasts. I’ve got more
feystones than I can count!”
I really hoped she wasn’t speaking literally.
“I’ve never seen the gathering spot so
abundant,” Damuel added. “The materials are so much better than when I was a
student. I can’t help but feel jealous.”
Cornelius mentioned that it was even more
enriched than when he was a student.
Oh yeah... That whole incident when I pumped my
overflowing mana into the gathering spot happened after his
graduation.
“I want to hunt every single day we’re here,”
Angelica proclaimed.
“That won’t be possible, I’m afraid,” Leonore
interjected. “You will need to guard Lady Rozemyne for the entire duration of
the Archduke Conference. I shall accompany her to the underground archive. You
must protect her in her room.” Her voice was cold and commanding.
“Yes, I know...” Angelica murmured,
crestfallen. Only female knights could guard me in my room, and it would have
been too unreasonable to ask Leonore when she was already due to guard me in
the archive.
“My apologies, Leonore,” I said.
“Think nothing of it,” she replied with a
smile. “Going with you to the archive is nothing compared to the unceasing
training we’re put through at home.”
Beside her, Clarissa and Hartmut, the busiest
of our attending scholars, were wearily having something to eat. “A gathering
spot, blessed by Lady Rozemyne herself...?” Clarissa muttered. “I wish I could
have seen it.”
“We can go after the Starbind Ceremony,”
Hartmut tried to reassure her. “For now, you must pour your all into our
negotiations with Dunkelfelger.”
“You can count on me.”
They were working hard—as were all of my
retainers, in fact. I wanted to prepare some kind of reward for them, but I
wasn’t sure what to choose.
The Italian restaurant is going to be much busier
from this point on, and my retinue is so large now that I wouldn’t be able to
bring everybody at once. Maybe something more material would do...
Alcohol was being served with dinner, which
momentarily surprised me—it never made an appearance during the school term,
for obvious reasons. The usual chatter had also been replaced with more serious
discussions, perhaps because the archducal couple was in attendance. The
scholars and attendants already had arrangements for tea parties and other such
gatherings, and they were all deliberating who would meet with which duchy, and
what meals and sweets they would need to prepare for them. It reminded me of the
pregame meetings for the Interduchy Tournament and made me realize
something—the tournament really was the preliminary stage of the Archduke
Conference.
As I continued to eat, my eyes wandered to
those who had been sixth-years when I first enrolled at the Royal Academy. They
were involving themselves in the conversations and suggesting ideas. Then, I
returned to my room. Ottilie helped me to bathe and informed me that she had
delivered the new Fernestine volume to Elvira, who had apparently been
“positively overjoyed.”
“Lady Hannelore of Dunkelfelger must be
equally as restless; she said it was cruel of the author to end the previous
book at the height of the drama,” I noted. It wasn’t hard to imagine her
trembling in disbelief after finishing the second volume and realizing that the
story was anything but over. “Hopefully our time together in the underground
archive will give me a chance to let her borrow the new one...”
“You might only be going there by royal
decree, but I am glad that you have found personal value in the task as well,”
Ottilie said.
My involvement in the upcoming Starbind
Ceremony and my work in the underground archive were both the result of a royal
decree. Under normal circumstances, someone as young as I wouldn’t be attending
the conference at all. Ottilie seemed to be fairly worried that I might
collapse from stress.
“I must admit, Ottilie... it feels strange
being here with you instead of with Rihyarda.”
“Indeed. What are your plans for this winter?
As you know, there are family matters I must attend to. Will you select
Lieseleta to accompany you? My hands won’t be as tied once Hartmut, like my
older boys, is married and settled, but until then...”
Ottilie had a husband and one son who had yet
to fully leave the nest. She also had the important duty of accompanying
Clarissa on her commute to the castle. She had been able to leave home for the
Archduke Conference, since everyone in her family was participating, but a
long-term work trip simply wouldn’t be viable for her.
“Brunhilde is entering her sixth year at the
Royal Academy next term, so yes, I think Lieseleta will do as my adult
attendant. The problem is what comes next. She will doubtless start to feel the
strain when Bertilde is my only remaining archnoble attendant.” It would be
cruel of me to entrust business with the royal family and top-ranking duchies
to second-year Bertilde, but there were some things that Lieseleta simply
wouldn’t be able to do as a mednoble. “I suppose I will need to think about
taking another adult archattendant... though that will not be easy.”
The purge had already done enough to diminish
the noble population, and the Leisegang nobles were assembling to serve as
Brunhilde’s retainers when she became the aub’s second wife. It wouldn’t be
easy for me to find myself an adult archattendant.
Perhaps I should discuss this with my mothers...
The next day, after breakfast, I cleansed
myself with warm water and then changed into my ceremonial High Bishop robes.
Ottilie and Lieseleta were helping me put on my last few accessories when
Leonore and Angelica came in wearing their ceremonial blue shrine maiden
attire.
Holy cow. They’re way too beautiful. They might
be protecting me, but who’s going to protect them?!
“Aah, how wonderful...” Clarissa sighed. “It
pains me that I won’t be able to stand onstage with you, but I shall burn the
sight of your ceremony into my memory from the audience!”
After receiving that fervent show of support,
I made my way downstairs. Hartmut, Cornelius, and Damuel were waiting for me at
the bottom, all dressed in ceremonial blue priest robes. They had rejuvenation
potions and feystones hanging from their belts, while Angelica had Stenluke on
top of all that. Hartmut was cradling the bible.
“Now then,” I said, turning to Sylvester,
“shall we go?”
“Yeah. Remember not to be rude to the royal
family.”
I nodded, and we started toward the
auditorium. We exited the dormitory and made our way down the halls of the
Royal Academy’s central building. I was so used to the scenery outside the
windows being completely white—ivory buildings blanketed in pale snow—that the
sight of so much greenery caught me entirely by surprise. Vibrant flowers
dotted the landscape, bathed in warm-looking sunlight and swaying in the gentle
breeze.
“Springtime at the Royal Academy is a feast
for the eyes,” I said. “I’m so used to seeing an expanse of white.”
“This is my first time seeing it as well,”
Leonore said from beside me. “It certainly is beautiful.”
We soon arrived at the auditorium, which had
been transformed as it would normally be for the graduation ceremony. At the
far end of the room, by the shrine, I could see the Sovereign priests preparing
for the ritual.
“Lady Rozemyne,” came a voice. I turned to see
a man approaching me—a man whom I recognized as the Sovereign High Priest. He
had attended the ternisbefallen inquiry during my second year, and I could
still picture the scary look that had entered his eyes when I made Flutrane’s
staff. I couldn’t remember his name, though.
“I, Immanuel, will serve as your High Priest
for today. I consider it a blessing to behold with mine own eyes the famed
Saint of Ehrenfest as she performs a religious ceremony.”
Oh, right. Immanuel. How could I forget?
His gray eyes glinted with the same feverish
light as before and seemed unusually... unfocused. I took an instinctive step
back and grabbed the nearest sleeve.
“Lady Rozemyne?”
I gazed up expecting to see Ferdinand, only to
realize that I was clinging to Hartmut instead. “Uh... my mistake.” I let go of
his sleeve, then returned my focus to Immanuel and said, “I see the shrine has
been prepared.”
“We will soon be ready for the ceremony—though
it would appear that you have yet to finish your own preparations, Lady
Rozemyne. You do not have the crown of Light or the cape of Darkness.”
I cocked my head at him, unsure what he meant.
There were already statues of the Goddess of Light and God of Darkness on the
shrine, the former with its crown and the latter with its cape.
“The shrine appears to have them already.”
“I refer not to the shrine but to your own
person.”
“The High Bishop does not wear divine
instruments during Ehrenfest’s Starbind Ceremonies.” In fact, they didn’t wear
divine instruments during any ceremonies or rituals.
At most, they held the chalice for Spring Prayer.
“How lamentable...” Immanuel said with a heavy
sigh, then shook his head. “Lady Eglantine assured us that Ehrenfest had
preserved its ancient religious customs, but how can that be when you know not
of such basic arrangements? Does your bible not detail the steps of this
ceremony?”
“At the very least, it does not mention High
Bishops needing to wear divine instruments. I also spoke with Aub Ehrenfest
about the Royal Academy’s past Starbind Ceremonies, and it would seem that
there is no precedent for what you are suggesting.” Sylvester surely would have
said something if the High Bishop had worn such bizarre attire during Prince
Anastasius and Eglantine’s Starbinding.
“We obtained this knowledge from an ancient
text we discovered during the summer, which detailed the ceremony in question.
We believed that such knowledge would already be in your bible, which is so
much more detailed than our own. Perhaps it resides in a section you cannot
read.”
Oh, right. We made it seem as though I couldn’t
read the whole thing.
Hartmut then entered the conversation. “If the
High Bishop did not wear any divine instruments last year, then I see no reason
for us to do things differently.”
“Oh?” Immanuel replied, then raised an eyebrow
at him. “Listen well. As I am sure you know, Lady Detlinde activated a magic
circle during her coming-of-age ceremony. Though none believe our claims that
its purpose was to choose the next Zent, the fact remains that it appeared. Our
texts in the Sovereign temple do not lie.”
From there, he launched into a passionate rant
about the Sovereign temple’s traditions, his gray eyes swirling all the while.
“So that we might embrace the legitimate Zent with the proper ritual, we have
begun investigating ceremonies at length. That is why we listened to King
Trauerqual’s request and decreed that the Saint of Ehrenfest would serve as
today’s High Bishop—for she has the power to perform proper rituals. If we were
mistaken, then we have made a fundamental error from the very beginning!”
Mm, sounds like some stuff went down between the
royal family and the Sovereign temple.
The royal family wanted me to bless the
ceremony so that Prince Sigiswald would be recognized as the next king. The
Sovereign temple wanted to revive old rituals in service of a legitimate Zent
but lacked the mana that was necessary. It just so happened that their goals
both required me to perform today’s ceremony as the High Bishop.
“First, allow me to see this text you have
found,” I said.
“That will not do. If you do not have the
divine instruments, then seeing them will change nothing. The Sovereign High
Bishop will suffice for a standard ceremony.”
Hartmut’s eyebrow twitched; not only was
Immanuel trying to cast me aside now that I wouldn’t meet his demands, but he
was also refusing to show me the text he was so determined to follow. I took a
step forward before he could respond.
“Immanuel,” I said with a smile, while raising
a hand slightly to hold Hartmut back. “I now understand the extent of your
passion for religious ceremonies. If the Sovereign temple believes I should
wear the crown of Light and the cape of Darkness, then wear them I shall.”
“Is that so?” Immanuel asked, his tone
mocking. “But will you be able to make it to Ehrenfest’s temple and back in
time for the ceremony?”
I shook my head and made my schtappe appear in
my right hand. “No need. I can simply create them myself. Finsumhang.”
In the blink of an eye, the cape of Darkness appeared. I threw it over my
shoulders and fastened its golden brooch at my neck; then it automatically
adjusted its length to fit me perfectly.
Immanuel gawked at me while I produced a
second schtappe, cast beleuchkrone, and put on the golden crown it produced.
“This will suffice, I assume? Now, show me
this text. I will need to see it before I can perform this ancient ceremony of
yours.”
At once, Immanuel guided me to the High
Bishop’s waiting spot near the shrine, then pridefully showed me the text in
question. It was inscribed on an ivory slate, which looked almost identical to
the ones from the underground archive.
“This is it,” he said. “I am unsure whether
the text is legible to you, but...”
“It is.” I took the slate and dismissed the
divine instruments; there was no need to maintain them now that I had the
document.
“The divine instruments!” Immanuel exclaimed.
“It would be a waste of mana to maintain them
unnecessarily. If, as you said, this slate mentions that they are required, then I will wear them.”
I scanned the text on the white tablet. An
observer might have assumed that I was slacking off—after all, I was just
standing here and reading while everyone around me was preparing for the
ceremony—but there wouldn’t even be a ceremony unless I, the High Bishop, knew
how to perform it. It was my duty to read.
“Eheheh. Eheheheh...”
Ancient language could be categorized into
several distinct periods, and this text was written in a style that I immediately
recognized; someone had presumably transcribed it from the underground archive.
At the very least, it was written the same as the other ritual descriptions we
had seen there.
Still, interesting to know that there are people
in the Sovereign temple who can read this...
From what I remembered, there wasn’t anyone in
the royal family who could understand ancient language. They really would have
benefited from a cooperative relationship with the Sovereign temple, but
alas... Perhaps the Sovereign temple had rebuffed the royal family for its
false Zent, or the royal family hadn’t expected anyone from the Sovereign
temple to be able to read the old texts. Maybe there hadn’t been any
communication between them at all.
In any case, the Sovereign temple would probably
refuse to help in the slightest, even though the king is killing himself to
sustain the country.
Putting all of that aside, as Immanuel had
said, this text was certainly about the Starbind Ceremony. The simple
description was identical to the one I knew, with the exception of the crown of
Light and the cape of Darkness. The prayer was the same as well—and, since a
single tablet could only hold so much text, it didn’t take me long to finish
reading it.
This is strange, though. In Ehrenfest, the
Starbind Ceremony is a nighttime ritual.
According to the bible, the God of Darkness
had wanted to bless the marriage of the God of Life and the Goddess of Earth.
Their union had taken place at night to make the process easier for him.
Ehrenfest had maintained that tradition, but the Archduke Conference’s Starbind
Ceremony was to take place at third bell. Personally, I thought it was a bad
idea to hold a ceremony for the royal family during the day. The tablet didn’t
say anything about when it should take place, though,
so my questions went unanswered.
“Is something the matter, Lady Rozemyne?”
Leonore asked, leaning over.
I shook my head. “It would seem that the
prayers and steps are identical, apart from the inclusion of the divine
instruments.” Then I returned the slate to Immanuel.
Well, whatever. Following these steps will
satisfy the Sovereign temple, and the most I need to do for the royal family is
bless Prince Sigiswald.
Although it seemed peculiar to be holding the
ceremony in broad daylight, rescheduling it wasn’t an option; the archdukes of
every duchy had already arrived at the Royal Academy. Even broaching the
subject would be a waste of time.
“For now,” I said, “I shall inform the royal
family.”
Satisfied with what I’d seen on the slate, I
sent an ordonnanz to Anastasius, telling him that the Sovereign temple was
trying to revive an ancient ritual and that they had asked me to assist them.
“The text appears to be legitimate,” I said. “Do you think I should carry out
their request? They have told me that, if we perform the usual ritual, they
will get the Sovereign High Bishop to perform in my stead.”
The royal family were the ones who wanted me
to bless the ceremony. As such, it seemed only natural that they should speak
with the Sovereign temple themselves to decide which ritual was to be chosen
and who would perform it. It wasn’t as though I wanted
to be today’s High Bishop. In fact, now that I’d read that tablet, I didn’t
even mind the thought of being sent home. I didn’t want to be wrapped up in a
power dispute between the royal family and the Sovereign temple anyway.
“Stay where you are” was the prince’s
response. “I will be there promptly.”
To my disappointment, it seemed that I would
need to stay. I turned to Immanuel and Hartmut, who were discussing the ritual.
They seemed to be in dispute about who would perform the High Priest’s duties.
Hartmut kept double-checking the points at which I would need support, while
Immanuel insisted that the Sovereign temple needed to maintain its presence
through the High Priest.
“Is Rozemyne here?” Anastasius asked as he
approached.
“Delighted to see you again, Prince
Anastasius,” I replied. We greeted each other, after which I elected to let him
and Immanuel decide what role I would play.
I won’t go out of my way to say this, since it
would obviously anger them, but I think the royal family was too sloppy with
its ordering around of the Sovereign temple. Just look at what a mess this has
turned into.
The Sovereign High Bishop had performed these
ceremonies for years without fail, so it seemed pretty obvious that he wouldn’t
want some outsider swooping in and taking his place. To make matters worse,
said outsider hadn’t even been informed of crucial details, which had resulted
in her being scolded. If the royal family really wanted me to perform this
blessing, the least they could have done was keep a closer eye on the
situation.
Though I suppose it all just goes to show how
little the temple thinks of them.
“So, am I to perform this ancient ritual or
not?” I asked.
Anastasius paused, then said, “Yes. We are
better prepared for an unexpected incident than we were with Detlinde. After
all, even a fool could tell that, with you involved, something bizarre is bound
to happen.”
The nerve. If he was so concerned about
“something bizarre” happening, then why was I here in the first place? Had he
forgotten that he was the one ordering me to do this?
“So, Rozemyne... what unusual consequences can
we expect when you perform the ceremony clad in the divine instruments?”
Anastasius asked.
“I don’t know.”
His eyes widened. “You said that you read the
text, did you not?”
That was true, but the tablet had provided
only an overview of the ceremony. It hadn’t gone into any considerable detail
or mentioned what might happen, and it wasn’t like I could predict the future.
“I can confirm that it was about the Starbind
Ceremony,” I said, “so the wedding itself should proceed without issue.”
My explanation elicited a drawn-out groan from
Anastasius, but he eventually conceded. “As long as a Starbind Ceremony of some
kind is performed, that will do. The aubs will be here soon... and we of the
royal family will enter afterward. I must go for now. Stay here, and take care
to keep between the lines.”
After watching Anastasius turn away and
swiftly depart, his cape fluttering behind him, I observed the aubs steadily
streaming into the auditorium. I could tell which duchies they were from by the
colors of their capes. The occasion greatly resembled the Royal Academy’s
coming-of-age ceremony, but with adults instead of students.
Loud chimes filled the air, indicating that it
was third bell. Not everyone had entered the room yet, but those who hadn’t
soon picked up the pace.
Once the colors of every duchy could be seen
in the audience, Immanuel stood in front of the shrine as the High Priest and
waved a magic tool covered in bells. The door opened in turn, and in came the
royal family. There was the Zent, his first wife, Anastasius, and Eglantine,
and they all gracefully headed to their seats. For a moment, I wondered why the
second and third wives weren’t present, but then I remembered that only first
wives attended the Archduke Conference.
The bell rang again, this time to mark my
entrance. I stood up and made my way over to the shrine. An audible stir ran
through the crowd; it seemed that not every duchy had been told that I would be
performing the ceremony as the High Bishop.
I walked as quickly as I could while still
being careful not to tread on my robes. Hartmut followed alongside me with the
bible in hand, while my knights flocked around me in their ceremonial blue
robes. It was an unusual sight, to be sure. The High Bishop would normally
enter alone, but Hartmut’s obstinacy and unrelenting insistence had resulted in
our current formation.
Hartmut was extremely wary of the Sovereign
temple. When its members had tried to argue that the High Bishop should enter
alone, he had shut them down with a single argument: “Lady Rozemyne is no
ordinary High Bishop; she is an archduke candidate as well.” Then, afterward,
he had approached my guard knights and said, “Your most important duty is
keeping the Sovereign priests away from our lady. If anyone so much as touches
her without permission, sever their arms immediately.”
Of course, cutting their arms off sounds a bit
extreme. Immanuel does creep me out, though, so I appreciate having everyone
nearby.
I arrived in front of the shrine, at which
point Hartmut gave me the bible. Leonore adjusted the hem of my robes for me,
then stood off to the side.
Immanuel waited for us to complete our
preparations, then narrowed his eyes slightly and gestured with his hand. He
was signaling me to put on the divine instruments. In response, Hartmut
signaled back at him, urging him to start without them; he understood just how
much mana it required to maintain the instruments, so the later we could bring
them out, the better.
There was a repetitive back-and-forth of waves
as the two High Priests tried to out-stubborn each other. It wasn’t long before
some impatient muttering came from the audience, which spurred Immanuel to
break the stalemate.
“The Starbind Ceremony shall now begin. Brides
and grooms, enter!”
Five couples entered, with Sigiswald and
Adolphine at their head. The nobles clapped and cheered in support of the
unions, giving rise to a most joyous atmosphere.
I wish I could have blessed Ferdinand...
He obviously wasn’t among the group of
couples, since his marriage to Detlinde was being delayed. This had been my one
and only chance as well; the royal family had asked me here specifically to
bless Sigiswald, so they were unlikely to summon me for any future ceremonies.
People my age weren’t even supposed to be here.
Come on, Aub Ahrensbach—why couldn’t you have
lived just a little while longer?
Ferdinand would have been able to marry
Detlinde and receive a hidden room, while I would have been able to give him
the largest blessing I could manage. In other words, I wouldn’t have needed to
worry about him as much.
His timing couldn’t have been worse...
I sighed—but then I realized that I was the
only sour face in the room and quickly forced a smile. I made eye contact with
Sigiswald and Adolphine, both of whom had climbed up onto the stage, and gave
them a congratulatory nod.
I slotted a key into the bible on the reading
stand, opened it, and then turned the pages. A shriek that I recognized as
having come from Fraularm echoed throughout the hall... but nothing followed
it, so I began the ceremony.
Out of the corner of my eye, I could see
Immanuel still signaling for me to put on the divine instruments, looking
highly unamused. Unfortunately for him, the wait would continue; I needed to
use a voice-amplifying magic tool when telling the biblical story.
He sure is being fussy. I made it clear that I’ll
wear them when I need to, didn’t I...?
Ignoring his nonstop gestures, I used a
voice-amplifying magic tool and started to tell the tale of the God of Darkness
and Goddess of Light. The God of Life sought to marry the Goddess of Earth, and
the supreme gods granted their permission. In the meantime, Hartmut and
Cornelius prepared the same kind of magic pens I’d previously used to sign my
name with my mana.
“Now, let us bless the birth of these
newlyweds in the image of the gods,” I said.
I took a step back, and my guard knights
shrouded me behind the large sleeves of their robes so that I could put on the
divine instruments. At times like this, I appreciated being small; it made
things a lot more convenient.
My reappearance wearing the cape and crown
elicited quite a response from the audience. Immanuel gave a satisfied smile—he
had probably been worried that I wouldn’t use the divine instruments at all—and
I continued the ceremony.
“Come forth, Prince Sigiswald, the first of
Zent Trauerqual. Come forth, Lady Adolphine, the daughter of Aub Drewanchel.”
The couple snapped out of their trance and
advanced to the shrine. “Anastasius told me what was going to happen,”
Sigiswald said, “but it still surprises me to see you wearing the divine
instruments.”
“The shrine has identical copies; are yours
from Ehrenfest?” Adolphine asked.
They’re both my schtappes...
I couldn’t admit that here and now, so I
merely smiled, avoided the question, and presented them with a contract to
confirm their wills. It disappeared in a burst of golden flames the moment they
signed their names, as did the contracts of the couples who signed their names
afterward.
“May the High Bishop bless these newlyweds,”
Immanuel said.
I raised my hands and started to pray. “O
mighty King and Queen of the endless skies, O God of Darkness and Goddess of
Light, hear my prayers...”
All of a sudden, the golden brooch at my neck
came apart on its own, and the cape of Darkness flew up to the ceiling without
so much as a sound. As I stared upward, still in prayer, the cape extended in
every direction and created its very own night sky.
“May you grant your blessings to the birth of
new unions.”
Next, the crown lifted off of my head and up
into the air, where it began to shine like the sun ablaze. The presence of the
God of Darkness engulfed the auditorium, while the Goddess of Light bathed us
all in her radiance.
Ah, the supreme gods...
They were here; there wasn’t a single doubt in
my mind. I continued praying to them.
“May they who offer their prayers and
gratitude to you be blessed with your divine protection.”
The night sky contracted into a single point,
while the bright ring emanating from the crown began to spin. Immediately
after, pillars of Darkness and Light shot up toward the ceiling and flew off
somewhere; it seemed to be a pretty common occurrence during the Royal
Academy’s ceremonies, so I thought nothing of it. Most of the remaining light
twisted around itself, overlapping and dancing through the air, and turned into
a glistening dust that rained down upon the newlyweds. That part also happened
when the ritual was performed in Ehrenfest.
Despite my initial concerns, I now understood
why they didn’t bother waiting until night to hold the ceremony here at the
Royal Academy—as long as you were wearing the divine instruments, the night sky
came to you.
There was the sensation of my schtappes going
back inside of me, and with that...
It’s done.
The ceremony was complete, as was the task
that the royal family had given me. I sighed in relief and muttered,
“Ceremonies here at the Royal Academy always end up being so much flashier than
when they’re performed in Ehrenfest.”
“And so much more divine,” Hartmut added with
a smile. He was standing right next to me and was likely the only one who had
caught my remark. He took the bible from its reading stand, then offered me his
hand and said, “Let us depart while everyone is in awe.”
An excellent suggestion!
Together, we moved into a break room near the
auditorium. Hartmut handed the bible to Leonore, then ordered Damuel to pick me
up and take me back to the dormitory as soon as possible.
“Lady Rozemyne,” Hartmut said, “please allow
me to borrow Cornelius for the cleanup and any incoming questions.”
“Certainly, but...”
“You should take your leave now, before any
troublesome individuals appear. It might be a bit of a detour, but return
through this door instead.”
Had they all planned this in advance? Angelica
gripped Stenluke by the hilt, ready to fight at a moment’s notice, and took the
lead as we started down the hall. Damuel was hot on her heels; I was still in
his arms, trying to wrap my head around the situation; and Leonore was bringing
up the rear with a reassuring smile.
“This is merely for safety’s sake,” Leonore
assured me. “Hartmut is tremendously wary of Immanuel of the Sovereign temple.
He described the man as ‘an incredibly dangerous fanatic.’”
I was told that Immanuel got an even more
intense look in his eye the longer he spent with me, especially now that he
knew I could wear the divine instruments and read the ancient language the
royal family hadn’t been able to understand. Hartmut saw him as a genuine
threat right now.
Well... for Hartmut of all people to have called
him a fanatic, it really must be serious. Or, uh... maybe that was a little
cruel of me. Hartmut never has the same crazed look in his eye as Immanuel, nor
is he anywhere near as terrifying...
“It would seem he is planning to take you from
Ehrenfest and put you in the Sovereign temple,” Damuel explained. “Their issue
is that, while they can understand the ancient texts and gain valuable
knowledge from them, they lack the mana necessary to actually perform the
ceremonies. They wish to use yours to find the country a true
Zent.”
Hartmut had ended up hearing this straight
from the horse’s mouth. Immanuel had said to him that, in these dire times,
what Yurgenschmidt needed more than anything else was a true Zent. He had
proclaimed that Ehrenfest should support the Sovereign temple in its study of
ancient ceremonies and that it was Hartmut’s duty as our High Priest to
instruct Aub Ehrenfest to send me there. “A true Zent must be
obtained,” he had said. “For the sake of Yurgenschmidt
in its entirety.”
Hartmut
had refused with a smile. “I act only for Lady
Rozemyne’s sake, and she wishes to stay in Ehrenfest.”
“Well, can’t we just ignore them?” I asked.
“We shouldn’t have much trouble dealing with the Sovereign temple.”
“Indeed, if we were only dealing with the
temple, that approach would work,” Leonore said. “The problem is that the royal
family is just as passionate about obtaining the Grutrissheit and a true Zent.
Nobody can predict what decrees might be made when these two groups’ interests
align. Hartmut is more concerned about that than anything.”
Ehrenfest did not have the means to refuse a
royal decree. Hartmut was of the opinion that the royal family was making too
many demands of us, even while they doubtless understood the danger of such
oppression.
“You may have a personal connection to the
royal family, but still—never before have they made so many requests of a given
individual.”
It was also by their order that I was going to
be reading documents in the underground archive. I was still underage, so I
shouldn’t have received permission to go there to begin with. I was also still
a student, which made my involvement in these matters extremely unconventional.
The royal family was making these requests of me even at the cost of breaking
tradition.
Leonore gave me a troubled smile. “Hartmut
would never tell you this, since he knows how much you look forward to visiting
the archive, but he is very uneasy about the royal family’s willingness to
involve you in old ceremonies and order you to perform translations while you
are already so busy with temple work and merchant business back in Ehrenfest.
Although there is no helping a royal decree, your duties back home are far more
important.”
“I suppose...” I replied. Helping out in the
castle would definitely benefit Ehrenfest more than assisting the royal family.
I started to feel a bit guilty about how much I enjoyed going to the
underground archive.
“Um, er...” Damuel fumbled, likely searching
for a way to ease the oppressive atmosphere that had swept over us all. His
eyes wandered, then he smiled and said, “You certainly have gotten heavier,
Lady Rozemyne.”
The silence that followed was deafening. It
was obvious that he had meant to say something to the tune of “Oh, how you’ve
grown!” or “You’re so much taller now!” but being told that I was heavier was as pleasant as a knife to the chest.
“L-Let me down,” I said.
“No, no, Lady Rozemyne,” Leonore interjected.
“Damuel... perhaps women avoid you because you say such cruel things to them?”
“E-Excuse me?” Damuel floundered, his eyes
flitting between Leonore and me. “I was just glad to see that Lady Rozemyne is
growing...”
“I understand what you meant and that you
intended to lighten the atmosphere, but telling a girl that she has gotten heavier is without a doubt one of the worst things you could
say.”
“Sorry...” Damuel muttered, hanging his head.
By looking so sad, he actually succeeded in lightening the mood—even if only a
little.
We giggled as we turned the corner, but then
Angelica came to an abrupt halt. Immanuel and several priests were blocking the
hall ahead. Damuel gripped me tighter.
“Oh, Lady Rozemyne,” Immanuel said. “You seem
to be in quite the hurry. I was hoping to thank you for performing the ceremony
for us...”
“Indeed,” I replied. “I am feeling quite
unwell from using too much mana, so I am in the process of returning to my
dormitory. How shameful that you have seen me in such a state...” My
explanation was little more than an attempt to buy time while I racked my brain
for a way to get past their defensive line.
“Lady Rozemyne, the Sovereign temple contains
many more ancient documents. Please, come and read them with us.”
I went to throw my hands up in celebration,
but Damuel stopped me by swiftly tightening his arms around me.
Oops. Thanks.
“The royal family declares our documents to be
fake,” Immanuel continued, “so they refuse to pay us any mind. We were hoping
that you would read them and prove that we speak only the divine truth.”
“My apologies. I am so unwell that I cannot
even think straight. Furthermore, I believe that such requests should be made
through Aub Ehrenfest.” I then signaled Angelica with my eyes, telling her to
advance. She nodded and continued onward.
“Allow me to show you a most excellent place
to rest,” Immanuel said, and extended a hand to me. In the blink of an eye,
Angelica had unsheathed Stenluke.
“If you touch Lady Rozemyne without
permission, I will cut off your arm.”
Immanuel gulped. He must not have expected
Angelica to be a knight, since she was still wearing her blue shrine maiden
robes. Leonore took advantage of the shock and confusion to get past him, with
Damuel following close behind.
It wasn’t until we were far away from the
Sovereign priests that Angelica sheathed Stenluke again.
Work in the Underground Archive
“We practically blinked and you were gone,”
Sylvester complained. “You didn’t even give us any notice. D’you know how much
trouble that caused us?”
Apparently, after my abrupt departure,
Sylvester and Florencia had been subjected to a barrage of questions by the
nobles sitting around them. Pale-faced, they had repeated again and again that
such information was known only to the royal family—but that hadn’t been
enough. The commotion had followed them all the way back to the dormitory.
I was sitting in the common room, at
Sylvester’s order, with literally everyone from Ehrenfest who had come for the
Archduke Conference watching me. Being stuck with so many adults was more than
a little intense; unlike the other students, they weren’t at all used to
royalty-related matters and other strange incidents, so they were staring at me
with stiff expressions.
Sylvester shook his head, exasperated. “Under
normal circumstances, we would have spent the time after the ceremony weighing
up the other duchies while arranging tea parties and meals, but that was
obviously out of the question. I demand an explanation. The conference starts
after lunch, and I’m not looking forward to it.”
“I incorporated into the ceremony some ancient
practices the Sovereign temple found written on similarly ancient documents,” I
said. “The Sovereign High Bishop lacked the mana to perform them himself, so
the temple asked me to act in his stead. It was at the royal family’s behest
that I agreed.”
From there, I explained the irritating
exchanges that had occurred, and stressed that I had spoken to Anastasius
before taking any action. I had been willing to leave the ceremony to the
Sovereign High Bishop and go home, but the prince had personally opposed the
idea.
“Today’s incident only happened because Prince
Anastasius told me to oblige the Sovereign temple,” I said. “Thus, if you have
any further complaints, please address them to the royal family. The ancient
text I was shown listed the steps of the ceremony and nothing more, so I did
not know what would happen before I performed it.”
“You performed the ceremony without even
knowing what it would do?!” Sylvester exclaimed. Florencia looked equally
shocked.
“Yes,” I replied with a nod. “The text did not
offer an explanation, but the royal family still decided that it was worth the
risk. Any questions the other duchies might have should go to them.”
The royals had tasked me with carrying out the
annoying request, so they could take care of the fallout. I didn’t expect them
or the Sovereign temple to be able to give any satisfying answers, but that
didn’t matter; there was no reason for Ehrenfest to go through all this trouble
when it wasn’t our fault to begin with.
“In essence, the ceremony can be explained as
simply as the ritual that Dunkelfelger performed during the Interduchy
Tournament,” I said. “We used divine instruments to offer mana to the gods, and
our observance of ancient practices produced the results you saw today.”
Sylvester started to look more convinced. He
could probably remember Dunkelfelger’s demonstration.
“In truth,” I continued, “I’m more concerned
about the Sovereign temple. They want to use these revived rituals to obtain a
true Zent.”
“Do take care with the Sovereign temple,”
Hartmut interjected. “Immanuel is not one to heed the words of others. I am
certain that he will go to any length to obtain what he desires, and our common
sense as nobles will not apply to him.” He spoke with a severe expression,
having been on guard throughout the entire ceremony. His concerns had only
increased after Immanuel predicted and attempted to block our secondary escape
route.
He continued, “Immanuel seeks to control Lady
Rozemyne, since she has the mana necessary to revive the ancient ceremonies
that survive through the Sovereign temple’s records. Their ceremonies could
indeed play an important role in the procurement of a true Zent, but such
concerns fall to the royal family and the Sovereign temple, not
an archduke candidate from Ehrenfest.”
Asking for my assistance might have been
considered reasonable under more fortunate circumstances, but Ehrenfest didn’t
have the resources to be fretting about such things. Ferdinand was now living
in Ahrensbach, we were still dealing with the aftermath of the purge, and the
duchy was suffering a lack of both mana and manpower.
Hartmut looked squarely at Sylvester. “There
is a very real chance that Lady Rozemyne might be stolen from us—the royal
family or the Sovereign temple need only find an excuse that the other duchies
will accept. If we hope to prioritize her safety above all else, then we must
consider refusing this request for her to help out in the library.”
Most of the adults recoiled at the mere
thought of opposing the royal family. But as they murmured their disapproval,
Sylvester closed his eyes and contemplated the situation.
“I know that many of you think it would be too
rude of us to refuse the royal family,” he eventually said, “but I’m going to
protest if necessary. I’ll even bring up how they extorted us to take
Ferdinand.”
“I thank you,” Hartmut replied.
“You were phenomenal,
Lady Rozemyne!” Clarissa exclaimed the moment we sat down for lunch. She had
watched the ceremony as a member of Ehrenfest and was positively enraptured.
“Your every movement was so transcendently elegant! And your dazzling white
robes—oh, how you stood out amid that sea of weary blue! All eyes were
naturally drawn to you, and—”
“Clarissa. Calm down,” Ottilie said. “That
‘sea of weary blue’ was Lady Rozemyne’s guard knights. In fact, you could
barely even see her when she was surrounded.”
“Were your eyes not even open?!” Clarissa
exclaimed, refusing to heed Ottilie’s warning in the slightest. “Did you not
see Lady Rozemyne’s divine form? Did you not witness the divinity and
compassion radiating from her expression? I am at a loss for words.”
As am I. Did you seriously assign that much
meaning to a simple expression?
“When I saw Hartmut take Lady Rozemyne’s hand
and guide her onto the stage, I felt Eifersuneid let loose his hair and spread
his cape wide. Oh, but then Lady Rozemyne started speaking to the supreme gods,
and my attention was drawn to her cute, captivating voice—a present from
Kunstzeal, no less!”
Er... sorry, Clarissa. I can tell that you’re
complimenting me, but I don’t have a clue what you’re trying to say. Is
Eifersuneid letting his hair loose a good thing? Or is the part about his cape
what matters most?
With written text, I could observe the flow of
each line and then extrapolate the significance from there. That wasn’t an
option when listening to someone speak; the words all came pouring out at once,
and there was no time to analyze them when you were expected to give a prompt
response. To make matters worse, sometimes a person would mention one of the
gods, then start bringing up several more before you could even wrap your head
around the first. It was all much too confusing.
Save me, Ottilie...
I turned to my likely savior, but she had
already resumed eating—a sign that she had completely given up on calming down
Clarissa. Meanwhile, Hartmut was adding fuel to the fire, peppering the
conversation with small remarks about what he had seen from the shrine.
“Indeed, one can tell at a glance that Lady
Rozemyne is a divine avatar of Mestionora,” he said, “and it seemed entirely as
if the supreme gods were answering her call. How could anyone forget the cape
of Darkness fluttering into the air? Oh, one could fill any number of books
trying to capture the divinity of that moment when she recreated the night sky!
Do you not agree that even Grammaratur would struggle to put into words the
beauty of the scene?”
“Yes, truly!” Clarissa exulted. “The stars
twinkled deep within the bosom of the God of Darkness, while the Goddess of
Light...”
I don’t understaaand... I’m just going to leave
them to their own little world.
One thing was crystal clear to me, though:
Hartmut and Clarissa really were perfect for each other. I left them to their
excited chattering and turned to Lieseleta, who had also gone to the auditorium
to watch the ceremony.
“So, what did you think?” I asked. “Ceremonies
at the Royal Academy are always so fancy, aren’t they?” I was hoping to secure
her agreement as someone who had once been my fellow student, but she gave me a
troubled smile instead.
“Lady Rozemyne, the word ‘fancy’ is less than
ideal... I would suggest ‘wondrous’ or perhaps ‘mystical’ instead. It truly was
a sight to behold.”
“Yes, mystical!” Clarissa exclaimed, her blue
eyes sparkling as she butted into our conversation. “The mystical gods made
their presence known! We could practically feel them among us! I would expect
nothing less from you, Lady Rozemyne. You can converse even with the gods
themselves!”
“That was not what we
were referring to...” I said. “Clarissa, should you not save all this gushing
about the ceremony for later, when you can more freely discuss it with Hartmut?
For now, focus on your food. You haven’t taken so much as a moment to savor
it.”
Today’s lunch was especially extravagant,
serving as both a celebratory start to the Archduke Conference and an
opportunity for the duchy’s nobles to socialize. Clarissa’s raving had gone
from being amusing to an annoying buzz in my ears, which was why I’d indirectly
suggested that she button it.
“Worry not—any meal is delicious as long as I
can eat it while talking about you, Lady Rozemyne.”
“I see. Then should we ask the chefs to start
preparing less appetizing dishes for you?”
“My apologies. I’ll eat quietly.”
There were audible sighs of relief as Clarissa
finally stopped rambling. I couldn’t help but wonder how Dunkelfelger had
managed to put up with her for so long.
It was the start of a new day. According to
the reports I’d received, Ehrenfest had gotten plenty of very curious questions
during the previous afternoon’s meetings, but they had all been avoided with
the use of three template answers: “It was at the royal family’s request that
she included those ancient customs,” “The pillar of light was identical in
nature to the one that Dunkelfelger produced during the Interduchy Tournament,”
and “Please ask the royal family for any further details.” We had also received
more meal invitations than last year, but it wasn’t anything that we couldn’t
manage, apparently.
“Hartmut, Clarissa, please perform your duties
as scholars with the utmost diligence,” I said.
“Understood.”
I saw the adults off at third bell, then spent
some time reading in my room. I would only be going to the library once
everyone had reached their destinations and the halls were quiet.
“Lady Hannelore is going to be there,” I said,
“so don’t forget to bring the third volume of The Story of
Fernestine.”
The guard knights held a meeting while
Lieseleta and Ottilie were preparing.
“Only archknights can enter the underground
archive, so Leonore and I will accompany Lady Rozemyne,” Cornelius said.
“Damuel, Angelica, stand guard outside the library while we are inside.”
“If anyone suspicious arrives, inform us at
once,” Leonore added. “We will not be able to run or hide without first leaving
the archive. Though I cannot even begin to imagine what manner of rampage Lady
Rozemyne would unleash if the library were to be used as a battlefield.”
Damuel and Angelica nodded.
“I much prefer the sound of guarding the
library to spending the day there,” Angelica happily declared, at which point
an ordonnanz from Solange flew into the room. Hannelore had arrived.
“Let us go, then.”
And so, with my four guard knights and two
attendants in tow, I made my way to the library.
“Here, milady.”
“Mana please, milady.”
Schwartz and Weiss had come to welcome me, so
I stroked their foreheads and supplied them with mana. Lieseleta broke into a
smile at the sight of the shumils, but Ottilie blankly stared at them; no
amount of forewarning could have prepared her for seeing the library’s magic
tools greet me as their lady.
“Lady Rozemyne. Welcome,” Solange said.
“Everyone is waiting in the office. There are so many people today that I must
ask you to bring no more than three retainers with you.”
As it turned out, Hannelore wasn’t the only
one who had arrived; the royal family was here too. Damuel and Angelica stepped
outside the library to guard the door, while Lieseleta smiled and stepped away
to prepare tea. That left me with Ottilie, Cornelius, and Leonore.
I entered the office with my three retainers
to find Anastasius, Eglantine, Hildebrand, and Hannelore. Also with them was a
woman I didn’t recognize. Her hair was up and a very similar color to
Hildebrand’s, while her eyes were redder than Hannelore’s and suggested a
strong, cutthroat personality. She was probably in her mid-twenties.
“So, Rozemyne,” Anastasius said, “yesterday’s
ceremony took an unusual turn. We expected as much, but it produced even better
results than we had anticipated.”
What does that even mean...?
I didn’t know what Anastasius was referring
to. It seemed to be positive, though, so I decided not to give it any more
thought. Instead, I signaled with my eyes for him to introduce me to the new
woman.
“Aah, this is Lady Magdalena, Father’s third
wife and Hildebrand’s mother. As someone born in Dunkelfelger, she is well
versed in ancient language and will be contributing to today’s translations.”
At once, I knelt before her and performed the
usual greeting. “I am Rozemyne, an archduke candidate of Ehrenfest. May I pray
for a blessing in appreciation of this serendipitous meeting, ordained by the
pure rivers flowing from Flutrane the Goddess of Water?”
“You may. Lady Rozemyne... I have heard much
about you from the princes and am delighted that we can finally meet. I look
forward to working with you during this Archduke Conference.”
It was time to move. We passed through the
closed-stack archive and went down into the basement. Hortensia took the lead,
since she was an archlibrarian, with Schwartz and Weiss hopping along after
her. Even now, status was important. I watched as the royals spoke with their
retainers who had been waiting outside, then descended.
“I heard about this place, but I’m still
surprised that it exists below the library...” Cornelius said with a noticeably
stern expression. He then muttered that Leonore had been correct in saying that
we would have nowhere to run if we were attacked.
Hortensia, Hannelore, and I slotted our keys
into the metallic-looking wall, which was then covered in complex patterns as
lines of mana darted along its surface. Then, with a creaking sound, it split
into three rotating sections. Seeing the underground archive appear behind the
transparent wall always made my heart race.
Schwartz entered, while Weiss waited
outside—as was normally the case. Retainers weren’t allowed any farther, and
everyone else surpassed me in status, so I needed to enter next to prove that
it was safe. I took some paper and ink, then passed through the transparent
wall.
“Milady. Not enough prayer,” Schwartz said, as
usual.
“I’ll work on that,” I replied while placing
ink and paper on the table.
“Hannelore. Not enough elements. Not enough
prayer.”
Hannelore was likewise used to Schwartz’s
remark. She ignored it and instead prepared some writing utensils.
“Oh, Prince Hildebrand?”
After turning to see who was coming next, I’d
seen Hildebrand reach for the transparent wall with a tense look on his face.
He had been knocked back during his previous attempt, but now he passed through
without incident.
“Hildebrand. Not enough elements. Not enough
prayer.”
“I got in...” Hildebrand muttered. He hadn’t
reacted to Schwartz in the slightest; instead, he was merely staring at his
hands, his expression a mixture of surprise and joy. After a moment, he turned
to Magdalena, who was entering after him, and cried, “I got in, Mother!”
“Well done, Hildebrand. Your hard work has
paid off.”
“Magdalena. Not enough elements. Not enough
prayer.”
As it turned out, Hildebrand had told the king
that he wanted to obtain more mana so that he could help out as much as
possible, which had led to him being taught the royal family’s mana compression
method. His mother, Magdalena, had taught him a Dunkelfelger mana compression
method as well.
“I learned some ancient letters too,” he said,
“since I want to be able to help transcribe the documents.”
Of course, there were other Sovereign nobles
who could read the old language, but they weren’t able to enter the archive.
Hildebrand would simply be transcribing the documents as they were, then his
transcriptions would be translated at a later date.
Magdalena laughed. “King Trauerqual asked me
to enter as well, so I took part in my first refresher lesson of ancient
language in quite some time.”
Next, Eglantine and Anastasius entered.
“Eglantine. Not enough prayer.”
“Anastasius. Not enough prayer.”
“Hmm. Its message changed,” Anastasius said.
“Repeating the divine protections ritual completed my elements after all.
Sigiswald should receive a new evaluation as well.”
The royal family had also repeated the
ritual—and, in the process, both Anastasius and Eglantine had apparently become
omni-elemental.
“Is that really true, Prince Anastasius?” I
asked. “You have every element now?”
“Indeed. You taught us that praying while
performing Mana Replenishment would produce such results, did you not? Because
I prayed to the gods without fail when supplying mana over the winter, I was
granted four new divine protections.”
Meanwhile, Eglantine had gained two. They
would be repeating the ceremony again next year.
“Oh my. You became omni-elemental as well,
Lady Eglantine?” Hannelore asked. “Does that mean I might also be able to
obtain more divine protections when I graduate?”
Eglantine placed a hand on her cheek and
slowly shook her head. “I was omni-elemental to begin with.”
“Obtaining more divine protections and
elements is important, but we stand to gain far more by transcribing and
translating the documents here,” Anastasius continued. “Now, let us hurry and
get to work. Eglantine and I have plans this afternoon, so time is of the
essence.”
At his instruction, we began our work
transcribing and translating the white slates. Anastasius, Eglantine, and
Hildebrand transcribed them word for word while Magdalena, Hannelore, and I
worked on translating them. The former group had only recently begun their
studies, so it would have taken them much too long to attempt anything more.
We worked in silence, each taking breaks as we
needed them, and eventually reached fourth bell.
“That will be all from us,” Anastasius
announced. “I understand that working for so long can be tiresome, but I must
ask that you all continue through the afternoon.” He then took his leave, along
with Eglantine and their retainers.
Hannelore and I were going to eat our lunches
outside the underground archive, in a specially prepared rest area. We were
still underage, so we didn’t want any nobles to see us wandering around during
the Archduke Conference. The royal family also wanted to keep it a secret that
they were employing the services of mere students, as such news certainly
wouldn’t benefit their reputation.
Magdalena and Hildebrand had originally
intended to return to their villas, but they ultimately decided to eat at the
archive as well. Their attendants were preparing their meals.
Magdalena picked up her cutlery. “It is a fair
distance to the villa, and it would not be respectable for me, the third wife,
to be seen wandering the Royal Academy during the Archduke Conference. Do allow
me to join you.” It seemed that she had actively been avoiding the public eye
in an attempt to prop up the first wife. If she drew more attention to herself,
people would inevitably start pushing for her to be made the first wife
instead—especially as she was from Dunkelfelger.
The Zent’s first wife is from... Gilessenmeyer, I
think? It’s a middle duchy rather than a greater one, and it sits lower
on the rankings at fourth. Of course people would prefer Magdalena.
Magdalena had spent years avoiding the
Archduke Conference, so anyone who saw her now would assume that she was
working in the shadows or leaking information to her home duchy. One could
never tell when such rumors might surface.
“At this time of year, a picnic outside would
be delightful,” Magdalena remarked. “But alas, there is no more troublesome foe
than the shapeless being that is society. Lady Rozemyne, Lady Hannelore, do
take care.”
I nodded and said, “I thank you ever so much
for your warning.”
“Incidentally, Lady Rozemyne... I have been
wanting to ask you about yesterday’s ceremony. I could not go to the auditorium
myself, so I missed a seemingly wondrous event.”
Hildebrand and Hannelore both nodded in
agreement, their eyes sparkling with interest. They were underage, so they
hadn’t been able to attend either.
“I wanted to see it too,” Hildebrand said.
“Father described the sight of the radiant light piercing the night sky as
divinity itself.”
Hannelore giggled. “The scene was so beautiful
that my brother returned with an overwhelming desire to paint it. I cannot wait
to see what he produces. His overenthusiasm earned him a scolding from Mother,
though—she said that he should wait until the conference has finished before
obsessing over his art.”
“And, of course,” Magdalena continued, “a
faint magic circle arose for a few moments on the stage where Prince Sigiswald
and Lady Adolphine received your blessing. Some have even begun to say that the
prince has been acknowledged by the gods as the next Zent.”
“A magic circle arose on the stage?” I
repeated, freezing in place with my fork halfway to my mouth. The chunk of meat
that I had been about to eat dropped back onto my plate, but I was so taken
aback by this news that I didn’t even notice.
Hannelore’s eyes widened. “Did you not see the
circle, Lady Rozemyne? Everyone from our duchy has been talking about it. You
were performing the ceremony from the shrine, were you not?”
I paused, taking a moment to reflect on everything
that had occurred. “I was facing upward—as is customary when praying—so I did
not see the stage at all.”
“And nobody from Ehrenfest even mentioned it?”
Magdalena asked, looking surprised. I certainly hadn’t heard any such news
yesterday in the dormitory.
“Erm, it was only yesterday morning that the
Sovereign temple told me to perform the ritual in the traditional style,” I
said. “Ehrenfest knew nothing about it before it actually happened, so we spent
most of our lunchtime discussing what I had done and how to answer the
inevitable questions from nobles of other duchies. Furthermore, Clarissa and
Hartmut...”
“We can extrapolate the rest,” Hannelore said.
“They speak only of you, correct?”
Indeed, they were always fixated on my
actions, and yesterday had been no exception. Their praise had become like a
tiresome refrain, rearing its head again and again. Leberecht had ended up
scolding them for it before they could even reach dinnertime.
“We received so many requests in the afternoon
that, come dinnertime, everyone spoke only of how to deal with them. The
ceremony itself received not even a mention. This is my first time hearing that
a magic circle arose.”
It really feels like I’m the last person to find
out, even though I was the one performing the ceremony.
If that truly had been the magic circle for
selecting Zent candidates, then I could see why the Sovereign temple was so
desperate to revive the ancient customs. Anastasius’s remark about the results
having been even better than expected also made a lot more sense.
“I shall bring it up at dinner,” I said.
“Ignorance about this subject will only bring me harm moving forward.”
After lunch, I was back to work, translating
and modernizing line after line of the ancient slates. It really was fun being
able to read entirely new texts.
“Lady Rozemyne!” Magdalena called, roughly
shaking me by the shoulders. I looked up at her with a start, at which point
she continued, “Your retainers have received an ordonnanz. Let us leave the
archive.”
We did just that and reunited with Cornelius.
He thanked Magdalena, then conveyed what the correspondence from Damuel had
said:
“It seems that Lady Detlinde of Ahrensbach has
come to the library.”
“She became a Zent candidate after triggering
the magic circle during her coming-of-age ceremony,” Leonore added. “It could
be that she came here to obtain the knowledge necessary to take the throne.”
Magdalena blinked. “But few even know that the
archive exists.”
“That may not be true,” I said. “Lord
Ferdinand viewed it not as a secret to be kept but as somewhere that any
archduke candidate could enter, as long as they met the right conditions. If we
assume that all manner of royals and archduke candidates once frequented the
archive, then it would make perfect sense for others to know about it.”
“Yes, that might be the case...” Magdalena
muttered, though she didn’t seem entirely convinced. Her lips then curved into
a smile as though she had come to a realization of some kind. “I have long
wanted to speak with this Lady Detlinde, who claims to be a Zent candidate.
Leave this situation to me, Lady Rozemyne. You, Hildebrand, and Lady Hannelore
may continue your work.”
Zent Candidates
I was about to go back into the archive,
resolved to leave everything in Magdalena’s capable hands, when Hannelore
timidly called out, “E-Erm, Lady Magdalena...”
“Yes, Lady Hannelore?”
“Rather than continuing to work in the
archive, perhaps we should... hide, or something of the like, so that we do not
cross paths with Lady Detlinde. Should we not keep our working here a secret?”
Magdalena paused in thought. “It would be
safest for you to remain here, as we do not know how many guards Lady Detlinde
has brought or what she intends to do... but you are largely correct.”
If we stayed put, then it wouldn’t matter how
many guards were accompanying Detlinde; none of them would be able to enter the
archive with her. That made it the safest place for us, but avoiding detection
entirely was still the best outcome.
“An encounter on the stairs would prove most
dangerous of all...” Leonore said. We were all at a loss for words, but the
sudden appearance of an ordonnanz brought us back to our senses. It landed on
Magdalena’s wrist, then started to deliver a message from Solange. She was
speaking in a hushed voice, as if concerned about who might overhear her.
“This is Solange. Lady Detlinde is coming to
my office to receive her library registration. If you wish to keep the young
ones out of sight, hide them at the back of the closed-stack archive. I will
assist you in leaving through another exit later.”
Solange had known that we were eating lunch
here in the underground archive, so she had gone to the trouble of contacting
us. If she could buy us some time and help us to escape, she would be doing us
a tremendous favor.
And here I thought I would get to hang out in the
archive all day. Curse you, Lady Detlinde.
“If you wish to avoid her as well, Lady
Magdalena, then we could all hide together,” I suggested.
She shook her head. “No, it would be strange
for the archive to be open without anyone inside. Furthermore, I must find out
who informed Lady Detlinde of this archive and when. She should not know of a
place that not even the surviving royal family was aware of. We can also assume
that it was a recent discovery for her; otherwise, she would have registered
while she was a student.”
True... If she had known about the archive
before, then why wouldn’t she have joined the library?
“Even after Professor Solange guides you
outside,” Magdalena continued, “take care not to approach the central building.
Those who have finished their lunch might still be in the halls. I will send an
ordonnanz once Lady Detlinde leaves the library.”
I nodded, gave her my translations, then
gathered my things together in preparation to leave. In the meantime, Cornelius
sent ordonnanzes to my attendants, warning them not to return to the library
for the time being.
“I alone shall deal with Lady Detlinde,”
Magdalena announced with a smile. “Hildebrand, do not slow the others down.”
She entrusted him to his guard knights, then hurried us all out of the room.
We rushed upstairs. The door leading into the
closed-stack archive had been left unlocked for our attendants, so we didn’t
face any issues on that front.
Cornelius was standing by the entrance to the
reading room and scanning the archive for any blind spots. “Prince Hildebrand,
please hide over there, behind the farthest bookshelves. Those of Dunkelfelger,
do the same. Lady Rozemyne, come to this bookshelf over here—and take care not
to step out from behind it.”
The bookshelves in the closed-stack archive,
where so many valuable documents were kept, all had solid back panels, meaning
they were perfect to hide behind. Hildebrand and Hannelore were at the very
back of the room, since they had so many retainers, while my retinue and I were
waiting behind a bookshelf closer to the entrance.
“Are they not done yet...?”
No matter how long we waited, Detlinde never
appeared. I was grateful that Solange was buying us time, but standing
completely still was starting to hurt.
“The door is unlocked so that attendants can
pass through. Remain quiet, as they could enter at any moment.”
I wanna read the books heeere...
There were so many new titles before my very
eyes, and not being able to delve into them was agonizing.
Oh, what if I promise to stay quiet? Can I read
then? No? Figures. I knew that would be the answer, but it was worth a shot.
I decided to hold my tongue, well aware that
my request would only annoy my retainers—and that was when the door suddenly
clicked open. Bright light streamed into the closed-stack archive.
“Oh my. And that letter was your reason for
coming here?” Solange asked, her soft voice filling the room. She was
purposefully making sure we knew why Detlinde was visiting.
“Indeed. I do not know who sent it, but they
said that they sincerely wanted me to become the next Zent and that this
library contained information crucial to becoming the country’s next ruler. It
was surely a gift from the gods.”
Hold on a second... You came all the way here
simply because an anonymous letter told you to...? Isn’t that ridiculously
thoughtless for an archduke candidate?!
I knew that specifically because I’d received
so many criticisms for my own thoughtless actions. Had I done what Detlinde was
doing right now, Ferdinand would have given me a taste of thunder for sure. I
was surprised that she had received the letter to begin with, considering that
all such correspondence was supposed to go through one’s attendants.
This is unthinkable behavior for an archduke
candidate, but I’m more surprised that she’s actually found what she was
seeking.
Ferdinand had said that Detlinde failed to
activate the magic circle because she didn’t have enough mana—but if she really
was serious about becoming the next Zent, she had come to the right place.
“The letter mentioned that the Royal Academy’s
library opens during the Archduke Conference, so here I am,” Detlinde said.
“Meetings and tea parties continue to fill my schedule as we speak; had I not
seized this opportunity to come, who knows how long I might have had to wait?”
It was rare for someone to be so busy from the
very beginning of the Archduke Conference. For the first few days, the
archducal couples of each duchy would all gather together for meetings, and
only then were invitations given and plans made. One’s schedule would often
start quite empty and then gradually become more packed over time.
Back when Ehrenfest had sat near the bottom of
the rankings, our nobles had received so few invitations that many of them had
considered going home early. That wasn’t the case anymore, though; Sylvester
had informed me that everyone’s schedules were completely full.
In other words, he won’t be able to leave and
then heroically appear elsewhere like he did when I was an apprentice blue
shrine maiden.
Detlinde continued, “Prince Sigiswald
triggered the magic circle during his Starbind Ceremony. It stands to reason,
then, that the royal family will also come to this underground archive during
the conference. I simply cannot allow the prince to get ahead of me—not when I
was recognized as a Zent candidate first.”
Hortensia gave a conflicted smile and said in
a chastising voice, “Such phrasing may be considered disrespectful to the royal
family.”
In response, Detlinde giggled. “A family
without the Grutrissheit can hardly be considered genuine royalty. I was chosen
by the gods—and, by their will, I shall become a true
Zent.” I wasn’t at all sure where her confidence was coming from, but her
high-pitched laughter echoed throughout the closed-stack archive.
“But you are the next Aub Ahrensbach, are you
not?”
“For now, but I will obtain the Grutrissheit
before I become aub.”
Detlinde’s retainers hadn’t said a word this
entire time. I wasn’t sure why—maybe they believed her, or maybe correcting her
was such a futile effort that they were pretending not to hear her—but it was a
very bad move. At this rate, she was going to be imprisoned for treason, and
Ferdinand alongside her.
Hortensia cleared her throat, at last putting
a stop to the piercing laughter. “Lady Detlinde, if you would allow me to ask a
question...” Then, in a deliberately clear voice, she continued, “Are
Schlaftraum’s flowers blossoming as beautifully as ever this year?”
“‘Schlaftraum’s flowers’?”
“Oh, are you not familiar with them? They can
only be obtained in Ahrensbach, and my husband is rather fond of them. Do ask
Lady Georgine about them when you next get the chance.”
With that, Hortensia led Detlinde and her
retainers downstairs, and they disappeared from sight.
What are Schlaftraum’s
flowers? Lady Detlinde doesn’t know about them, but Lady Georgine does?
Hortensia’s married to Raublut, the Sovereign knight commander, right?
Schlaftraum was the God of Dreams, which was
probably a hint. I didn’t doubt that it was some kind of secret code that
nobles used when they wanted to be discreet, or appear inconspicuous, or test
the waters to see how much the other person knew.
Maybe I should ask Ferdinand. That might not be a
smart move, though...
It seemed unwise to write to him immediately
after being told to minimize contact with him, but this weight seemed too heavy
for me to bear alone. Two very important people had suddenly been mentioned:
Georgine, who was targeting Ehrenfest, and Raublut, who had sent Ferdinand to
Ahrensbach over suspicions of treason. Even I could tell that this was a
serious and potentially dangerous problem.
Since this has something to do with Georgine,
I’ll need to discuss it with Sylvester as well—but that goes without saying.
As for Raublut, I wasn’t sure whether
Sylvester even knew about him. I’d only interacted with the man when I was
summoned to the Royal Academy about the bible, and when he came to the library
and revealed that Ferdinand was a seed of Adalgisa.
Hopefully I can explain today’s events while
keeping all the Adalgisa stuff a secret.
I was pulled from my thoughts by a sudden
noise as Solange closed the door to the basement. She locked it, then turned
around and said, “Everyone, are you there?”
“Yes, Professor Solange.”
“There is another exit over here.”
She took us outside through an emergency exit.
Going from the dim lighting of the closed-stack archive to the bright outdoors
made my eyes sting.
“This is the back side of the library. It
happens to be opposite the central building so, as long as you do not ride your
highbeasts, nobody should see you.”
So this was the library’s garden? I could see
tables and chairs in place, but the overgrown grass had started to swallow
them. I could guess that this had once served as somewhere for the librarians
to rest and have tea, way back when the library wasn’t severely understaffed.
“Perhaps you could wander about for a bit
while you wait for Lady Detlinde to leave,” Solange suggested. “Spending an
entire day underground would surely be bad for your health. In any case, I
cannot stay here with you; I must lock the archive doors and return to my
office.”
Solange then returned to the library. We had
managed to avoid Detlinde, but it was too much to expect me to walk around
until she left.
If only I had taken out a book...
But, well... no use crying over spilled milk.
I stared off into the distance, in a daze, while Hannelore looked around the
garden, evidently troubled.
“Weather this nice makes me wish we could have
a picnic,” she said, “but we left our tea and sweets in the underground
archive. How shall we pass the time?”
Hildebrand’s head attendant, Arthur, nervously
examined our surroundings. “Lady Hannelore, while a picnic does indeed sound
nice, we must consider the worst-case scenario and move somewhere more hidden.
If we stay where we are now, we might be visible through the reading room’s
windows.”
“I agree,” Leonore added. “I do not believe
that anyone would use the reading room’s carrels during the Archduke
Conference, but the fact remains that we are completely exposed. Shall we head
over there? Nobody should see us in the forest.”
She was pointing to the southern end of the
garden, at a dense gathering of trees. Sunlight filtered through their
branches, painting the forest floor with a complex pattern of shadows. It
certainly looked more comfortable than staying out in the open.
“Leonore is correct,” Ottilie said. “Lady
Rozemyne, it would be best for you to travel there in your one-person
highbeast. You risk falling ill under the intensity of this sunlight.”
“I think you’re underestimating how much
healthier I am now...” I murmured, my lips pursed. The second jureve had done
wonders for me. It was possible that Ottilie just wasn’t aware of my
improvement; she hadn’t accompanied me to the Royal Academy, and I spent most
of my time in Ehrenfest at the temple.
“Lady Rozemyne, I am aware that your health is
gradually improving, but we have nothing to gain from taking unnecessary risks.
If you fall ill, then you will need to wait quite some time before you can next
visit the archive.”
That’s true, but don’t say it in front of Prince
Hildebrand and Lady Hannelore!
I glanced in their direction, holding back a
shriek. As expected, they were still traumatized from seeing me collapse; they
and their retainers urged me toward the trees, the blood gone from their faces.
“Rozemyne, let us go,” Hildebrand said. “You
may use your highbeast. If you take ill while helping us, then the royal family
will be at quite a loss...”
Hannelore nodded. “Prince Hildebrand is
correct. As I recall, Dunkelfelger’s dormitory is directly south of here. We
might be able to see it after moving through the forest for a bit.”
I couldn’t protest any further when even
Hildebrand was pushing for me to use my highbeast. I produced a small,
one-person Pandabus, then headed to the forest with the others. It was pretty
vexing that I was the only one not on my feet.
This isn’t fair. I could definitely keep up with
Prince Hildebrand.
Cornelius sent off an ordonnanz, and we
reunited with Damuel and Angelica just as we reached the forest. I wasn’t all
too pleased that everyone’s overprotectiveness had pressured me into using my
highbeast, but our stroll among the trees gave me some much-needed respite; the
air here must have been filled with negative ions.
“It really is strange seeing the Royal Academy
not covered in snow,” I said, “but this is quite a pleasant forest.”
“Indeed,” Hannelore agreed. “This is my first
time noticing its beauty. The greenery and colorful flowers provide such a
wonderful contrast to the ivory buildings.” Like me, she had only ever seen the
Royal Academy during the winter, and she was equally impressed by its
springtime beauty.
Once we had all praised our surroundings,
Hannelore began to tell me her thoughts about The Story of
Fernestine so far. She hadn’t wanted to discuss it while we were with
Magdalena.
“I am so, so very
curious about what happens next,” she said, trembling with anticipation. “I
cannot bear it. If poor Fernestine does not get a happy ending after all she
has been through, then I do not know what Dunkel—um, what I
will do...”
The second volume had ended on such a cruel
note: Fernestine received the prince’s proposal, only for the king to oppose
it. Her stepmother’s schemes then saw her engaged to another man, which sent
her plummeting into a bottomless pit of despair.
“Hannelore, there is no need to grieve,”
Hildebrand said rather firmly. “The prince will come
to save Fernestine. Their love for one another is so pure; there is no world in
which he gives up on her.” He was clearly up to date with the series as well.
“Is that true, Lady Rozemyne?” Hannelore
asked.
They were both watching me with such hopeful
eyes that I couldn’t help but smile. “I see no reason to spoil the story when
you can just read it for yourselves. I brought the third volume with me to the
Royal Academy.”
“Oh my!” Hannelore exclaimed. “Did you? I
cannot wait. And, um...” She tensed up a little. “This really is the final volume, I trust?”
I nodded, and only then did she finally smile
in relief.
“What’s that...?” Angelica wondered aloud; she
had climbed a tree to get a better look at our surroundings. “I see a white
building.” We couldn’t even glimpse it ourselves, but she mentioned that it
wasn’t particularly large.
“Could it be Dunkelfelger’s dormitory?” I
asked.
“I don’t think so. Their dormitory is larger
and farther away. This building is so small and overgrown that you wouldn’t see
it from above.”
Nobody else seemed to know what Angelica had
spotted; the Royal Academy’s dormitories always reached above the treetops.
Each one had a basement for the workers and storage, a first floor for the
dining hall and common room, a second floor for the boys’ rooms, a third floor
for the girls’ rooms, and a fourth floor that functioned more as an attic for
extra storage. By no means could they be described as “small.”
“Angelica,” I said, “please investigate, if
you would. There might be an open area around the building where we can rest.”
At once, she used physical enhancement magic
on herself and nimbly leapt from one branch to another, making her way over to
the building. Hannelore gave similar instructions to one of her guards, who
darted off as well.
“The door was locked and did not open,”
Angelica reported. “It was very filthy and presumably hasn’t been used for at
least a decade.”
Hannelore’s guard nodded in agreement. “Its
existence came as a surprise to us all, so it seems an ideal place for us to
rest while staying out of sight.”
So, at the advice of our reconnaissance squad,
we headed to the curious building among the trees. Its disheveled appearance
and the overgrown grass around it were enough to prove that nobody had come
here in a very long time.
“Ivory buildings do not degrade like this when
someone is supplying them with mana. It really must be abandoned.”
“And it certainly is small,” Hildebrand added.
“Is it a forester’s shed, perhaps?”
Arthur shook his head. “Those are much
smaller.” This building was small compared to dormitories and castles, but it
was still much larger than a forester’s shed or a gazebo. It also didn’t have
any windows, which meant we couldn’t see inside.
The building was strange, but the statues on
either side of the door reminded me of the entrance to the temple from the
lower city’s side. “Could this be a shrine?” I ventured. “I remember hearing
that my grandfather once destroyed one on the outskirts of the Royal Academy
during a game of treasure-stealing ditter. Professor Solange also mentioned
that a troublesome student once played pranks at the Academy’s shrines to the
gods—before his sudden disappearance, that is.”
I climbed out of Lessy and approached the
building. It wouldn’t do to leave a shrine dedicated to the gods in such a
terrible state.
“Lady Rozemyne?”
“For now, I will clean it. We cannot sit here
and rest while it remains so filthy.”
It only made sense that I should take care of
this; Hildebrand and Hannelore had come all the way here on foot and no doubt
needed to rest, whereas I had traveled in the comfort of my Pandabus. I reached
into the leather pouch on my hip and took out a sheet of fey paper with a magic
circle on it.
“What is that?”
“A product of Clarissa’s research,” I said.
“This magic circle makes it much easier to cast spells over a larger area.”
I created my schtappe and poured mana into the
circle. The paper rose into the air and started to shine, at which point I
chanted, “Waschen.” In an instant, the entire building
was engulfed in a massive ball of water. Then, the liquid vanished as quickly
as it had appeared, leaving behind a squeaky-clean ivory shrine.
“And there we have it,” I announced.
“Th-This is the first time I’ve ever seen a
waschen clean an entire building at once,” Hannelore stammered.
After seeing Ferdinand clean the entire lower
city after the entwickeln, I’d assumed that it was common practice to use
large-scale waschens. Apparently not. Everyone was looking at me as though
they’d just witnessed a miracle.
“Of course, I would not have been able to
manage such a feat without the magic circle. It is all thanks to Clarissa,
praised be her name. Ohoho...”
I was trying to laugh it off when something
occurred to me—maybe Ferdinand was to blame for my lack of noble common sense.
“In any case, let us rest,” I said, inviting
the others to sit down on the steps by the door. “Prince Hildebrand, Lady
Hannelore, would you care to join me? You must be tired.”
Hildebrand raced over with a smile. “I shall
accept your invitation, but our journey here did not tire me in the slightest.
Mother has been training me to the Dunkelfelger standard, so I’m no less fit
than any other child my age.”
Sure, Hildebrand was a member of the royal
family, but he still had Dunkelfelger blood running through his veins.
Hannelore didn’t seem tired either; in fact, she was already considering
whether to send an attendant to her dormitory to prepare tea for us.
Traveling in my highbeast was the right move
after all. I wouldn’t have been able to keep up with these two for long.
“Our dormitory is relatively close,” Hannelore
remarked. “Would anyone care for some tea?”
Hildebrand’s retainers all shook their heads.
“Be at ease,” one of them said. “We do not wish to make ourselves known, and
your attendants would struggle to prepare tea by highbeast.”
“In that case, I will rest as well.”
“Come sit with us,” I said. “We can discuss The Story of Fernestine while waiting for Lady Magdalena to
contact us.”
As I moved my hand to indicate her seat, it
brushed against the locked door behind me. The next thing I knew, I was being
sucked into the shrine.
“Bwuh?!”
In the blink of an eye, my surroundings
changed from the forest to the inside of an unfamiliar room. It was about
twenty square meters in size and contained statues of thirteen gods, the
centermost of which depicted a heroic-looking man wielding a spear and a
translucent blue slate. This had to be a shrine dedicated to Leidenschaft the
God of Fire.
I’d expected the inside of the building to be
extremely dark on account of there not being any windows, but the blue slate
provided more than enough light.
“This is my first time seeing a shrine like
this...” I murmured to myself.
The shrines at the temple and the Royal
Academy had statues for the supreme gods and the Eternal Five, but this was the
first one I’d seen that was entirely dedicated to Fire. I realized now that the
other twelve statues were of Leidenschaft’s subordinates.
“Wowee... I’m going to hit a massive growth
spurt after this,” I said, then raised my hands in prayer. “O Leidenschaft the
God of Fire, O Erwachlehren the God of Guidance, O Anwachs the God of
Growth...”
Please let me grow to be a normal size!
As I finished praying, my mana sparked and got
sucked into the blue slate that Leidenschaft was holding. The slate flashed,
then some text appeared on it.
Let’s check this out... “Your prayers have
reached me, and your worth has been acknowledged. I, Leidenschaft, shall now
grant you a word necessary to obtain the Book of Mestionora. This—”
The rest of the text—the mystical word
included—was hidden behind the statue’s fingers. “O mighty Leidenschaft, I
cannot read your message from here!” I grumbled, and pulled the slate from his
hands.
“This word alone, however, will not suffice; a
Zent candidate must obtain the words of the other gods as well.”
As soon as I read the last part of the
message, the blue slate was absorbed into my chest and fused with the schtappe
inside of me. I could sense that it was a combination of a Divine Will and all
the mana I had offered through prayer thus far. At the same time,
Leidenschaft’s word arose in my mind, much like when I had learned the names of
the God of Darkness and the Goddess of Light.
“Kraeftark.”
“That sounds wonderful, thank you,” Hannelore
said with a smile as she sat down.
I gazed around, confused. No sooner had the
word passed my lips than I had found myself outside the shrine again, with my
hand still touching the door. Leidenschaft had evidently summoned me, and not a
moment had passed in my absence.
“Lady Rozemyne, is something wrong?” Hannelore
asked.
“Oh, no. Nothing at all,” I replied, returning
her smile. Everyone was acting the same way as before, which meant that nobody
had even noticed my disappearance. Leidenschaft’s word was still engraved in my
mind, though.
He said it was necessary to obtain the Book of
Mestionora, right? Aaaaaah... I really wanna read it...
The thought of a new book was alluring enough,
but this one belonged to the Goddess of Wisdom herself! I could sense that
Hildebrand and Hannelore were discussing something, but I was too distracted to
pay them any mind.
I wonder what a book owned by a goddess is
like... I can’t wait to find out. I... Wait, hold on. Isn’t “the Book of
Mestionora” another name for the Grutrissheit? That means I’m forbidden from
reading it, right?
As my dreams crumbled into tiny little pieces,
I started to reflect on my actions with a much clearer head. Should I have
attempted to contact my knights before reading the slate? Should I have
approached it in the first place?
This reminds me of that strange experience we had
at The Goddesses’ Bath on the Night of Flutrane...
Back then, magical interference had made us
forget to contact our allies, and a barrier had prevented the men from reaching
us. Had something similar happened while I was in the shrine?
Okay. Let’s calm down and think about this
rationally.
If the Book of Mestionora really was the
Grutrissheit, then it would be seriously dangerous for me to acquire it; I
definitely didn’t want to become the next Zent. The best way to avoid getting
wrapped up in a huge disaster would be to remain completely silent.
Oh, who was I kidding? I wasn’t about to miss
an opportunity to read a book belonging to a goddess.
I wanted to get my hands on it so bad. So, so bad.
Not to mention, the royal family is searching for
the Grutrissheit, right? And they’d appreciate any hints as to its whereabouts.
They were so desperate to learn the
requirements to become a true Zent that they were translating documents in an
archive they hadn’t even known about until recently. My experience in the
shrine would be tremendously valuable to them.
But would they even be able to repeat it...?
My theory was that whenever a ritual performed
at the Royal Academy created a pillar of light, at least a portion of it went
to these shrines and contributed to the translucent tablets within. In other
words, to receive the words of the gods, one would need to perform countless
blessings and dedicate plenty of mana. Would the royal family be able to manage
that when they were barely able to keep the country from falling apart?
In fact... what would happen if the royal
family couldn’t manage it? As someone who was used to
delegating tasks that were beyond me to other people, my first instinct would
be to dump the work on somebody else. Their only desire was for someone to obtain the Grutrissheit, so it seemed like the
perfect solution.
The only issue was that, if the royal family did decide to entrust this duty to somebody else, it would
definitely be me.
Sooo... what would the royal family do if they
tasked me with getting the Grutrissheit and then I actually did...?
In an ideal world, I would just read it
myself, then hand it over... but what if things weren’t so simple? The king had
ordered Ferdinand to move to Ahrensbach for being a threat to Yurgenschmidt; if
people started viewing me as similarly dangerous, then it was likely that I
would receive some kind of royal decree as well.
In the worst-case scenario, they might even
execute me.
After all, it was a dispute over the
Grutrissheit that had started the civil war. The situation with Ferdinand had
already demonstrated what would happen if anyone but the royal family obtained
it—and, as I reflected on that, his voice came unbidden to my mind.
“Do you wish to rule, Rozemyne?”
That had been his question to me when the
bible showed me the path to become the Zent. My feelings hadn’t changed since
then: I just wanted to read books. I didn’t want to be a queen, nor did I want
to be the reason for another war. It was in the royal family’s best interests
for me to share this information. But it was in my best
interests to keep it to myself.
I wanted to consult someone about this, but it
was much too serious; there wasn’t a single person I could tell. I gazed up at
the sky as I pondered my options... and saw several beams of blue light shoot
from the roof of the shrine.
“What are those blue lights...?” I asked,
pointing.
Hildebrand followed my finger with his eyes
and squinted. “What blue lights?”
Hannelore was squinting too; it seemed that
neither one of them could see the lights, even though they stuck out like a
sore thumb. Even their retainers were cocking their heads at me.
I blinked a few times and then shook my head.
“Oh, my mistake. Perhaps it was just the sunlight.” If the others genuinely
couldn’t see the lights, then my best option was to drop it.
“It certainly is bright,” Hannelore said,
still squinting up at the sky. The lights were clearly there, but she couldn’t
see them at all.
I wonder where they lead...
All of a sudden, an ordonnanz appeared. It
landed on Arthur’s arm, then said thrice in Magdalena’s voice that we could
return to the archive.
The Locations of the Shrines
“Was going outside a nice change of pace?”
Magdalena asked.
Upon our return, our attendants had
immediately prepared some tea for us. I was parched from our time in the sun,
so it really hit the spot.
“Yes, Mother,” Hildebrand replied. “Professor
Solange helped us to escape through a door in the closed-stack archive. It led
us to a garden, but the sun was too strong for Rozemyne, so we ventured into
the forest. We found a shrine hidden among the trees and ended up resting
there—though the door was locked, so we could not go inside...”
Magdalena listened with a motherly expression.
“If you were unable to enter, then how did you know it was a shrine?” she
asked, prompting him to continue.
“Rozemyne said that its entrance resembled the
one to Ehrenfest’s temple.”
“Ceremonies once held a surprising amount of
significance here at the Royal Academy. The shrine you found was surely
important as well.”
I resisted the urge to nod like crazy and
instead offered a more innocuous response: “It has since been repaired, but my
grandfather once broke a shrine during a game of treasure-stealing ditter. He
said that it was near the edge of the Royal Academy’s grounds, though, so it
must not have been the one we came across today. I doubt that we reached the
outskirts after coming out of the library and taking a brief stroll through the
nearby forest.”
The central, scholar, and attendant
buildings—as well as the library—were all at the center of the Royal Academy.
The “edge” was surely closer to where the dormitories were located. I was
implying that there were other shrines out there, but would the others notice?
Hannelore seemed to pick up what I was putting
down. “It would seem that there are other shrines or places of worship around
the Royal Academy’s grounds. Does the royal family have a map of the Academy,
perhaps? Or keys to the shrines...?”
“In the past, the dormitories each maintained
their own maps for ditter,” Magdalena said, “but the royal family has never had
a map that marks the locations of any shrines—not to my knowledge, at least. I
shall ask Solange and the librarians of the royal library.”
That reminded me—Ferdinand’s ditter
instruction manuals included a simple map of the Royal Academy. Perhaps it
would be a good idea to look around the dorm when we returned.
“Lady Magdalena, what did you discuss with
Lady Detlinde?” I asked.
“Allow me to say this: she is both very
extraordinary and very bold to call herself a Zent
candidate.” She smiled. “Now, let us resume our work. We do not have much more
time.”
I got the message—whatever they had discussed,
Magdalena really didn’t want to repeat it here.
Well, Detlinde did manage to
stun even the first wife of Dunkelfelger. I’d like to think she didn’t repeat
what she said in the closed-stack archive to Magdalena’s face, but you never
know with her...
Detlinde had said some pretty rude things even
during Royal Academy tea parties—but that had been to lower-ranking nobles, and
it had only been bad enough to inspire a few wrinkled brows. Plus, now that Aub
Ahrensbach was gone, she was due to become the highest authority in Ahrensbach;
it was hard to imagine her being discourteous to the royal family and putting
her entire duchy at risk. One’s retainers would normally stop at nothing to
prevent such a thing from happening.
However, Magdalena’s refusal to discuss the
matter made me extremely concerned. It really did seem like Detlinde had
proclaimed herself the next Zent in front of an existing royal. Her blatant,
uh... treachery put her future husband, Ferdinand, in
danger of being deemed guilty by association. At the very least, I was glad
that their Starbind Ceremony had been delayed; Ferdinand couldn’t attend the
Archduke Conference while he was still merely her fiancé, so he was presumably
safe from punishment.
Wait, actually... Would it be best for me to
obtain the Grutrissheit as soon as possible?
By doing so, I would secure the perfect
bargaining chip. There was no point in coming to the negotiating table
empty-handed, and there wasn’t a doubt in my mind that the royal family would
spare Ferdinand in return for their beloved Grutrissheit. Anything else I could
offer would probably result in him getting punished anyway.
Am I worrying about this too much?
I placed a hand on my chest. If Detlinde
really had been foolish enough to repeat what she had said in the archive to
Magdalena, then it was only a matter of time before my fears became reality.
Surely I was within my rights to keep quiet and worry about things for a bit.
The Book of Mestionora might not even be the
Grutrissheit. Maybe it just serves as a stepping stone. Even then, it probably
won’t be easy to obtain. I’ll search in secret for now.
I took some paper and writing utensils from
Ottilie, then went back into the underground archive. Schwartz looked up at me
and said, “Milady. Not enough prayer.” I only had the blue tablet inside of me,
so that seemed like a fair evaluation.
I need to figure out where those other shrines
are.
“Schwartz, is there a map of the Royal Academy
with the locations of the shrines for prayer?” I asked. It was worth a shot.
“Yes,” Schwartz replied, then took several
slates from the rightmost end of one of the bookshelves. It would have taken me
ages to reach them, considering that I always started at the top left.
“Thanks, Schwartz.”
I gave the shumil a pat on the head, then
started examining the maps. The crudest and the most detailed ones had markers
in completely different places, so I still didn’t have any definitive answers.
I couldn’t even see the dormitories or any other landmarks on them, so I was
even more confused about where to go. I would need to make copies of the maps
and then compare them to the ditter maps in the Ehrenfest Dormitory. That would
probably take a while.
“Rozemyne! Time’s up!”
“Eep?!”
I was working from one of the slates when it
was suddenly snatched away from me. I stared up in shock and saw Sylvester
handing it back to Schwartz.
“You really do block out the world around you
when you read, huh?” he said. “Do you know how many times I called your name?”
“Not at all...”
“Hurry up and get ready to leave,” he said,
exasperated.
I handed my completed translations to
Magdalena, then folded up my copies of the maps and put them in my pouch. “I
didn’t expect you to come get me,” I said to Sylvester.
“Seemed pretty obvious to me. Can’t have
Florencia entering a magic tool this big while she’s pregnant.”
As it turned out, one could describe the
underground archive as a giant magic tool. There were those doors, to begin with,
and only those who met strict mana criteria were able to enter. It was
impossible to say what kind of an impact such a magic tool might have on an
unborn child, which was why Sylvester didn’t want Florencia to come here.
“Does that mean you’re going to retrieve me
every day?” I asked.
“That’s the plan. C’mon.” Sylvester offered me
his hand, but I merely cocked my head at him. Was I supposed to grab it or
something?
“What’s the holdup? My escort not good enough
for you?”
“Oh, no... I just never expected you to escort
someone other than Florencia.”
“If she were here, she would be my first
choice.”
I reached out and grabbed on to Sylvester’s
arm; then he escorted me out of the archive. It was strange—as we ascended the
stairs, I actually felt a bit like a princess.
We exited the library and made our way down
the dusky corridors; the sun had already begun to set. Back in my commoner
days, I had sometimes walked hand in hand with my family and friends, but I
couldn’t remember holding on to anybody’s arm like this. Even as a noble, I had
only ever done this for banquets.
Sometimes I hold on to Grandfather’s finger, but
that feels more like taking on a dangerous mission than being escorted.
Besides, whenever I’m in the castle, I tend to just ride in my highbeast.
“Rozemyne, do you have to look so somber?”
“I’m simply not used to being escorted like
this. To tell you the truth, I’m at something of a loss.”
“You aren’t used to it? But you’ve had plenty
of experience with Ferdinand and Wilfried, haven’t you?”
Sylvester looked surprised, but I was
completely bewildered. “Ferdinand would never escort me in a normal situation
like this. Oh, but we did have a bit of an arrangement—anytime he was moving
too fast, I would grab his sleeve, then he would slow down enough to keep me
from falling on my face. He’d go from a light jog to a brisk walk.”
“Whaaat? That’s it?”
I desperately tried to remember the other
things that Ferdinand had done for me. “Umm... whenever we rode his highbeast,
he would help me climb up and then set me down again. Although that was only
because I was too short to do either on my own...”
“And Wilfried...? You’re engaged, right?”
“He escorted me for the feast, but that was
about it... Oh, when we have our archduke candidate classes, he carries my
heavier belongings into the classroom for me, since my retainers can’t follow
me inside.” It had impressed Hannelore and inspired her to say that I was
engaged to someone very kind, so it was probably a good thing.
Sylvester gave a displeased frown. “I know you
usually ride your highbeast in the castle, but come on. The heck is that boy
doing when you two are walking together?”
“Well, I can’t think of any students who serve
as escorts on a daily basis.”
“I did.”
Yeah, because you were looking for an excuse to
spend time with Florencia. In any case, your situations really can’t be
compared. You were desperately trying to get the girl of your dreams to notice
you, whereas Wilfried is mechanically carrying out the functions of a political
engagement.
That seemed obvious, but apparently Sylvester
was kind to all women, not just Florencia. The men of
the world could stand to learn a lot from him.
“You are far more considerate of women than
Wilfried or Ferdinand, that is for sure. I must say—I am surprised.”
“As am I... How did my little brother end up
so inept around women? Sure, he plays the part of a perfect gentleman during
feasts and the like, but, what, he won’t even accompany someone on a daily
basis?”
“The closer you are to Ferdinand, the less
effort he puts into how he treats you.”
I was pretty sure that Sylvester had received
the same lackluster treatment. Ferdinand often acted with exceptional attention
to detail, and on the rare occasions when he was kind, he was really kind... but actually interacting with him could be
pretty rough.
The next thing I knew, Sylvester was looking
down at me with a conflicted smile. “What is it?” I asked.
“Nothing serious. Just occurred to me that
some things only time can reveal.”
“Well, if we’re being honest... You might want
to start acting a bit younger. You’ve been way too curmudgeonly as of late.”
“And whose fault do you think that is?”
My own, without a doubt... Sorry.
I was starting to feel nostalgic—Benno had
used to scold me just like this—when I suddenly remembered that I needed to
have a very important discussion with Sylvester. “As much as it pains me to say
this, I need to tell you something that might age you another year or two.”
“I don’t really wanna hear it, but I’m
guessing I don’t have a choice...” Sylvester replied with a grimace, urging me
to continue. We were still moving through the corridors, and our retainers were
within earshot, but this matter wasn’t “clear the room” important.
“So... the Starbind Ceremony caused a magic
circle to appear, hm?”
“Yeah. What about it?”
“I didn’t notice at the time, since I was
gazing upward in prayer, but that was the same circle that appeared during Lady
Detlinde’s coming-of-age ceremony—the one for selecting Zent candidates.”
It seemed that the audience had accepted
Sigiswald as the next Zent. That was a good thing in itself, but the circle was
simply one part of the selection process. Merely activating it did not a Zent
make.
“I can see why the Sovereign temple was so
desperate to revive ancient rituals in their quest to obtain a true Zent...” I
murmured. “Of course, they won’t get very far without a High Bishop who can
perform them—and they’re sure to want my help after the success of the
ceremony.”
Sylvester patted my right hand, which was
still wrapped around his left arm. “Relax. Your engagement to Wilfried has the
king’s approval; I’m not about to cancel it.”
Maybe not, but what if I obtain the Grutrissheit
and end up qualified to become the next Zent? Worst-case scenario, I want to be
prepared to rescue Ferdinand.
Sylvester was going all out to protect me
while at the same time insisting that we treat Ferdinand as an outsider from
Ahrensbach. I wondered how he would react to finding out that I was a Zent
candidate now, but I wasn’t going to tell him—not when I didn’t have the
slightest desire to rule Yurgenschmidt. Instead, I reported that Detlinde had
come to the underground archive, and repeated what she had said.
“I don’t know what Schlaftraum’s flowers are
supposed to represent,” I said, “but they can only be obtained in Ahrensbach,
it would seem. And there appears to be some kind of connection between Lady
Georgine and the Sovereign knight commander.”
“Interesting.”
“You’re going to report the silver cloth we
found to the royal family, right?” I asked. “I believe it would be wise to tell
them in an environment without the knight commander.”
Sylvester frowned. He had barely ever seen the
Sovereign knight commander before. He was completely unaware that the man had
deemed Ferdinand to be an enemy or that he was responsible for Ferdinand being
sent to Ahrensbach. I didn’t intend to tell him either; Ferdinand had said that
he wasn’t going to tell Sylvester, and my understanding of the Adalgisa
situation was far from perfect.
Once we were back in the dormitory, I went to
the communal bookcase, which stored documents for the knight course, and
retrieved the map once used during old ditter preparations. The adults were
busy preparing for tomorrow and onward, so I elected to return to my room
before getting to work.
“Lady Rozemyne, what might you be doing?”
Leonore asked, peering down at the ditter map with great interest. Her
curiosity came as no surprise, considering that I was just looking through
documents for the knight course.
I spread out the maps I had copied and started
comparing the locations of the shrines. “There were maps in the underground
archive that seemed to show the locations of other shrines like the one we saw
today. They were rather slipshod, so I am still unsure which of the markers are
correct, but I thought that comparing them to this map might be enlightening...
Oh, is this circle where we found today’s shrine?”
“It appears to be just south of the library,
so I would imagine so.” She began pointing at the other circles on the map.
“This one is near the scholar building, while this one is a short distance from
the attendant building... Lady Rozemyne, do they not seem to be placed at
equidistant intervals, with the central building as, well, the center?”
I stared at the six large, equally sized
circles on the map. Now that she mentioned it, that did appear to be the case.
“But what about these smaller circles here?” I
asked.
“Perhaps they indicate something else.”
“I shall report these findings tomorrow in the
underground archive,” I said, then started clearing away the maps. I wanted to
visit the rest of the shrines during the Archduke Conference; once winter
returned, they would all be engulfed in snow, and traveling to them would be
much too unreasonable.
But how? The others won’t let me go just because
I tell them that I want to.
It would be strange for an underage student
who wasn’t even supposed to be at the Archduke Conference in the first place to
start wandering the Royal Academy’s grounds, and my retainers wouldn’t let me
go without a good reason. For what it was worth, telling them that I was trying
to get the Grutrissheit to save Ferdinand—and also so that I could read
it—would probably only make everyone annoyed at me.
The next day, I returned to the underground
archive. Anastasius and Eglantine were there when I arrived; again, they were
going to spend the morning transcribing documents.
“I investigated the locations of the shrines,”
I said, spreading out my maps as I started giving my report. “It would appear
that they sit at equidistant intervals, forming a circle around the central
building. Does that not just exude mystery?”
“That certainly seems suspicious...”
Anastasius said, squinting down at my maps. “I will ask the royal library to
search for more detailed documents.”
“There is no need, Prince Anastasius,”
Magdalena said. “I contacted them yesterday.” She had already made good use of
everything we had told her, however small.
Anastasius thanked her, then stood up. “I
would like to see these shrines for myself. Describing them to Father would
prove difficult otherwise.”
“Indeed...” Magdalena said, and stood up as
well. It seemed that, with Hildebrand as a guide, the royals would all be going
to check out yesterday’s shrine.
Hannelore and I stayed in the archive and
continued translating. The atmosphere was so much more comfortable when we
weren’t in the presence of the royal family.
“I did not hesitate to start reading the
Fernestine volume that you lent me yesterday,” Hannelore said. “In fact, I
became so immersed in it that Cordula ended up scolding me. I must admit to
being a tad sleep-deprived today.” Even after being chastised, she had
apparently soldiered on, reading all the way up to the part where the prince
raced off to save Fernestine. Only then had she calmed down enough to sleep—but
she was still eager to read the rest.
“I cannot wait to reach the end,” she said.
We continued our translating until Anastasius
and the others returned from the shrine. Eglantine looked very sickly and was
eyeing me as though there was something on her mind.
“Is something the matter, Lady Eglantine?”
“Lady Rozemyne, I wish to consult you about
something. May I have a moment of your time?”
Anastasius glared at me, but I only had one
answer to give: “I would be delighted to offer my assistance.”
Consultation
The archive was too public for whatever
Eglantine wished to discuss, so I was invited to have tea at her villa. It must
have been urgent, because she wanted us to meet tomorrow morning. The only
thing on my schedule right now was my translation work, and this was an
invitation from Eglantine; any time would do.
“What exactly do you intend to discuss with
Rozemyne?” Anastasius demanded.
“That is...” Eglantine paused. “I will inform
you after our discussion.”
“That makes it sound as if you don’t intend to
allow me to join.” His voice was low and tinged with anger, but not even he
could sway his wife; she simply returned a firm glare and replied without
hesitation.
“It is Lady Rozemyne whom I wish to speak to.
Do sit tomorrow out.”
“I refuse. Things always get out of hand when
Rozemyne is involved. I must be fully aware of the situation at all times,
which is why I cannot leave you two alone.”
Eglantine and Anastasius’s battle continued.
Personally, I didn’t care whether he attended, but I hoped that he would at
least spare me from any dirty looks if this quarrel ended in his defeat.
I’m more concerned that Lady Eglantine looks so
unwell...
It seemed to me that Anastasius should care
for his sickly wife rather than argue with her, but he was dead set on joining
our tea party. In any case, my involvement would only complicate matters
further, so I decided to take my leave and return to translating.
Prince Anastasius’s profound jealousy always
proves troublesome. Into the archive I go.
I quickly disengaged from their lovers’
quarrel, but Ottilie was less accustomed to dealing with royalty and struggled
to follow my example. She caught me on my way to the door and whispered to me,
“Lady Rozemyne, what will your schedule be for tomorrow? We did not anticipate
that you would attend such a tea party during the Archduke Conference, so
preparations will need to be made and the aub will need to be informed.”
From outfits to gifts, there was plenty that
needed to be considered when meeting with royalty. My plans were up in the air
until a winner was decided, and that meant my attendants couldn’t yet do their
job. Not to mention, we were completely unprepared for such an event; I had
been told to stay hidden during the Archduke Conference, which obviously meant
no tea parties. Ottilie’s head was presumably spinning.
“Who can say?” I replied, then looked at
Eglantine and Anastasius with a troubled hand on my cheek. “We will need to
wait until a decision has been made.”
Magdalena set down her teacup, rose from her
seat, and elegantly approached the quarreling couple. Then, with an exaggerated
sigh, she said, “Prince Anastasius, Lady Eglantine, this is unsightly.”
“Lady Magdalena...”
She was getting right in their faces, and it
made me respect her from the bottom of my heart. I could never have done
something so bold—and the same must have been true for Hannelore, who was
simply watching from a comfortable distance.
“Prince Anastasius,” Magdalena continued, her
exasperation clear, “do you not know why Geduldh the Goddess of Earth chose to
avoid Ewigeliebe the God of Life, and sought the protection of those around
her? Perhaps you should reenroll at the Royal Academy and repeat your studies
of the divine.”
Anastasius twitched. His dour expression was
exactly how I imagined the God of Life had looked when he was first rejected by
the Goddess of Earth.
“There are some things that a woman might only
wish to discuss with other women,” Magdalena explained. “Lady Eglantine has the
magnanimity to hear your will at most times; she must have an especially good
reason to refuse you now. Is it not the duty of a husband to understand such
things and act accordingly? If you continue to bind her so tightly, as the God
of Life did to the Goddess of Earth, then you will only earn her ire.”
Then, after threatening Anastasius into
silence, she turned her red eyes upon Eglantine. “As for you, Lady Eglantine, I
would advise that you take more time to think before you speak. You know a
perfect reason for excluding Prince Anastasius, do you not? If you do not
conclude such debates before speaking with Lady
Rozemyne, then your husband will end up directing his dissatisfaction at her.”
Eglantine looked up with a start, then shot
Anastasius and me concerned glances.
Magdalena’s eyes softened as she continued,
“Sudden invitations from the royal family trouble not only those who receive
them but their retainers and duchy as well. The burden is heavy indeed.
Although we can attribute some of this to your apparent poor health, I must say
that you were rather inconsiderate.”
“It would seem that I allowed my composure to
slip... My apologies for my lack of thought,” Eglantine said to Magdalena and
me. “Lady Rozemyne, I must apologize to you twice over. Although I do wish to
speak with you at once, our discussion will have to wait.”
Eglantine had it rough; she couldn’t even host
a tea party without first needing to placate her husband. I replied that she
need not worry about me, thanked Magdalena for having resolved the issue, then
finally made for the archive. As I went, I caught a glimpse of Ottilie’s relief
at the tea party having been delayed.
I continued my translation work until
Sylvester arrived to get me; then the two of us headed back to the dormitory.
On the way there, I informed him of Eglantine’s plan to invite me to a tea
party. The news must have come as a surprise, because he immediately recoiled.
“Why are you getting
invited over me, the aub?” he asked, stung. “Can she
not just tell you whatever’s on her mind at the library? If we send you to that
royal villa, I expect you’re going to cause all kinds of trouble. Tell her that
I want to be there too.”
“Lady Eglantine has yet to tell me what she
wishes to discuss, but I imagine it has something to do with religious matters.
She asked me about the temple once before.”
Sylvester stared down at me, unconvinced. “So
she wants to consult you, huh...? You may be their best bet, seeing as the
royal family and the Sovereign temple are on such bad terms, but... I don’t
feel good about this.”
“Prince Anastasius said that he wanted to join
us for the same reason. Lady Eglantine refused, though, and we haven’t yet
agreed on a date.”
“Doesn’t seem like there’s much chance of me
getting in, then. I assume Lady Eglantine’s more trustworthy, at least?” He
sighed, his expression betraying his suffering.
“I’ll inform you when the details have been
settled. Nothing’s been decided yet, after all.”
“Right. Don’t forget.”
In the end, Anastasius finally conceded; as he
saw it, missing the tea party was better than having his wife resent him. An
ordonnanz arrived for me not long after my return to the dormitory and
announced that I was to meet Eglantine in two days’ time. Until then, I would
continue my translation work as normal. It seemed that I wouldn’t have time to
go shrine hunting.
That’s a shame, but our
preliminary investigation is just as important, I
thought. There was no point hurrying out to visit the shrines when I didn’t
even know their exact locations yet.
“Angelica, Damuel, how did you spend the day?”
I asked after dinner. They couldn’t enter the underground archive and were, to
my knowledge, keeping watch outside the library.
“I monitored the library’s outer corridor,”
Angelica replied, immediately confirming my assumption.
Damuel nodded. “Cornelius and Leonore told us
to remain vigilant, as Lady Detlinde could visit again.”
I paused in thought. “Could one of you use
this map to investigate the locations of the shrines? As I understand it, they
can be found at regular intervals around the central building, so it shouldn’t
be too hard to find them once we have a general idea of where they are. You may
take turns.”
I showed them the map in question, and they
readily agreed. Guarding the same place day in, day out was exhausting in its
own right, so they would take turns hunting for the shrines and swap at noon.
“What do you intend to do once the shrines
have been found, Lady Rozemyne?” Clarissa suddenly asked. She was supposed to
be working with the other scholars in preparation for tomorrow, so I was
surprised to see her wriggle into our conversation. Still, I offered my
response with a smile.
“I intend to clean them. They house the gods,
and it certainly wouldn’t do to leave them so filthy. I cleaned the shrine we found
the other day, and might I add that your magic circle for enhancing wide-area
magic was of great assistance. I would appreciate having some for the other
shrines as well, but—”
“Consider it done. I am honored that you found
my research useful, Lady Rozemyne! But might I ask how
you used the circle, exactly?” She had yet to piece together that I’d paired it
with my waschen, but Damuel explained on my behalf.
“I see...” Clarissa murmured. “My research was
used to perform a large-scale spell. To think I was unable to witness it with
my own eyes... Oh, what vibrant colors the droplets must have shone as Lady
Rozemyne brought life back to the shrine...” Her eyes were wet with sorrowful
tears.
“Lady Hannelore was there with us,” I said,
“so I expect that everything we have discussed is already known to
Dunkelfelger. However, as this all occurred while we were assisting the royal
family, I must ask that you keep it to yourself. That goes for you as well,
Hartmut; I can tell that you are eavesdropping.”
“Understood.”
As we continued our discussion, Ottilie and
Lieseleta were busily preparing for the royal meeting. They were finding it a
struggle, since Rihyarda and Brunhilde had taken care of such dealings in the
past, but at least Rihyarda was still around as Sylvester’s attendant; we would
need to request her assistance with the clothes, gifts, and so on.
“Lady Rozemyne, to think that every day is
like this when you are at the Royal Academy...” Ottilie said with a wry smile,
having never done business with the royal family before. “That explains why
Gretia is unusually well trained despite being so new to your retinue.”
“Lady Rozemyne, I thank you ever so much for
coming.”
After our greetings, Eglantine took a
demonstrative sip of tea and then bit into one of the provided sweets. It
really felt strange to be alone with her, without Anastasius breathing down our
necks.
“I am glad to see that your health has
improved,” I said. “It really did concern me when I saw how pale you had gotten
after visiting the shrine.”
“I am sorry to have worried you. I simply used
too much mana and needed time to recover.”
“Did you clean the shrine as well, Lady
Eglantine?” I was unsure how else she might have used so much mana.
At once, Eglantine’s bright orange eyes
widened, then she giggled. “There was no need; it was still positively
sparkling from your own visit.”
Eglantine and Anastasius shared a villa now
that they were married, but it was still only the two of us here—Anastasius had
gone to the underground archive to work, while Eglantine had asked everybody
else to leave the room. Still, she proffered to me a sound-blocking magic tool.
“I never expected you to be so firm with
Prince Anastasius,” I remarked, sipping my tea.
She smiled. “I should find it easier to
involve him after we have had our discussion.”
“And what is it that you wish to discuss? I
will assist you however I can.”
“As you know, I went to check the shrine
before I asked you to meet with me,” Eglantine said, watching me closely. She
went on to explain that she had touched the door, felt it suck out some of her
mana, and then suddenly appeared inside the shrine.
That’s basically what happened to me.
Well, except for the mana part. Eglantine had
said that she felt some get sucked out from her schtappe, but that hadn’t been
the case for me.
Unless... Did it take so little that I just
didn’t notice?
I was covered in feystone charms at all times,
so mana was always being sucked out of me. One could say that I was largely
numb to the sensation; only when I lost a significant amount of mana did I
actually notice it.
Eglantine continued, “The shrine was dedicated
to the God of Fire and his subordinates. As I gazed up at the statue of
Leidenschaft, I was struck with the compulsion to pray. So, I performed a
dedication whirl.”
Hmm... I prayed to grow up.
As it turned out, one’s reaction to appearing
before the gods depended on the individual. The idea of whirling hadn’t even
occurred to me. Perhaps dedication whirls were ingrained in Eglantine’s mind as
what one did to offer prayers to the gods.
“My mana was sucked out on its own, entirely
as though I were wearing feystones atop the auditorium’s stage,” Eglantine
said, “but I thought nothing of it and continued to whirl. As I offered more
mana, a blue feystone began to form in Leidenschaft’s hands.”
Oh? Leidenschaft already had a blue slate when I
entered. I guess I never saw it as a feystone, because I noticed the shining
text on it from the very beginning. It must depend on how much mana one offers
beforehand.
I remembered the blue slate feeling like a
combination of the mana I’d previously offered and a Divine Will, so I was
probably on the right track.
“My whirling drained almost all of my mana, so
I used one of the rejuvenation potions I keep on my hip. They are not as
effective as the ones you distributed, Lady Rozemyne, but they are still quite
powerful.”
Eglantine had used a royal rejuvenation potion
to recover her mana. Then, she informed me, she had once again felt compelled
to pray.
“Come again?” I asked. “You prayed immediately
after your mana recovered...?”
“Indeed. I felt the need to.”
In the end, Eglantine had made one offering
after another until she had used up every single one of her rejuvenation
potions.
“By the time I was finished,” she said, “the
blue feystone had grown to be rather large. Still, the text on it informed me
that I needed to pray even more.”
Just how much mana do you intend to squeeze out
of her, O mighty Leidenschaft?!
“Exhausted of mana, I was expelled from the
shrine. It seemed to me as though I had spent an eternity inside, but I
returned to find that no time had passed at all. Nobody else seemed to have
entered the shrine either.”
Eglantine had deduced that Anastasius hadn’t
been inside because he had apparently touched the door and said, “So it really
is locked.” As for Magdalena, she hadn’t reacted in the slightest.
“So, Lady Rozemyne, is that shrine not a place
for Zent candidates to offer their prayers?” Eglantine asked. “The underground
archive contains a record about a past Zent, describing how they would
continuously circle the Royal Academy and pray. I cannot help but wonder what
happens when one has prayed enough and the blue feystone is complete.”
“I am just as curious,” I replied. There being
a Zent candidate in the royal family meant that it was in my best interests to
feign ignorance and remain as detached from the matter as I could. Being
foolishly honest and admitting that I was already in possession of one blue
slate would do more to antagonize the royals than anything Detlinde had managed
so far.
“You would say that despite having entered the
shrine yourself, Lady Rozemyne?”
“Pray tell, what makes you think I did...?”
“You have prayed more than most and obtained
enough divine protections, I would think. You also showed not a hint of
surprise at the tale I just told you.”
Uh-oh. She was right. My focus had immediately
turned to comparing our experiences, so it hadn’t even occurred to me to feign
surprise. I’d merely listened with a poker face.
“Oh, but I was
surprised. So surprised that I found myself unable to speak. And, speaking of
surprises, I was especially stunned when you whirled atop the auditorium’s
stage wearing feystones,” I said, changing the topic of our conversation. “Was
that the royal family’s attempt to make the circle shine?”
Eglantine smiled. “Quite so. You and Lord
Ferdinand said that it was for selecting Zent candidates, correct? After the
graduating students repeated the divine protections ritual, so, too, did the
royal family. We also attempted to activate the circle.”
Those of the royal family had adorned
themselves with feystones and whirled while expending mana; Detlinde had
managed to trigger the magic circle, so they were confident that they would
succeed as well. In the process, Trauerqual, Sigiswald, Anastasius, and
Eglantine had caused the circle to light up.
“Prince Sigiswald, Anastasius, and the Zent
all became omni-elemental through their newly obtained divine protections,”
Eglantine informed me, “yet I was the only one drawn into the shrine. It makes
no sense; what differs between Anastasius and me?”
“Your schtappes,” I replied.
“Oh?” She blinked at me in surprise.
“Have you not yet heard from Lady Magdalena? A
slate I translated at the end of yesterday explained how to use the large and
small shrines.”
The smaller shrines were dedicated to the
subordinate gods, and praying at them would create feystones like the one
Eglantine had described. Obtaining those feystones would strengthen one’s
elements. Performing the divine protections ritual after obtaining feystones
from all of the subordinates would secure the divine protection of the primary
gods as well, so the past Zent had prayed almost nonstop while attending the
Royal Academy.
“You can only obtain a schtappe once,
correct?” I asked. “That is why the Zent who wrote the slate was desperate to
obtain the protection of each primary god before he graduated. Zent candidates
must acquire their schtappes in the Garden of Beginnings. As you were
omni-elemental from the start, Lady Eglantine, I expect that was where you
obtained yours?”
“This is my first time hearing the name, but
yes, it would serve as an apt description of where I obtained my schtappe. It
was a strange place with a white tree,” she said, in a bit of a daze. Then her
shoulders slumped. “But does that not mean Prince Sigiswald cannot become a
Zent candidate? He did not have every element when he obtained his schtappe...”
Anastasius hadn’t been sucked into the shrine
after becoming omni-elemental through the ritual, so I doubted that Sigiswald
would either.
“It might be possible for Prince Hildebrand,”
I noted. “If we return to the old custom of students obtaining their schtappes
immediately before their graduation, have him pray at the small shrines to
increase his elements, and ensure that he obtains divine protections from all
of the primary gods during his ritual, then he should also become a Zent
candidate.”
He had already proven his
determination—compressing mana at his young age was no easy feat—so he would
probably manage somehow. It would also benefit Eglantine; if she didn’t want to
stand at the forefront, then Hildebrand could simply work hard in her stead. It
was bound to be possible now that we knew how to obtain the protections of the
primary gods.
The problem would be whether the current Zent can
last until Prince Hildebrand comes of age.
I thought it was good that the royal family
had another potential Zent candidate, but Eglantine’s face clouded over. “Lady
Rozemyne, it has already been announced that Prince Sigiswald will next take
the throne. If either Prince Hildebrand or I become a Zent candidate,
Yurgenschmidt will face war once again.”
The Sovereignty was already in the process of
establishing Sigiswald as the next king—he had managed to trigger the magic
circle, then his Starbind Ceremony had received a blessing on a level never
seen before. Giving the position to Hildebrand or Eglantine was no longer an
option; doing so would cause far too much chaos.
“I understand your desire not to bring about
any further conflict,” I said, “but is the absence of a Grutrissheit not the
most pressing issue facing Yurgenschmidt right now? Should its return not be
prioritized so that the border gates can finally be reopened and duchy borders
redrawn? Plus, although there might be trouble if you or Hildebrand obtain the
Grutrissheit, either outcome is still much better than it going to someone
outside of the royal family.”
“That is true, but...”
After marrying Anastasius, Eglantine was now
royalty as well, but she was still reluctant to acquire the Grutrissheit. I
couldn’t blame her; losing so many family members to assassination during the
previous conflict must have been traumatizing.
Mm... Maybe it really would be best for
me to obtain the Grutrissheit myself, then give it to Prince Sigiswald on the
condition that he return Ferdinand to Ehrenfest...
Eglantine was mentally cornered; she couldn’t
discuss this matter with Anastasius, since he hadn’t been accepted into the
shrine.
I considered my options, though I did not
voice them. It seemed likely that I was closer to obtaining the Grutrissheit
than anyone, simply because of how much I had prayed since enrolling at the
Royal Academy. The blue slate had already been whole by the time I entered the
shrine, and it seemed reasonable to assume that I could obtain the others
without much of a struggle.
However... Ferdinand told me that the
Grutrissheit was in the forbidden archive, which only royalty could enter.
There were still plenty of documents in the
underground archive that I’d yet to read; it was entirely possible that some
unknown factor would stop me from becoming the Zent, even after obtaining
slates from all of the primary gods’ shrines. For that reason, it was best not
to give them any strange ideas.
Not to mention...
The royal family obviously wouldn’t overlook a
Zent candidate who seemed capable of obtaining the Grutrissheit through the
shrines. If they were set on Sigiswald taking the throne, then they would
probably make me marry him. Worst-case scenario, they’d simply kill me and take
the Grutrissheit by force. It was best to remain silent; I didn’t want to leave
Ehrenfest, where my family was.
I put on a noble smile and said, “Perhaps
further research in the underground archive will reveal what must be done to
get Prince Sigiswald a Grutrissheit.” Of course, I didn’t believe that in the
slightest; it was little more than nice-sounding nonsense.
Eglantine gave me a searching look, then cast
her eyes down. “I thank you ever so much for lending me your ear, Lady
Rozemyne.”
I took my leave and returned to the
dormitory—whereupon I received some exciting news from Damuel and Angelica.
They had found all of the primary gods’ shrines marked on the map I’d given
them.
Circling the Shrines
Although we now knew the locations of the
shrines, I was too busy with the underground archive to actually visit them.
There had to be a work-around of some kind. In an ideal world, I would repeat
what we had done for the first shrine and go there with Hildebrand or
Hannelore, but that wasn’t viable when we were under strict orders not to
wander around outside.
I guess I wouldn’t mind sharing the locations
with Lady Eglantine if she wanted to visit them herself...
Unable to think of any satisfying ideas, I
made my way to the underground archive, where Eglantine and Anastasius were
once again going to be spending the morning. It was a day like any other, but
when I went to enter the archive with my writing utensils in hand—
“Lady Rozemyne, do wait a moment.”
I turned around and said, “Yes, Lady
Eglantine?” She was wearing a smile like a blooming flower, while Anastasius
looked quite bitter beside her.
“There is a change of plans for today—I must
ask you to visit the shrines with us. I wish to see your large-scale cleaning
magic for myself. Among some other things, perhaps...”
Anastasius then elaborated, “You are the only
one who can clean them so quickly.” That confirmed it: this was the will of the
royal family.
So that’s how they’re going to play this, hm?
This was the consequence of my being so vague
with Eglantine. They were going to force me to enter the shrines while watching
me the entire time.
I really didn’t want to believe they would resort
to being so forceful, but... here we are.
There was a sudden heaviness in the pit of my
stomach, as though I’d just swallowed a rock, but my options were painfully
limited. After hanging my head in defeat, I reluctantly followed Eglantine and
Anastasius out of the library with my retainers in tow. I was in my highbeast,
of course; Anastasius was taking us to the shrine on the other side of the
scholar building, and there was no way I was going to keep up with the adults
on foot.
“Rozemyne. Here,” Anastasius said, then
offered me a sound-blocker. I took it and gazed up at him, only to see him
looking back at me in displeasure. “It would seem you kept secrets from
Eglantine in that meeting of yours, even after she went out of her way to
exclude me. She was despondent last night, you know.”
“If anyone should feel despondent, it is I. It
was outright malicious of Lady Eglantine to ask me questions that my status
prevents me from answering.”
Saying that I couldn’t enter the shrine would
have gotten me accused of lying to the royal family. Admitting that I could and
that I’d acquired a slate wouldn’t have done me any better; I would have been
deemed an even greater traitor than Detlinde, whose transgressions thus far
extended no further than some treasonous remarks.
Can I really be blamed for keeping my silence?
No matter how much I wanted to hide the truth,
I couldn’t refuse a royal order; I would need to touch the shrine if they told
me to. It depressed me that these two, of all people, were being so forceful.
I’d never thought that my noble-like response to Eglantine would end with me
being made to reveal my secrets.
“My apologies,” Eglantine said. “I do this
only because I am left with no other options.”
No matter how cutely she apologized, the
tightness in my chest remained. I assumed she was looking for a secret
technique of some kind that would allow Sigiswald to enter the shrines, thereby
circumventing another war, but I didn’t have the answers she sought. At most, I
could only suggest that we continue reading the archive’s tablets. I certainly
couldn’t admit that I wanted to obtain the Book of Mestionora, read it, then
use it as a bargaining chip to ensure that Ferdinand wouldn’t get punished.
“You must have entered that shrine,”
Anastasius reasoned. “You’ve prayed so often, obtained so many divine
protections, controlled divine instruments at will, and performed countless
ceremonies. Why even try to hide it?”
“As I recall, it was you
who told me to learn how much information is worth and not disclose it freely.
Should you not praise me for having taken your lesson to heart?”
“Rozemyne,” he said, his eyes narrowed.
“Are you going to order me to tell you
everything?”
“Yes. Anything that you attempt to hide will
surely evolve into something monstrous behind the scenes. It is because we have
been honest with each other that things have gone well so far, is it not? I see
no reason for us to change that now. There is no world in which someone as
religious as you would not be allowed into the shrines.” Instead of commending
me for acting like a true noble, he was ordering me not to hide anything from
him.
“Perhaps I am at fault here, since it was my
own behavior that has led you to scold me, but let it be known that I cannot
provide the convenient solution that Lady Eglantine seeks.”
I was telling the truth, but Anastasius merely
raised an eyebrow at me and said, “I wonder about that...” I could tell from
his expression that he doubted me, but the only thing I was keeping to myself
was a comment much too rude to say.
Sigiswald couldn’t enter the shrine because he
hadn’t been omni-elemental when he obtained his schtappe. He hadn’t been
omni-elemental because the royal family hadn’t read the documents in the
underground archive, which detailed the importance of elements. They hadn’t
read those documents not only because of the colossal death toll of the civil
war and purge, and the abundance of knowledge that had been lost as a result,
but also because none of the royals could read or had studied ancient language.
To be frank, none of this was my fault. It
wasn’t because of me that people could only obtain their schtappe once, nor was
I in a position to change things. Was it really so bad of me to think that
Eglantine or Hildebrand should visit the shrines, since they were the only
members of the royal family who could plausibly obtain the Grutrissheit? Nobles
would consider that a lot more acceptable than they would it going to someone
from Ehrenfest. I could only think of one way for Sigiswald to be the next king
without being able to obtain the Grutrissheit himself.
“Can anyone blame me for wanting to keep quiet
when it is obvious how the royal family would respond to my being able to enter
the shrines?” I asked. “I would rather die than leave my family in Ehrenfest to
become the third wife of a man whose second marriage I just recently blessed.”
“So you’ve learned to use your head...”
Anastasius muttered.
“Does this mean you will speak openly instead
of waving off my questions?” Eglantine giggled, wearing her usual soft smile.
She had completely ignored the “I would rather die” part of my response. “I
understand how you feel, Lady Rozemyne, but we must avoid war in the
Sovereignty at all costs; peace has only recently begun to return. Obtaining
the Grutrissheit is of the utmost importance. You will assist us, correct?”
I averted my eyes. Their position made enough
sense that I couldn’t just refuse—but, at the same time, I really didn’t want
to agree. They continued to pressure me with silent smiles as we passed the
professors’ herb garden by the scholar building and soon arrived at the shrine.
“So there truly are more shrines...” the royal
retainers said, unable to hide their surprise. My own retainers were too
concerned about my situation to react; their eyes darted from Eglantine to
Anastasius to me.
I returned the sound-blocking magic tool to
Anastasius, then smiled at my retainers. “We were simply discussing how to
clean the shrines.” I climbed out of my Pandabus, then used a large-scale
waschen. The filth vanished in a heartbeat, leaving the area positively
sparkling.
“How wonderful,” Eglantine said with a smile,
clearly impressed.
“Rozemyne,” Anastasius added, “check to see
whether the door is locked.”
I did as he instructed, my heart heavy. No
sooner had my fingers brushed the door than I was sucked through.
“Is this... the God of Darkness’s shrine?”
Just like in Leidenschaft’s, there were
thirteen statues lined up before me. The centermost one depicted the God of
Darkness himself, wearing a large cape that sparkled as wonderfully as the
night sky. In its hand was a feystone slate, as expected, but this one was
black rather than blue. It was complete, unlike the one Eglantine had
described, so I could already see the text on it.
“Guess I should still offer a prayer. Just to
be safe.”
Hesitant to reach for the slate without
praying at all, I raised both of my hands and my left leg. “O God of Darkness,
O Sterrat the God of Stars, O Verbergen the God of Concealment, O Verdraeos the
God of Deliverance... Distance me from this troublesome royal family who think
only of themselves and make such cruel demands of me. Praise be to the gods!”
I was praying out of anger. Among the God of
Darkness’s subordinates was the God of Deliverance, who would ideally take care
of the royal family for me.
“Oh, the text on this slate differs from what
I saw in the God of Fire’s shrine. Let’s see here... ‘Speak the name I granted
thee’?”
Er, whose name? The God of Darkness’s?
All of a sudden, the name that had been
emblazoned in my mind during my third-year practical lessons resurfaced.
“Praise be to Schicksantracht, the God of Darkness,” I said, which caused the
black slate to suck out some of my mana, and the text on its surface to change.
“Your prayers have reached me, and your worth has
been acknowledged. I shall now grant you a word necessary to obtain the Book of
Mestionora. This word alone, however, will not suffice; a Zent candidate must
obtain the words of the other gods as well.”
I finished reading the text, then the black
slate went into me and fused with my internal schtappe. Once it was gone,
Schicksantracht’s word came to my mind.
“Willedeal.”
An instant later, I was outside the shrine
again. My eyes met those of Anastasius and Eglantine, who were staring at me
intently—determined not to miss the moment when I was sucked through the door,
no doubt. I could tell that trying to lie to them and say that it hadn’t worked
simply wouldn’t fly.
“Well, now there are black lines...” I said.
“Excuse me?”
Above the shrine there were now black lines as
well as blue. Eglantine and Anastasius followed my eyes, then exchanged glances
of confusion.
I gave them both a vague smile. “Shall we
visit the other shrines?”
Eglantine blinked at me in disbelief, then
looked worried. “Will your body hold...?”
“Indeed. I am fine at the moment. Though I
would surely collapse without my highbeast.”
Part of me wanted to collapse on the spot and
ruin their plans out of spite, but Lessy meant that I wasn’t using much stamina
at all. I wasn’t using much mana either, unfortunately.
“That side path would get us to the next
shrine sooner,” I called out as Anastasius and Eglantine went to return to the
scholar building. They turned to me, at which point I gestured toward a thin
track leading through the forest. It seemed to shine for me but most likely
didn’t for anyone else here; it was presumably the route that Zent candidates
of the past had used to circle the shrines.
Anastasius squeezed his eyes shut, then opened
them again. “Climb into your highbeast, Rozemyne. We will go to the next one.”
Then, without a moment’s hesitation, he started down the forest path. He must
have gathered the location of the next shrine, in part thanks to my saying that
they were at equidistant intervals around the Royal Academy.
As we made our way through the forest,
Anastasius handed me the magic tool again. He confirmed that I was holding it
and then said, “My brother will take you as his third wife. That will solve
everything.”
“No, it won’t. As eager as I am to read a book
belonging to a goddess, I don’t want to marry Prince Sigiswald.” Yes, his
suggestion would “solve everything” for the royal family... but what about my
own wants?
“Eglantine does not want to be the reason for
another war, and she fears becoming the next Zent. If she obtains the
Grutrissheit, the top-ranking duchies will all move at once, beginning with
Klassenberg.”
Now he was really ticking me off—he was
thinking about granting Eglantine’s wish and nothing else. “Indeed, neither the
royal family nor the Sovereignty would suffer if you thrust this war upon me
and made Ehrenfest accountable to the top-ranking duchies, but do you really
think we would roll over and accept that? I already have a fiancé in Ehrenfest,
and my intention is to remain there.”
“Yes,” Anastasius remarked, “you said as much
during that exchange with Dunkelfelger.” I could tell from his tone that he
still wasn’t going to budge.
I pursed my lips at the two royals. “So, in
short... neither of you care about Ehrenfest in the slightest.”
Eglantine looked at me. “We do not wish your
duchy ill, but its suffering is a small price to pay to avoid war in the
Sovereignty. You must understand that, surely.” As it turned out, she felt as
personally disconnected from Ehrenfest as I did from the Sovereignty.
“Above all else,” Anastasius continued, “I
must prioritize Yurgenschmidt, the Sovereignty, and the royal family. That I
would show such deep concern for Eglantine should go without saying. If my
suggestion today is necessary to soothe her heart and ease her concerns, then
what else can I do? Ehrenfest may suffer, but only Ehrenfest will care.”
It was truly embittering to hear that the
royal family cared so little about my feelings, especially after I’d agreed to
do so much for them. Anastasius had outright admitted that he would disregard
me entirely for the sake of those he cared about more.
“If you really mean to say that Ehrenfest
should deal with its own problems, then does the same logic not apply to the
Sovereignty?” I asked. “In the event that Lady Eglantine obtained the
Grutrissheit, Klassenberg would support her, and the Sovereign temple would no
longer be able to protest. Imagine how much more devastating it would be for
the book to end up in the hands of someone not in the
royal family. Please refrain from poaching Ehrenfest’s archduke candidates one
after another.”
“Be careful, Rozemyne,” Anastasius warned me
with a glare. “You speak above your station.”
I glared at him in turn. “You
told me not to hold anything back, Prince Anastasius. If you are going to order
me by royal decree to marry Prince Sigiswald, then at least return Ferdinand to
Ehrenfest. Losing him has left us all in a dire state.”
“That is not an option. Ahrensbach would
collapse.”
I squeezed the sound-blocker, furious about
the disparity of our treatment. “You certainly are quick to side with
Ahrensbach. Should it not be made to deal with its own problems? That was your
stance with Ehrenfest, after all. Tell me, what happened to your promise to
treat Ehrenfest like the other duchies that won the civil war? You agreed to
start during this very Archduke Conference. Does the royal family think so
little of my duchy’s and my contributions?”
If they said yes and that this was simply how
the royal family did things, then there wouldn’t be anything else I could do.
Still, I was so frustrated that I wanted to gnash my teeth and gnaw on my lip.
Eglantine smiled at me. It was a condescending
smile, as though she were watching a child throw a tantrum. “Your contributions
are not insignificant in the least, Lady Rozemyne—but the fact of the matter is
that Ahrensbach is more important and in a far more precarious situation than
Ehrenfest.”
Ahrensbach was a greater duchy from the
winning side of the civil war, and it was currently responsible for half of Old
Werkestock. It was vastly more important than Ehrenfest, boasting more land, a
larger population, and Yurgenschmidt’s only open country gate, and it was much
worse off as well. At present, there were only two adults among its archducal
family—three if you counted Ferdinand. That really wasn’t enough to support a
greater duchy.
I get that Ahrensbach is suffering from a lack of
archduke candidates, but isn’t that a result of their weird tradition of
reducing all other candidates to archnobles every time there’s a change of
archduke? It seems unfair that Ferdinand—and Ehrenfest—should suffer because of
another duchy’s customs.
“So you mean to tell me that my contributions
to the royal family never mattered,” I said. “My desires were always going to
be overruled.”
“That isn’t true,” Anastasius replied. “There
are some things we can do and some things we cannot. Your request for us to
return Ferdinand may seem feasible, but he is the sole pillar keeping
Ahrensbach standing. We cannot risk taking him away without a Zent wielding the
Grutrissheit.”
“I’m not sure I understand...”
“We cannot return Ferdinand to Ehrenfest until
we are able to divide Ahrensbach’s land, create lesser duchies, and assign them
aubs from among the other duchies’ archducal families.”
Eglantine nodded. “Because there is no
Grutrissheit to redraw the country’s borders, it has fallen to the Sovereignty
and the greater duchies to manage the territories that lost the civil war. In
this case, if Ahrensbach were to collapse now, there would be no one to take
its place or support its land. How do you think Ehrenfest would fare if, as its
neighbor, it was burdened with such duties?”
Ehrenfest was already struggling with its own
land after purging so many nobles; we didn’t have the leeway to look after
other duchies as well.
“Ahrensbach’s crippling mana shortage was the
only reason that Lady Detlinde’s behavior has been overlooked,” Eglantine
continued. “Lady Magdalena was rather furious after her visit the other day.”
Detlinde had apparently been rude enough to
warrant her immediate execution. The mana shortage had made it necessary to
spare her, but only for as long as she was needed. Her fate was sealed, and
that realization shocked me like a plunge into ice-cold water.
“In that case, at the very least, promise me
that Ferdinand won’t be punished alongside her,” I said. “He is only in
Ahrensbach to begin with, engaged to a woman he doesn’t love and stuck drinking
one potion after another, because the king made him choose between that and
murdering his own brother. Prince Anastasius, how would you feel if you were
put in the same situation, forced to decide between killing Prince Sigiswald or
marrying Lady Detlinde? In the case of the latter, how would you feel if you were
then executed for her rudeness?”
Anastasius grimaced at the very thought; then,
his gray eyes came to rest on me. “We will not be able to avoid punishing
Ferdinand once he is married,” he said provokingly. “If you wish to save him
from this fate, obtain the Grutrissheit now, while their Starbinding is
delayed.”
I shuddered. It was clear from the look on his
face that he wouldn’t hesitate to exploit me for his own ends, but I refused to
let that stop me. “Then would you return Ferdinand to Ehrenfest?”
“If you can foresee the problems that removing
him from Ahrensbach would cause and can think of ways to solve them, then yes,
as you will.”
I won’t let Ferdinand be executed alongside Lady
Detlinde.
This was my chance to save him. It would
require me to visit the shrines, obtain the Grutrissheit, and become
Sigiswald’s third wife... but those were sacrifices I was willing to make.
No matter what they demand of me, I’ll use the
Grutrissheit as my shield and save him.
“We’re here,” Anastasius said, bringing an end
to our conversation before urging me forward. We were standing before a white
shrine. I cleaned it, like with the others, and then touched the door. At once,
I was transported inside.
“This one is for the Goddess of Wind...” I
muttered to myself. “That slate is her divine color.”
I could see a statue of a goddess holding a
round shield in her left hand and a yellow slate in her right, standing among
statues depicting her subordinates.
“O Schutzaria the Goddess of Wind, O
Ordoschnelli the Goddess of Couriers, O Dregarnuhr the Goddess of Time, O
Mestionora the Goddess of Wisdom... Grant me the Book of Mestionora so that I
might save Ferdinand. Praise be to the gods!”
Then, I took the already completed slate.
“Your prayers have reached me, and your worth has
been acknowledged. I, Schutzaria, shall now grant you a word necessary to
obtain the Book of Mestionora.”
As expected, it showed the same boilerplate
text as the others, with the only difference being the goddess’s word. The
slate fused with the schtappe inside of me, then I repeated what was etched
into my mind.
“Teidihinder.”
And with that, I was outside again. I checked
the door to make sure that it was locked, then returned to Eglantine and
Anastasius. Alongside the black and blue lines in the sky was now a strip of
yellow, and I could just about see a complex pattern forming.
“On to the next one,” Anastasius instructed.
“From this point onward, everyone ride your highbeasts.”
It seemed that doing the entire journey on
foot was getting to be a bit much for the others. We all rode down the next
path—and our new mode of transport meant we reached the next shrine in no time
at all. Again, I cleaned it and then went inside.
“Let’s see... This one must be for the God of
Life.”
There was Ewigeliebe with his sword and
subordinates, but this place was noticeably different from the others; the
thirteen statues were positioned around a small shrine. Indeed, it was a shrine
within a shrine!
Wait, is that the Earth
shrine? I wondered. It seemed unlikely that
Ewigeliebe and his subordinates would guard anything else so intently. But why even bother recreating the bible this closely...?
I wanted to sigh, but something compelled me
to pray instead. I raised my arms and gazed upon Ewigeliebe the God of Life.
Oh! The slate isn’t yet whole!
It was only half complete, which made sense,
now that I thought about it; I seldom prayed to the God of Life. The only time
I could remember doing so at the Royal Academy was when we were preparing for
our bride-taking ditter match against Dunkelfelger. A white pillar had arisen
when I was teaching Wilfried how to use the divine instrument.
“O Ewigeliebe the God of Life, O Schneeahst
the God of Ice, O Schlaftraum the God of Dreams, O Cuococalura the God of
Cooking...”
I wonder if praying to Cuococalura will net me
various new recipes...
With that in mind, I continued to pray. It
wasn’t long before I started to feel a bunch of mana get sucked out of me,
exactly as Eglantine had described. The slate reached completion just as it
became more difficult for me to maintain my stance.
A
voice echoed in my head, “Your prayers have reached
me, and your worth has been acknowledged. I grant you permission to pray to my
wife, Geduldh.”
Wait, huh? What about the word for obtaining the
Book of Mestionora?!
I was at a loss; this hadn’t happened in the
other shrines. Then, the door to the inner shrine began to open, revealing a
statue of Geduldh the Goddess of Earth. The slate in her hand was complete,
probably because of the Dedication Ritual we had performed here at the Royal
Academy.
But, wait... how do I get it?
Statues of Ewigeliebe and his subordinates
were still surrounding the Earth shrine, keeping me from going inside. I was
pretty sure that even trying to approach would inspire the God of Life to cut
me down with his sword—a terrifying thought, to be sure. I took and drank one
of the rejuvenation potions at my hip as I considered what to do.
Can I at least get closer now that Ewigeliebe has
accepted me?
And then it hit me—he had permitted me to pray
and nothing more. At no point had he invited me to come closer. I gazed up at
Ewigeliebe’s statue in front of the shrine, and entreated the Goddess of Earth
to help me.
“Please teach me how to obtain the slate!
Praise be to Geduldh the Goddess of Earth!”
Mana flew out of my ring. Then, the red slate
in Geduldh’s hand shimmered, disappeared, and reappeared beside the white slate
that Ewigeliebe was holding.
“Your prayers have reached Geduldh, and your
worth has been acknowledged. She and I shall now grant you words necessary to
obtain the Book of Mestionora.”
So Ewigeliebe does the talking and the slate-giving... He really is protective.
It was a pretty bothersome gimmick, but I was
impressed that the first Zent had gone to the trouble of encapsulating so much
of what was written in the bible. As I mulled over how meticulous he must have
been, the door to Geduldh’s shrine closed again.
I took the white slate from the God of Life’s
hands. After such an unusual experience, I thought that it might say something
unique, but the text was the same as always; only the given word ever changed.
The slate fused with the schtappe inside of me, and the new word spilled from
my lips.
“Neigunsch.”
Next, I took and examined the red slate.
“This word alone, however, will not suffice; a
Zent candidate must obtain the words of the other gods as well.”
The red slate also fused with my inner
schtappe.
“Tolerakeit.”
Again, I was outside. It felt as though I’d
spent much longer than usual in the shrine, since I’d needed to obtain two
slates this time, but not a moment had actually passed. I gazed up at the
sky—someone thanked me for washing the shrine in the meantime—and saw even more
colors than before. What would happen after I obtained all of the slates? We
were forging ahead into unknown territory, and it was honestly kind of
terrifying.
“On to the next,” Anastasius said.
I shook my head, trying to dispel the fear
building up inside of me. It was obvious by now that the royal family would
never help me out of mere compassion; I needed something to bargain with them.
I’m not scared. I’m going to save Ferdinand.
As we continued along the side path, I
couldn’t help but notice that the way ahead was getting steadily brighter.
“Just how many of these shrines are there?”
Ottilie murmured, her voice tinged with concern.
“Six,” Damuel replied without missing a beat.
His swiftness earned him a strange look from Ottilie, but he had confirmed
their locations before our departure.
“There it is,” Anastasius said as the next
shrine came into view. “Rozemyne, the usual.”
I washed the shrine, then went inside while
pretending to check whether it was locked.
“This one’s for the Goddess of Light.”
There were twelve statues surrounding one that
appeared to be wearing the crown of Light. In the center statue’s hand was a
golden tablet that shone faintly and reminded me of the flames produced by
contract magic.
“O Goddess of Light, O Gebordnung the Goddess
of Order, O Unheilschneide the Goddess of Purification, O Liebeskhilfe the
Goddess of Binding... I shall do whatever it takes to save Ferdinand, so please
offer me your guidance. Praise be to the gods!”
I cast my eyes upon the feystone slate, and...
“Yeah, that figures. Like the God of Darkness,
she wants me to speak the name she gave me.”
It arose in my mind without delay. I’d
received the names of both supreme gods during one of my third-year practical
lessons.
“Praise be to Versprechredi, the Goddess of
Light.”
The golden tablet in my hand sucked out some
of my mana, and the text on its surface immediately changed.
“Your prayers have reached me, and your worth has
been acknowledged. I shall now grant you a word necessary to obtain the Book of
Mestionora. This word alone, however, will not suffice; a Zent candidate must
obtain the words of the other gods as well.”
Then, as expected, the golden tablet fused
with my internal schtappe. I spoke the word given to me by the Goddess of
Light.
“Austrag.”
Outside the shrine, I saw that Anastasius was
touching the door as well, his brow furrowed in frustration and regret. He must
have realized that I was looking at him, because he then adopted a more neutral
expression.
“Done?” he asked me. I nodded in response,
then he turned to his retainers with a dramatic flourish of his cape and said,
“To the next one, then.”
The next and the last.
There had been six large shrines on the map.
We made our way to the final one, then I cleaned it and touched the door.
Inside were another thirteen statues, the centermost of which was holding a
staff in its right hand and a glittering green tablet in its left. That was
enough for me to identify it as Flutrane, a goddess powerful enough to wash
away Ewigeliebe at the start of spring using the water from the melted snow,
but also kind enough to heal the wounded Geduldh.
“O Flutrane the Goddess of Water, O Verdrenna
the Goddess of Thunder, O Heilschmerz the Goddess of Healing, O Verfuhremeer
the Goddess of Oceans... Please wash away the mountain of disasters weighing
down on Ferdinand. Praise be to the gods!”
Even though I’d been riding in my Pandabus, I
must have been tired from visiting all of the shrines with the royal family; I
gave a somewhat sloppy prayer and then took the green tablet. To my surprise,
the text on it was different than usual—perhaps because this was the final
shrine.
“Your prayers have reached me, and your worth has
been acknowledged. I shall now grant you the last word necessary to obtain the
Book of Mestionora. O great Zent candidate, who has obtained the words of the
other gods as well, reach out and seize that which you seek.”
The next part of the process was very
familiar: the green slate fused with my schtappe, then I spoke the new word
that I’d received.
“Rombekur.”
Having now visited all of the shrines, I was
given the much anticipated instruction to reach out and grab the Book of
Mestionora. If what the Goddess of Water had said was true, then the
Grutrissheit was right at hand.
Believe me, I want it, but... where exactly am I
supposed to be reaching?!
Most suspicious of all were the lines of
various colors that had been appearing in the sky as I went from shrine to
shrine. I reached up as if to grab them.
C’mere, Book of Mestionora...
“What in the world are you doing?” Anastasius
asked, narrowing his eyes at me. Nothing had happened.
Darn.
“Oh, I simply thought that I should pray in
celebration now that the shrines are all clean.” It was a random excuse, but it
was worth a try. So, with Anastasius, Eglantine, and their retainers watching
me, I uttered a prayer and shot some mana up into the sky.
Still, nothing happened.
What am I supposed to do...? The gods could have
been a little less ambiguous.
In any case, it was still too early to
despair. The underground archive contained more documents about the shrines;
perhaps they would give me an idea of what to do next.
But, well, I guess a rejuvenation potion comes
first.
Cleaning the shrines had cost me quite a lot
of mana, and our extended journey had drained my stamina, even though I was
riding in my highbeast. I wanted to recover both before returning to the
underground archive, so I went to grab the kindness-filled potion from my hip.
Ottilie’s expression changed to one of worry.
“Lady Rozemyne, was performing all of those waschens too much for your body to
endure? Even if not, I strongly believe that you have traveled too far
today...”
“Fear not,” Anastasius said, “that was the
last shrine. We shall give Rozemyne some time to rest before we return to the
library.”
I waved away Ottilie’s concerns and smiled. “I
will be fine once I can recover my mana.”
Oh...?
As I waited for the potion to take effect, the
feeling that I was unable to control the mana overflowing within me suddenly
began to fade. Little by little, I even started to compress my mana. I could
now increase my quantity as easily as before my divine protections ritual.
I stared down at my hands, and tilted my head.
Could it be that my schtappe has grown...?
“Is something the matter, Lady Rozemyne?” came
Eglantine’s voice. She had noticed the look in my eyes and was proffering a
sound-blocking magic tool. Anastasius adroitly noticed our intention to have a
private conversation and came over, so Eglantine gave him a sound-blocker as
well with a half-smile.
“It feels as though my schtappe has evolved,”
I told them.
“What?” said Anastasius. “Explain.”
“It really is just a feeling—I cannot say
whether it is true—but do you remember how the schtappe I obtained in my first
year no longer suited me after I performed the ritual for obtaining divine
protections?”
“I do,” Anastasius replied with a nod.
I opened and closed my hand. “The tablets one
acquires in the shrines are very much like Divine Wills. After obtaining them
all, I gained superior control over my mana.”
“So one can change one’s schtappe by obtaining
the shrines’ tablets...?” Eglantine mused aloud, then beamed a radiant smile.
“That means there might still be hope for Prince Sigiswald.”
It was much too early to rejoice, in my
opinion; one had to collect feystones and continuously offer mana at small
shrines to obtain the protections of the primary gods, and we didn’t even know
whether obtaining them through a repeated ritual would permit one entry to the
large shrines. He had a long way to go in either case.
“That is a long and uncertain road,” I said.
“He would need to pray at the small shrines, repeat his divine protections
ritual to secure the protection of each primary god, then return to the Garden
of Beginnings to improve his schtappe. I do not know whether that last step is
even possible. Such matters are in the hands of the gods, so I can accept no
responsibility for them.”
“Still, it is better than having no hope at
all,” Eglantine replied. Her dazzling smile almost won me over, but I shook my
head to drive away her false charms. “Lady Rozemyne?”
“We finished circling the shrines, but what
now?” I asked, changing the subject.
“We will return to the underground archive,”
Anastasius said. “Fourth bell is fast approaching. Everyone, on your
highbeasts.”
I returned the sound-blocking magic tool and
climbed into Lessy. Then, we all started making our way back to the library.
Ah!
Once we were in the air and above the trees, I
saw that the colored lines connecting the shrines had formed a gigantic magic
circle. We weren’t high up enough for me to see it all, and I couldn’t tell
what it would do when activated, but it appeared to be covering the entire
Royal Academy, with the central building quite appropriately at its center. The
circle was probably focused on the Farthest Hall in particular.
I didn’t know what was happening, but I could
tell that it was something extreme. My heart pounded unpleasantly in my chest.
Deeper into the Underground Archive
“I will need to inform Father that you have
visited the shrines, and speak with him about what comes next,” Anastasius
said. After bringing me back to the underground archive, he and Eglantine were
going to have lunch and then attend an afternoon meeting.
“Prince Anastasius... were your actions here
today done in secret, by chance?”
“I would not say that, but I am aware that I
may have gotten a bit ahead of myself.”
Really? Just a bit?
Anastasius was trying to be expressionless, as
was so common among nobles, but I could see the worry in his eyes. At the very
least, he was much easier to read than Ferdinand.
Hm... He and Eglantine were really obstinate
today. Could it be that something happened in the royal family?
I sighed at my own optimism—even now, I was
trying to find a reason to trust them—and descended the stairs to the
underground archive. Schwartz and Weiss were standing on either side of the
transparent wall, beyond which Hildebrand and Magdalena were already at work.
Hannelore must have been resting, because she was nowhere to be seen.
Our retainers were preparing lunch, but they
stopped to welcome us when we arrived.
“We will be returning to the villa after
speaking to Lady Magdalena,” Anastasius announced to his own retainers after
reaching the bottom of the stairs. “There is much we will need to discuss with
Father and my brother. Contact them at once.”
Anastasius’s and Eglantine’s retainers sent
out ordonnanzes, started to pack some things, and told Magdalena’s retainers to
summon their lady. I passed through them and headed to the rest area, where I
found Hannelore. She set down her teacup and gave me a warm, healing smile.
“Welcome back, Lady Rozemyne. Have you
finished cleaning all the shrines?”
“Indeed. I cleaned the last one just a moment
ago.”
Weiss then hopped over, to my surprise; he
seldom left his post by the transparent wall while we were visiting the
archive.
“Weiss, what is the matter?” Hannelore asked,
blinking her red eyes. “You moved so suddenly that I thought something had
happened.”
The shumil offered no response. Instead, it
came straight over to me, took my right hand, and said, “Follow me, milady.”
“Hm? Weiss?”
Before I could ask where, I realized that
there was only one place the shumils would take me after I finished praying at
all the shrines—the next location on the journey to obtain the Book of
Mestionora. I swallowed hard, then saw Schwartz pushing Hildebrand out of the
archive.
“Schwartz started telling me to leave all of a
sudden,” Hildebrand griped. “What in the world is— Rozemyne?”
Everyone stared at the shumils for their
strange behavior—and at me for being involved with it.
I guess I should keep going...
I turned to Anastasius, who gave me an
affirming nod with a stiff expression. His gesture meant the royal family’s
permission, so I went into the archive with Weiss. Schwartz took my left hand
as soon as I entered.
“Transcribe, milady.”
I didn’t even need to ask what; the Book of
Mestionora was no doubt awaiting me. Schwartz and Weiss guided me to one of the
room’s white walls, and touched a recess in its surface. My mana was sucked
into it; a magic circle sprang to life, like when we had unlocked the archive;
and an opening appeared.
Well, looks like this is a path.
I turned to gauge the others’ reactions, only
to realize that the transparent wall separating us had turned opaque. From
within the archive, I couldn’t see any of them.
“Milady. This way.”
Together, Schwartz and Weiss pulled my arms
and guided me through the newly formed, pure-white entrance. My heart was
racing. Just knowing that the Book of Mestionora was ahead made my legs tremble
in anticipation and my excitement swell.
I wonder what the book is like...
We soon arrived at a door marked with a
complex, luminous magic circle. It was clearly locked tight, which made me even
more tense.
“Here, milady.”
At the shumils’ behest, I reached out and
touched the magic circle. My hand was instantly knocked back, and a spark of
what felt like electricity shot through me. It was just like what happened
whenever someone touched Schwartz or Weiss without permission.
“Eep!” I cried, withdrawing my hand in
surprise.
Schwartz and Weiss looked up at me.
“Not registered, milady.”
“Cannot enter.”
Before I could even process what had just
happened, the two shumils rejected my entry. “Registered with what?” I asked in
a daze.
“The royal family.”
Their simple response made the blood drain
from my face. The archive containing the Grutrissheit could only be entered by
those with royal blood—Ferdinand had told me that already. He had said that my
commoner origins would prevent me from ever becoming queen, but after being
allowed into the shrines and easily obtaining the slates of each element, some
part of me had remained stubbornly optimistic. In hindsight, it was obvious
that an archive containing something so important would vet entrants with a magic-enforced
blood checker.
What should I do...?
I needed to obtain the Grutrissheit this year;
otherwise, I wouldn’t be able to save Ferdinand. It had been the best option
available to me, and the path ahead suddenly seemed much bleaker.
It would take me three years to be registered as
a royal...
To prevent skilled archduke candidates from
being taken by force, archduke candidates were forbidden from moving to the
Sovereignty outside of marriage. In other words, I would only be able to enter
the royal family by marrying Sigiswald—and our Starbind Ceremony would need to
wait until after I came of age. That was three years away at the absolute
least, which was completely useless; Ferdinand was getting married next year.
“Open...” I mumbled, then slapped the door. My
hand was blasted away again, this time with even greater force. I gazed from my
hand to the magic circle—the sparks had made my fingers go numb—then struck the
entrance again.
“Open.”
Again, I was repelled, and with even more
force. My hand throbbed, and a storm of emotions swirled in my chest:
frustration that the Grutrissheit was just out of reach, despair that I wasn’t
able to save Ferdinand, outrage that the royal-only magic circle kept rejecting
me... They all made me sick.
“LET ME IN!”
Letting my emotions run wild, I squeezed my
numb hand into a fist and banged on the entrance as hard as I could. Sparks
flew as my destructive mana clashed with the mana protecting the door. There
came a sudden pop from my wrist, then another. The
magic circle’s counterattacks were destroying my charms from Ferdinand, one by
one, which snapped me out of my rage. In a panic, I pulled my hand away.
“Milady is dangerous.”
“Must be eliminated.”
After my little outburst, Schwartz and Weiss
must have identified me as a threat; the feystones on their foreheads lit up as
they prepared to attack me.
I couldn’t let any more of the charms given to
me be destroyed, so I muttered, “I’m going...” and started to head back, my
shoulders slumped. Schwartz and Weiss followed after me, still on guard and
ready to attack.
Even upon reentering the archive, the entrance
remained opaque. I collapsed upon it and looked down at my hand, which was
stinging and tingling. The part of my fist that had struck the circle was
covered in red and black splotches, as though it had gotten seriously burned.
Not even Ferdinand’s charms had protected me fully.
“It hurts...” I murmured.
As I continued to stare down at my wounds,
Schwartz and Weiss closed the path we had opened, then hopped over and stood in
front of the archive door. Weiss then passed through, at which point the
entrance became transparent again. I could see everyone waiting with bated
breath.
“Rozemyne!” Hildebrand exclaimed, but
Anastasius stopped him from running over to me. He told everyone else to stand
back, then entered alone.
“Rozemyne, did you...?”
“I wasn’t able to. The farthest door can only
be opened by those registered as royalty.”
“I see...” Anastasius muttered, sounding
regretful. He then caught sight of my hand and froze. “What happened to you?”
“The magic circle rejected me. Violently.”
“I never thought this would happen... Leave
the archive and be healed at once.”
I grabbed his hand and shook my head. “What’s
going to happen to Ferdinand? A year won’t be enough time for me to obtain the
Grutrissheit. What should I do...?”
“Rozemyne, calm down. Your mana...”
His instruction was pointless; it was never
that simple. I shot Anastasius a hard glare and said, “You intend to punish
Ferdinand alongside Lady Detlinde, do you not? Would you be able to ‘calm down’
if someone told you they were going to execute Lady Eglantine or your family
entirely because of Lady Detlinde’s actions?!”
Anastasius gritted his teeth with a pained
expression, then blinked in confusion. “How is that an appropriate comparison?
You aren’t married or engaged to Ferdinand, nor is he a member of your family.”
“He was my guardian since before I was
baptized, as well as my mentor and my doctor; he’s equivalent to family. He
counts among those I need to protect more than anyone or anything else, so why
wouldn’t I worry about him? How dare you threaten to
execute him for the crimes of a woman he never wanted to marry to begin
with—especially when he’s been downing one potion after another to keep
Ahrensbach afloat. Who wouldn’t be furious when someone they care about is
being treated so abhorrently?!”
The moment I got emotional, the charms
covering my body began to light up. They each filled with mana and started to
shine.
Oh no. At this rate, I’m going to Crush a
prince...
That realization immediately cooled my head. I
took deep breaths, and compressed the mana that was swelling inside of me. The
process was much easier than I was used to, and the charms dimmed before any of
my mana could leak out—my schtappe really had evolved.
Anastasius knit his brow. “‘Equivalent to
family,’ hm...? I had hoped to light a fire under you—to increase your
motivation to obtain the Grutrissheit—but it would appear that I crossed some
lines.” He sighed, then plaintively began to cast healing magic on me. “It is
customary for married couples to be punished together, but Detlinde will only
be punished after the situation in Ahrensbach has
stabilized—in other words, when the royal family obtains the Grutrissheit, or
when Hildebrand and Letizia come of age and marry. We will overlook you helping
Ferdinand maneuver to a position where he can protect himself. Such an
aspiration is still possible to achieve.”
I merely cocked my head at the prince, unsure
what to say. It seemed that Ferdinand wasn’t in immediate danger after all.
Anastasius gave a self-deprecating smile. “I
truly must have lost myself to urgency... I acted too carelessly and completely
forgot that you often do not share the common sense of most nobles. Although I
spoke in a fairly provocative way to motivate you, what I said just now is so
glaringly obvious that I am sure Ferdinand understands it already.”
Ferdinand understands that he’s going to be
punished by association...?
I suddenly remembered our meeting with
Eglantine after Detlinde’s dedication whirl; Ferdinand had used a recording to
prove that he had tried to stop his stubborn fiancée. Still, I was against him
needing to prove his innocence simply because he was engaged to a troublemaker.
“Ferdinand will most likely have Ahrensbach
under his thumb within the next half year,” Anastasius continued. “Rather than
fret about him, you would do well to worry about yourself.”
“About myself...?” I repeated. Was there
anything I needed to be concerned about other than Ferdinand and Ehrenfest?
“I retract my earlier statement that my elder
brother will take you as his third wife; if only a member of the royal family
can obtain the Grutrissheit, then the danger you’re in is vastly diminished.”
He gave a weary sigh, then peered down at me with a look of partial concern and
added, “As is your potential value to us.”
“Um, what? The danger I’m in? Potential
value?”
“We have already spoken to Aub Ehrenfest
regarding these matters. Has he told you nothing?”
“Nothing at all.”
“Then ask him for the
details,” Anastasius said, shaking his head in disbelief. It seemed that
Sylvester and I were experiencing a bit of a communication failure. “If you had managed to obtain the Grutrissheit, whether for yourself
or to give to my brother, we would have needed to secure you by any means
necessary. But if you aren’t qualified to be a Zent candidate after all, we
will need to rethink matters.”
He then escorted me out of the archive, and
delivered me to my retainers. “I apologize that we made you clean all the
shrines today. And, as a warning... you would do well to keep a few more guards
around you.”
On that note, Anastasius went off to have
lunch, with Eglantine accompanying him. As soon as they were gone, my retainers
surrounded me.
“Lady Rozemyne, what in the world
happened...?”
“Umm... How did it look to all of you?” I
asked.
As it turned out, the barrier had turned white
and opaque as soon as Weiss and I went into the archive. My retainers hadn’t
been able to pass through, nor had the royals who had managed to enter before.
“Tell us—what did you do behind the white
wall, Lady Rozemyne?” Hannelore asked me. I could tell that my retainers wanted
to ask the same question.
Unsure how to respond, I turned to Magdalena.
Her lips curled, and she discreetly shook her head, indicating that this was
too important for me to discuss.
I smiled and said, “Nothing at all. I was
unqualified.”
“In what way?” Hildebrand asked, curious. “And
what did you need qualifications for in the first place?”
Eglantine had said that she didn’t want
unnecessary conflict with the top-ranking duchies, so I refused to answer, and
instead suggested that he ask Anastasius. I didn’t want to say anything
unnecessary that might make me even more involved with the royals, so I would
let them decide how to respond to Hildebrand.
This morning alone had served as an agonizing
demonstration of why Sylvester and Ferdinand desperately wanted me to avoid
getting involved with the royal family and top-ranking duchies: no matter how
well we seemed to mesh, we were friends in name alone. They had so much more
power than I did, meaning I would need to accept any unreasonable “requests”
they made of me, and our priorities would seldom align. My only options to
avoid their demands were to get powerful enough to refuse them, or do my best to
stay out of their sight.
“The events of this morning have left me
famished,” I said to Ottilie, and turned away from Hildebrand. “Let us have
lunch.”
“As you will, Lady Rozemyne,” she replied.
“Fourth bell just chimed, so it makes sense that you are hungry. Cornelius,
prepare a seat for her.”
Cornelius had been peering down at me, his
brow furrowed in concern, but he wasted no time carrying out his duty. He
offered me his hand, which I took, and together we went over to my seat.
“Wait a moment, Rozemyne,” Hildebrand said.
“I—”
“Dear, do not trouble Lady Rozemyne with any
more questions,” Magdalena interjected.
At that, everyone returned to their
preparations—though I could tell they were still worried about me. The
attendants poured tea, while the guards arranged themselves around their
charge’s seat. Hildebrand went off with Magdalena, though he kept shooting me
troubled glances.
After an awkward lunch spent mostly in
silence—nobody had wanted to say anything—I dedicated my afternoon to
translating. As I worked on a particular slate, I suddenly recalled my time
with Dunkelfelger’s history book.
How was it that a king once came from
Dunkelfelger?
If one needed to be registered as a royal to
obtain the Grutrissheit, then how had such a thing been possible? The book was
a very ancient record, so it hadn’t offered an explanation, but it implied the
existence of some other way to become king. Or perhaps someone from a
subsequent generation had put that blood-checking magic circle in place to
prevent kings arising from duchies other than their own...
I can’t believe they denied me my best method.
Anastasius had said that it would be a very
long time before Detlinde was punished and that Ferdinand was no doubt enacting
a plan to save himself, but I didn’t know whether he was telling the truth. I
wanted to contact Ferdinand about the danger and make sure he was safe at the
very least, but I had firmly been told not to worry about him.
“Um, Lady Rozemyne...” Hannelore glanced
around very hesitantly and then continued in a quiet voice, “Your sleeve...”
I glanced down and realized that my sleeve was
stained with blood; the magic circle’s counterattacks had done more than just
scorch me.
“I thank you ever so much for your concern,
Lady Hannelore, but Prince Anastasius has already healed my wounds. I am quite
fine.”
“Pardon? Prince Anastasius used healing magic
on you?”
I nodded, watching her quizzically. Anastasius
had entered the archive and then refused to allow anyone else to join us, so
who else could have treated me?
Upon seeing my confusion, Hannelore carefully
elaborated. “Under normal circumstances, the royal family would never cast
healing on another...” They needed to dedicate their mana to Yurgenschmidt, so
the very idea was apparently unthinkable. Healing my wounds had been
Anastasius’s indirect way of apologizing to me, since his status prevented him
from admitting fault or ending up in my debt.
How was I supposed to figure that out? It won’t
make much of a difference, anyway—if Ferdinand ends up being punished because
of Detlinde, I’ll never forgive Anastasius, no matter how much he apologizes.
“Time to go, Rozemyne,” Sylvester said. The
past few days must have made him realize that simply calling my name wasn’t
enough, because he yanked the slate away from me without a moment’s hesitation.
I put away my writing tools, handed today’s
work to Magdalena, then left the library with Sylvester.
“Am I in danger?” I asked as we made our way
back to the dormitory. “Prince Anastasius said there are things you haven’t
told me.”
“We’ll discuss that later,” Sylvester replied
with a grimace, then smiled at me and said, “You two must have had quite the
conversation for him to have brought that up.”
“We’ll discuss that later.”
We looked at each other, then let out heavy
sighs. It seemed that Sylvester had gotten wrapped up in a lot of nasty
business too.
“You know, my dear adoptive father... today’s
events have made me painfully aware of why everyone wanted me to stay away from
the royal family.”
Sylvester regarded me with a thoroughly
drained expression. “Hah. Took you this long to understand, did it? Hate to
break it to you, but you should have been quicker on the uptake. It’s already
too late.”
Wait, what do you mean by that?!
Letters and a Discussion
Sylvester and I spent the rest of our journey
back to the dormitory conversing with each other and asking our retainers to
schedule a meeting for after dinner. Upon our return, Lieseleta rushed over to
me.
“Welcome back. Professor Hirschur is waiting
for you both in the common room.”
“Professor Hirschur?”
Sylvester and I exchanged looks, then went
into the common room. Hirschur immediately stood out to us; in a room full of
desperately busy adults darting here and there in preparation for the coming
days, she was casually standing by the bookshelf, reading.
“Hirschur?!” Sylvester exclaimed. “What are
you doing here?!”
“Aub Ehrenfest, Lady Rozemyne,” she greeted
us, though her eyes remained glued to her book. Only after she had returned it
to its rightful place did she finally look up at us. “Back at last, I see. I
come with a letter from Ferdinand.”
“From Ferdinand...?” I repeated. “But his
Starbind Ceremony was delayed. Do you mean to say that he came to the Royal
Academy anyway?”
“That very same delay means he is still a
citizen of Ehrenfest. As a result, while he cannot attend the conference, I
would imagine there is little stopping him from visiting the dormitory. One of
his attendants gave this to me.”
That reminded me—Ferdinand had sat out an
Archduke Conference in the past, only to be summoned to the Royal Academy
anyway. Perhaps that had happened again.
Hirschur pointed at a magic box sitting nearby
and said, “Please open it at once, Aub Ehrenfest.” It looked much too large for
a simple letter, but the advantage was that only the archduke could open it.
“I’m told that Ferdinand put some research documents inside as well, to ensure
that I would get it here swiftly. A rather cheeky move, wouldn’t you agree?”
“Would you not have neglected to deliver it
until next winter otherwise?” I asked. “He simply knows you too well, Professor
Hirschur.”
“Obviously.”
Don’t look so proud about that!
Sylvester opened the box with a wry smile, and
Hirschur pounced at the documents inside. Once she had them in her hands, she
began to skim them with a look of complete satisfaction.
“What are they about?” I asked.
“The library’s magic tools. It would seem that
they can be made more easily by splitting the functions of organizing and
searching for documents. Still, the creation process is rather difficult, and
it requires high-quality materials...”
Magic tools that can organize and search for
documents? Wait, does that mean I can put simplified versions of Schwartz and
Weiss in my library?!
The two shumils were also responsible for
guiding royals to the Grutrissheit, but that part wouldn’t be of any use to me.
“Professor Hirschur, let me see them too!” I
cried. “You don’t care about organizing documents, do you?” I jumped up and
down, trying to at least glimpse the research, but Hirschur raised it much
higher than I could reach.
“I come first, Lady Rozemyne. These tools will
be of much more use to me, as my documents will remain unorganized without
them.”
Guh... She’s right!
I recalled the state of Hirschur’s laboratory
and promptly conceded. She needed an organizing magic tool more than anyone.
“I expect to have completed the finishing
touches by the start of the next academic term,” Hirschur informed me. “You may
come to my laboratory then, if you are interested.”
“You expect me to wait until winter...? I want
to read them now.”
“You would do well to remember that you are
supposed to be in Ehrenfest. Wait for the proper time and place.”
As everyone kept reminding me, I didn’t want
to be seen wandering around the Royal Academy. I was here purely to assist the
royal family, so visiting the scholar building or staying in Hirschur’s
laboratory for my own enjoyment were completely out of the question.
Ngh... But my magic tools...
No matter what I told myself, the thought of
my very own Schwartz and Weiss was to die for. I started to contemplate how to
get my hands on their production method, only for Hirschur to look down at me
and chuckle.
“I shall write up a list of the necessary
ingredients and deliver it to the dormitory. Perhaps you can hole up in my
laboratory this winter to brew with them.”
“Yes!” I declared, my fists clenched in
determination. But before I could say much else, Sylvester thwacked me on the
head with some paper.
“Rozemyne, this one is for you,” he said,
holding out a letter from the box. I went to take it from him, then paused;
what if there was invisible ink on it? Nothing had happened when he slapped it
against my head, so there was probably nothing to worry about.
I can take it, right? Ferdinand wouldn’t
carelessly use shining ink on a letter he was going to package with other
correspondence... right?
My hand trembled a little as I reached out to
accept the letter. Sylvester must have noticed, because he gave me a suspicious
look and said, “What’s gotten into you?” as he handed it over.
“Well, um... will I be allowed to write him
back?” I asked while checking the letter for shining ink. “Is it not wrong of
me to worry about or contact him?”
Sylvester seemed troubled all of a sudden.
“You can respond to him, yes. I’m sure he’s going to give me a lot to think
about, so let’s delay our meeting until tomorrow.” He gave the correspondence
addressed to him to one of his scholars, then turned his attention to the
eccentric professor. “Good work, Hirschur. You can eat dinner with us today.”
“I appreciate the offer,” she replied, “but I
must return to my laboratory at once.”
“I see. Well, I won’t stop you.”
After freeing Hirschur with a breezy wave,
Sylvester headed off to his room. I then did the same, firmly holding my letter
from Ferdinand.
After eating dinner and bathing, I went into
my hidden room. Paper and regular ink had already been prepared for me to write
my response, but I didn’t have any shining ink—as expected, since I hadn’t
anticipated needing to write a letter to Ferdinand during the Archduke
Conference.
“There’s so much I want to mention, like the
silver cloth and the chance that he might be punished by association... but
anything I write will end up being checked, so I need to keep it all innocuous.
Well, I’m sure Sylvester will cover all of the important parts.”
I
sighed and opened the letter, which was prefaced with a warning: “I wrote this while everyone was absent for the Archduke Conference and
got Eckhart to include it with my letters to Sylvester. Pen your response under
the assumption that it will be checked.” He was evidently in a position where he could write
but not read freely.
You know, Ferdinand, even I understand that my letters to you will undergo inspection.
It was obvious that anything I wrote would be
carefully examined not just by Ahrensbach but by Sylvester as well.
Dissatisfied to have been thrust into such an annoying scenario, I started
reading the letter written in a familiar hand. The first lines of the first
paragraph were a scolding.
“So, you have stopped writing to me. How am I to
interpret that? You were the one who demanded this correspondence in the first
place, as a way to confirm that I am well.”
Ngh... I’m sorry.
I hadn’t sent Ferdinand a letter since
Sylvester told me to cease my worrying and stop contacting him so often. He was
well within his rights to complain.
“There’s so much I want to tell you!” I
grumbled, my lips pursed. I would need to settle for what Sylvester had told
me, though, so I put pen to paper and wrote what could essentially be
summarized as “I need to be more careful now that I actually look my age.”
That alone wasn’t enough to vent all of my
frustrations, though; while I was at it, I mentioned that I was being urged to
show the same concern for Wilfried that I’d shown Ferdinand when he was here,
and that Wilfried was far from pleased with the results. Nobody here would
listen to my complaints, so just being able to write them down was surprisingly
therapeutic.
“Getting all that off my chest has really
calmed me down. Of course, I can’t actually send this; Ahrensbach would learn
far too much about Ehrenfest’s internal affairs.”
I folded up my sheet of complaints, then
started a new letter with my one-line summary and an additional note that I was
indeed growing at an impressive rate. That settled that.
I continued reading my letter from Ferdinand.
In it, he explained that the nobles of Ahrensbach had also been made to
participate in Spring Prayer, and that he had gathered plenty of ingredients in
the process. Letizia had apparently refused the kindness-infused potions that
Sergius had delivered to her, as she “did not yet need potions of such a high
quality.”
My stamina had once been so poor that I would
end up immobilized in the blink of an eye, but Letizia could get by on normal
rejuvenation potions. She had ended up deprived of mana, sure, but she hadn’t
collapsed once during Spring Prayer. Ferdinand wrote that he had again been
surprised to remember how sickly I was compared to a normal child.
“Well, I’m a lot healthier now than I was when
you were around. I ended up bedridden a mere three times this past Spring
Prayer, and I recovered after just two days of rest. How about that?!”
I scribbled my response, filled with
indignation, but the truth of the matter was that being compared to Letizia
depressed me. It felt like I was still so far away from being normal.
You just need to improve, Rozemyne. Bit by bit.
I returned my attention to the letter.
“Alongside this letter are some verinur flowers I
obtained while circling Ahrensbach for Spring Prayer. They are an ideal
ingredient for making charms. I cannot do much with them myself, owing to my
lack of a workshop, but I expect you are now capable enough to brew with them
on your own.”
So that was why the correspondence had come in
such a large box—he had sent us some materials as well. A good number of my
charms had just broken, so it was good timing.
Not just good, actually—perfect. Classic
Ferdinand.
I read a section describing the ideal charms
to make with the verinur flowers, then continued.
“In return, there are a few things I must ask you
to prepare before next year’s Archduke Conference. First, a minimum of three
hundred sheets of maximal-quality fey paper. Ehrenfest and Drewanchel published
research on improving such paper, did they not? Use that to your advantage.
From my workshop, I also require some geschtepferd leather, as well as
sonnenschlag and regisch feystones, also of maximal quality.”
Hold on a second. How is that a fair trade for a
few measly flowers?!
I didn’t know what Ferdinand intended to do
with such materials, but his demands seemed pretty unreasonable. I would
probably be able to find everything but the fey paper in the workshop he had
given me, but still—this was a big ask.
Maximal-quality fey paper, hm?
A minimum of three hundred sheets meant that
not even our supply of trombe paper would suffice. The noble children entering
the orphanage this year had made me hesitant to produce more.
Maybe I should ask Brigitte after I get back to
Ehrenfest...
Our research into new uses for Illgner’s fey
paper had resulted in a joint research project with Drewanchel, and it was
possible that the province had invented another kind of paper in the meantime.
If not, I would just need to have the children harvest trombes—without telling
the nobles, of course.
Ferdinand was asking a lot of me, but I wrote
that I would do my best to prepare everything. As I read on, however, his list
of demands grew longer. He also wanted us to bring various items with us when
we attended Aub Ahrensbach’s funeral next summer, including some luggage and
more food. It was starting to feel like he was using me as a very convenient
tool.
Hmph. I’m busy too, you know!
The
letter continued, “I do not like having to ask so
much of you, so I intend to prepare some fish for you in return. I will accept
any requests.”
“Yippee!” I shouted. “I’ll get your paper and
meals ready in an instant! Praise be to the gods!”
I made a note to tell Sylvester to send over
the luggage that Ferdinand needed, then started humming to myself as I wrote
down the fish I wanted to eat.
“I don’t want taunadel or any other poisonous
fish, but I do want plenty of spresch; that
spresch-ball soup we had was delicious. I also want fish that even commoner
chefs will be able to skin. So... some of that... and a few of these... Done.”
I grinned at my response, excited to have fish
again after such a long time. Now I was really looking forward to summer. Such
enthusiasm was tragically short-lived, however; my mood took a nosedive when I
read the next part of the letter.
“What in the world drove you to revive an ancient
practice during the Starbind Ceremony?”
I didn’t know much about the goings-on of the
Archduke Conference; Hartmut and Clarissa only ever reported that they were
busy. According to Ferdinand, however, the Sovereign temple and most duchies
other than Ehrenfest were petitioning the royal family to have my engagement to
Wilfried canceled. They wanted me to join the Sovereign temple as its new High
Bishop and then teach Yurgenschmidt how to perform religious ceremonies in
accordance with the ancient traditions. I couldn’t be sent to other duchies to do
so while serving as the High Bishop in Ehrenfest, but such restrictions
wouldn’t be applicable in the Sovereign temple.
It had now been proven that there was a
positive correlation between the amount one prayed and the number of divine
protections one obtained, so reviving the old rituals and spreading the correct
way to perform them would increase the mana average all across Yurgenschmidt.
The Sovereign temple was also proclaiming that bringing back the old rituals
would allow a true Zent to be chosen.
Ahrensbach already had a Zent candidate, so it
was in fervent support of the Sovereign temple’s efforts. Georgine was actively
asserting that, by having Ferdinand and the other nobles participate in
ceremonies, they would gain more divine protections, and their harvest would
increase. She was also riling the archducal couples of other duchies by saying
things like “It is unjust for Ehrenfest to monopolize such valuable knowledge”
and “The entire country would benefit from Lady Rozemyne becoming the Sovereign
High Bishop.”
Ferdinand wasn’t yet married to Detlinde,
meaning he couldn’t participate in the Archduke Conference or stop Georgine
from speaking her mind during tea parties and meals. He could hear reports from
scholars and attendants who were present, then complain to Georgine about her
actions, but she would shut him down by saying that she was only telling the
truth.
“As the Lanzenave princess has been refused, I
expect negotiations with them to be unpleasant once we return to Ahrensbach.
That is still preferable to having accepted her, but...”
Ferdinand would need to be involved with said
negotiations, but he already seemed to be mentally exhausted. He had decided to
leave Justus in Ahrensbach and was spending the Archduke Conference trying to
keep Georgine’s attention away from her duchy.
As for Detlinde, she had apparently been
fuming after an encounter with “a tremendously rude woman” in the Royal
Academy’s library. She was in a much better mood now, though; the others in her
duchy had managed to raise her spirits by saying that the revival of the old
ceremonies might lead to her being chosen as the next Zent. It seemed to me
that they were just humoring her to prevent any more hysterical tantrums before
their foundation was fully dyed. None of them intended to actually stop her.
Oof... Ahrensbach is going crazy.
In response to the duchies that were siding
with Georgine, Ehrenfest had attempted to protest. “How would you fare if one
of your archduke candidates were taken by the
Sovereign temple?” we had said. “In the first place, such an act is forbidden.”
Unfortunately for us, we were fighting a losing battle; Ehrenfest and
Frenbeltag had already demonstrated that a duchy could improve its harvest by
having nobles with plentiful mana take part in its religious ceremonies, and
considering that most duchies were in dire straits, having to wrestle with mana
shortages and worsening crop yields, Ferdinand thought that we were basically
doomed. Even if we forestalled them now, we were guaranteed to fail next year.
“If you were to become the Sovereign High Bishop,
it would allow you to restrain the royal family and the Sovereign temple,
spread the traditional way of performing ceremonies, and assist other duchies.
It would also free King Trauerqual from his current burden, if your efforts led
to the establishment of a Zent by proper means.”
Ehrenfest and I would suffer, but nobody else.
That was why everyone was searching for ways to get me into the Sovereign
temple.
“As you were brought into the archducal family
through adoption, if you were disowned and reduced to the status of an
archnoble, then it would be possible for you to move to the Sovereignty. You,
Sylvester, and Karstedt would all need to agree, though. No matter how much
pressure the royal family might put on you, they cannot use a royal decree to
cancel your adoption.”
One thing that a royal decree could accomplish was canceling my engagement to Wilfried.
The king would simply need to retract his approval, which would return us to
the time when everyone had been fighting for my hand in marriage, no matter
what Sylvester tried to say or do.
“In general, do not refuse to assist the royal
family—doing so will only harm Ehrenfest’s reputation further. Now that we are
being treated as though we were on the winning side of the civil war, we will
surely face the envy of the losing duchies. At the same time, however, the
victorious duchies will seek your assistance. Expect to be summoned and
consulted, as I once was. And, should you receive such a request, do not
refuse; instead, buy time. You must endure for at least a year, though do try
to hold out for even longer.”
Ferdinand then gave me a response for if the
royal family tried to force my hand: I was already doing so much for them, so
why would I agree to be reduced to an archnoble? He also advised me to tell
fans of Elvira’s stories that I was so deeply in love with Wilfried that I
wanted to prevent our engagement from being canceled under any circumstances.
I appreciate the warning and advice, but... I
don’t think I could pretend to be in love with Wilfried. I’ve never been in
love with anyone. Hmm...
Even as I climbed into bed that night, I
continued to ponder my situation. So much had happened... which was probably
why I woke up the next morning with a fever.
“You did spend all of
yesterday morning outside,” Ottilie said while preparing some rejuvenation
potions for me. “At least today is Earthday—you can rest as usual without fear
of what others might think. The aub has said that your discussion can wait
until you have recovered.”
Seeing me bedridden had given Clarissa a minor
panic attack. Lieseleta was consoling her by saying that this was a regular
occurrence for me.
“Um, Clarissa... do you think I will end up in
the Sovereign temple?” I asked.
“Ehrenfest cannot afford to lose you, Lady
Rozemyne. But fear not!” She gave her chest a mighty thump. “Hartmut and I will
protect you!”
I appreciated her enthusiasm, but Ferdinand
had said that we were basically doomed. Sylvester must have been under an
enormous amount of pressure. I doubted he would ever admit it, though; he
always acted tough and tried to hide the weirdest things from me. That was
probably what Anastasius had meant yesterday.
“As someone from another duchy, what do you
believe Ehrenfest should do?” I prompted. “If the Sovereign temple wanted
someone other than me, what would you think?”
Clarissa’s expression flattened; then she gave
me a look of complete seriousness. “I would think it was the best opportunity
we would ever have to earn favor with the royal family and other duchies. By
complying with the Sovereign temple, Ehrenfest would prove that it deserves its
place among the victorious. We would need to negotiate a few terms—how long the
arrangement would last, the order in which the duchies would be taught, and so
on—but we would never have another opportunity to gain so much from the loss of
a single archduke candidate.”
She gave me a troubled smile. “On the other
hand, if we monopolize you, it will earn us the jealousy and ire of every other
duchy. Because of my familiarity with Ehrenfest’s internal situation, I
understand why we cannot afford to lose you... but I would not have been as
sympathetic back when I was living in Dunkelfelger. I would have been shocked
to see Ehrenfest being so self-centered, especially when there must be hordes of people eager to watch the Saint of Ehrenfest
perform her miracles!”
That was a shame; Clarissa had come across as
such a competent scholar before those last few words. In any case, I now had a
better idea of how the other duchies viewed our situation. Sylvester had
doubtless been going through hell while I was translating in the archive,
becoming a Zent candidate, and getting rejected for not being a royal.
By dinnertime, my fever had gone down, so I
went into one of the dormitory’s meeting rooms to speak with Sylvester.
Florencia was with him, and she welcomed me with a smile.
“It is good to see that your fever has gone
down.”
“Ferdinand told me what has been happening
during this year’s conference,” I noted, then took out his letter to me and my
response. Sylvester read them both before returning the former and giving the
latter to one of his scholars.
“In any case,” he said with a grin, “I don’t
intend to cancel your engagement or send you to the Sovereignty.”
Florencia looked at us both, clearly worried.
“Has the royal family said anything?”
“They want me to hand over Rozemyne, since
it’ll repair their relationship with the Sovereign temple and grant the other
duchies’ wishes. In their words, ‘a deeper understanding of religious
ceremonies will benefit the entire country.’ That doesn’t matter, though; I’m
turning them down.”
Sylvester had argued that the idea was
unthinkable when most nobles still aggressively looked down on the country’s
temples. Plus, the royal family had promised that my involvement in the
Archduke Conference’s Starbind Ceremony would be a onetime thing and that it
would solidify Prince Sigiswald as the next Zent; demanding that I now join the
Sovereign temple was nothing short of outrageous.
Sylvester had gone on to say that the royal
family’s reason for wanting my assistance—the strength of my mana—was also why
Ehrenfest considered me such a crucial pillar of support. “It would be
unacceptable if both Ferdinand and Rozemyne were stolen from us to support
other lands,” he had said. “Besides, is it not against the law to move archduke
candidates to the Sovereignty?”
“The Zent accepted my argument,” Sylvester
continued. “I’m guessing he only asked on the off chance that I might concede,
since pretty much every single duchy is pushing for it. The thing is...” He
crossed his arms, then told us the most important part of all: Sigiswald was in
agreement with the other duchies.
The first prince had apparently said that this
was Ehrenfest’s only chance to earn favor from all of the other duchies, and
that Yurgenschmidt’s highest priorities were performing religious ceremonies,
obtaining divine protections, and making everyone’s mana more efficient. He was
pushing for me to join the Sovereign temple.
Wait, what? When did this exchange take place,
exactly? Does neither Trauerqual nor Sigiswald know that I’m a Zent candidate
now?
Everything that Sylvester was saying had to do
with making me the Sovereign High Bishop; Anastasius seemed to be the only
person thinking about securing me as a Zent candidate. We had only visited the
shrines yesterday, so perhaps Trauerqual and the others in the royal family
were simply unaware, but Eglantine and Anastasius had presumably told them all
about it.
Or, what, have they not told them anything at
all...?
Anastasius hadn’t been confident in my status
as a Zent candidate before he accompanied me to the shrines. He had told me
afterward that he was acting alone, and if Eglantine was keeping the purpose of
the shrines a secret to avoid starting chaos, then Magdalena wouldn’t have
known either.
She must have noticed all of that hullabaloo in
the underground archive, but again, that only happened yesterday... Maybe the
Zent is learning what happened as we speak.
I was contemplating how much information was
being shared among the royal family when I saw Sylvester shrug. “I got a letter
of invitation this morning,” he remarked. “The royal family summoned me for a
meeting two days from now. The Zent still seems to be on my side, so I’m
planning to turtle up and wait for the Archduke Conference to end. No matter
what anyone says, the only way an archduke candidate can be moved to the
Sovereignty is through marriage.”
Sylvester intended to wait out the time limit,
but if this new invitation was the result of the entire royal family learning
that I was now a Zent candidate, then we were facing an entirely new situation.
“Well, erm...” I reluctantly began. “I think
you’re going to have a much harder time turning them down from now on.”
“Why’s that?” Sylvester asked. He and
Florencia were both staring at me in surprise.
I directed Ottilie to bring out some
sound-blockers, then gave one to Sylvester and another to Karstedt, who was
standing in his usual position as a guard. I didn’t give one to Florencia,
which made her look very concerned indeed.
“The shock of what I am about to say might be great
enough to impact the baby...” I said. “Sylvester, I will allow you to decide
whether we take that risk.”
“Is it really that serious?”
“Yes. I would even advise that you clear the
room.”
Sylvester waved a hand, and our retainers all
exited, leaving only the two of us, Karstedt, and Florencia. I gripped one of
the sound-blockers and made my declaration:
“I’m a Zent candidate.”
Sylvester and Karstedt both yelped, their eyes
wide in terror. “That doesn’t make any sense,” Sylvester replied. “What are you
even saying?!”
“I don’t really understand it either, but here
we are. I just kind of went with the flow, doing as the royal family asked,
and... Yeah.”
I’d prayed at the Royal Academy and in
Ehrenfest’s temple, then let Anastasius drag me to all of the gods’ shrines.
That much had made me a Zent candidate, but then I’d been told that I wasn’t
qualified, since I wasn’t registered as a royal.
“I’ll spare you the details, since I’m not
sure whether I should be saying any of this in the first place, but I expect
that I’m closer to becoming the next Zent than anyone else in the country. I
wouldn’t actually be able to rule, though; my blood isn’t registered as
belonging to the royal family. I expect that the royals are about to put more
pressure on us than ever before.”
“How am I only hearing this now?!”
“It only happened yesterday.”
I’d wanted to tell him immediately upon my
return from the underground archive, but my letter from Ferdinand had taken
priority. Then, I’d ended up with a fever. I was feeling better now, at least,
which was precisely why I was here.
“No matter what we do, my engagement is going
to be canceled,” I said. “We can hope that a member of the royal family obtains
the Grutrissheit in the three years between now and my coming of age, but they
will want me in their pocket in case they fail to manage that on their own.”
Anastasius had retracted his claim that
Sigiswald would take me as his third wife, but only so that he and his family
could explore other options. The Zent might have been willing to respect
Ehrenfest’s circumstances and ignore the demands for me to become the next
Sovereign High Bishop, but I doubted he would turn a blind eye to the fact that
I was their best option for installing a proper Zent with a Grutrissheit as
quickly as possible.
“My letter from Ferdinand was about me being
taken by the Sovereign temple,” I said, “but in any case, he wrote about how
the royal family could force me to move to the Sovereignty. He also gave me
some advice on how to cope if it came to that. We will need to consider what we
will do if Ehrenfest is given a royal decree.”
Sylvester scrunched up his face. This was an
issue bigger than anything to do with the Sovereign temple. Not even an
archduke would be able to refuse an order related to the next Zent and
obtaining the Grutrissheit.
“Perhaps we should summon Wilfried as well,” I
said. “The results of this could change his life.”
Sylvester contemplated the idea for a moment,
then shook his head. “Nah. Not this time.”
“Are you sure? This really could change
everything for him, couldn’t it?”
“It could, but will summoning him achieve
anything? We won’t be able to defy the king’s orders, no matter how we feel
about them, and the last thing we need right now is Wilfried causing a scene
here at the Royal Academy. If the news sends him into a frenzy or he leaks
everything to his retainers, we’ll just have even more problems to deal with.”
It was true that Sylvester and Florencia
wouldn’t need his help to make a case for why I should stay in Ehrenfest. On
top of that, we didn’t want him spreading the news that I was a Zent candidate
before we’d even had a chance to formally discuss it with the royal family.
“I just won’t have the time to spend with
Wilfried if this sets him off,” Sylvester said. “We need to decide on
Ehrenfest’s official position, plan how to negotiate with the royal family, and
think about what conditions we should put forward. Furthermore, Wilfried is
still underage; he can’t attend the Archduke Conference, nor has he been
summoned by the royal family. I see no reason to have him come here. He’ll need
to accept whatever happens, but that shouldn’t be a problem; as his parents, we
decide whom he marries to begin with.”
Sylvester was speaking in the impartial manner
of an archduke, but his brow was furrowed in a way that made his displeasure
more than clear. “The royal family didn’t invite you to this upcoming meeting
either,” he continued. “I’ll negotiate as best I can, but I’m the archduke of a
duchy that isn’t a very influential player on the country’s stage. The result
may not be the one you want, so I want you to be prepared for whatever might
happen.”
My only choice was to leave all the
negotiating to Sylvester and Florencia. I understood that perfectly well.
“I have not forgotten that you saved me and my
family all that time ago,” I said. “Although things seldom go as I expect, I
have always tried to carry out my duties as an adopted daughter. Thus, as long
as you continue to protect my family and those in the temple, as well as the
Gutenbergs, then I will obey any decision that you make as the archduke.”
I could tell that Sylvester was gritting his
teeth. His frustration betrayed his love for me, and as I basked in the joy of
that realization, I handed a sound-blocker to Florencia. “If you were both
invited, then she needs to know as well. Sylvester, please explain everything
to her.”
Sylvester opened his mouth, but he was so
overwhelmed that no words came out.
Florencia smiled. “Based on the urgent look on
your face, can I assume that we do not have time to waste on your agonizing?”
she asked, urging him to speak.
“The truth is...”
Upon hearing that I was a Zent candidate,
Florencia froze, smile and all. Then, after a pause, she placed a hand on her
forehead. “I thought that I was used to her surprises after the winter reports,
but perhaps not...”
“The royal family likely wishes to avoid any
unnecessary chaos,” I said, “so do not tell anyone what I have told you.”
“That much is obvious,” Sylvester replied.
“The real mystery is the royal family’s endgame.”
Eglantine had told me that the royal family
hoped to maintain the status quo. In their eyes, the best result would include
avoiding another war between the greater duchies, and establishing Sigiswald as
the next Zent.
Then I realized something: that was only what
Eglantine wanted. Anastasius had said that he hoped to ease her fears, so
perhaps they were the only two who felt that way. I definitely hadn’t heard the
Zent or Sigiswald himself speak a word about wanting me to obtain the
Grutrissheit and become the first prince’s third wife. Given how poorly
information seemed to flow between members of the royal family, it was
dangerous to jump to conclusions about what they desired.
“You are correct,” I said to Sylvester. “We do
not know what the royal family wants. Thus, let us stop thinking about their
aims and instead consider how we can squeeze as much value for Ehrenfest out of
them as possible.”
“Rozemyne?!” Sylvester exclaimed. He and
Florencia were both taken aback by my suggestion.
“After saying that he wanted me to become the
first prince’s third wife, Prince Anastasius declared that Ehrenfest should
deal with its own problems. The royal family will not show us any
consideration, nor will they care about what will benefit us most. That is why
we must focus on our own interests. Using last year’s publishing negotiations
with Dunkelfelger as guidance, let us think of a term you will refuse to budge
on, one you think you can probably secure, and one that would mark the sweetest
victory if obtained.”
Sylvester exchanged a look with Karstedt, then
put on a wry smile and said, “You’re sounding a lot like a merchant.” It seemed
unlikely that his meeting with the royal family would immediately turn into a
hard-core negotiation, but adopting the right mindset couldn’t hurt. I decided
to put forth basic conditions for whether the discussion was about me entering
the Sovereign temple or my being a Zent candidate.
“Now, as for my three terms... I refuse to
accept there being a limitation on the number of retainers I can bring to the
Sovereignty. If they send me to the Sovereign temple, then I would ask to be
treated as an archduke candidate, not an apprentice blue shrine maiden. I would
also attempt to negotiate for more books than can be found in Ehrenfest’s book
room.”
“C’mon, Rozemyne,” Sylvester said with a
grimace. “That stuff’s valuable to you, not
Ehrenfest.” He was probably used to merely reviewing whatever options his
scholars put together and picking the one he thought was best.
“If you think so, then make some suggestions
of your own. We don’t yet know how many we can tell about my circumstances, so
you can’t just consult your scholars as you normally would. You will all need
to come up with your own ideas to secure value for Ehrenfest.”
Sylvester and Florencia finally came to their
senses and started considering what would benefit our duchy. They had spent
more than enough time listening to scholars and discussing things with the
other aubs attending the conference, so it didn’t take them long to get into
the swing of things. I wrote their stream of suggestions on my diptych; sorting
them all based on their importance would make it that much easier for us to
turn the upcoming negotiations in our favor.
“The royal family will presumably state their
intentions without inquiring about our own, but we can still negotiate with
them,” I said. “Make it clear that we are willing to cooperate with them, but
only if the arrangement is mutually beneficial. You must be
firm about that. Last of all, tell them that they will need to speak with me as
well. After all, they will need my consent if they wish to cancel my adoption.”
The Merchant Saint
It was the dawn of a new day—a day I wouldn’t
be spending in the underground archive. Ottilie was worried that returning to
work so soon after my fever would make me sick again, while Clarissa wanted me
to avoid anything even remotely strenuous. “Your health is more important than
all else, Lady Rozemyne,” she had told me.
“You must be exhausted after spending so many
days underground, poring over documents,” Ottilie said. “Please take this
opportunity to rest.”
I returned to bed and pointed at the nearby
book box. “In that case, Clarissa, fetch me something to read.”
“You intend to continue reading?!”
“Of course. Reading is a hobby of mine, and
how better to relax than with a book of my choosing? It might appear similar to
my translation work, but I can assure you that I consider it resting.”
Clarissa continued to gawk at me.
“It’s been a long time since anyone responded
so dramatically,” I said with a chuckle, then gave her the title of a book I
was only halfway through reading.
“Hartmut did warn me, but still... This is
shocking to see in person.”
“Lady Rozemyne has been so busy and in such
great health recently that she has not had much time to read at her leisure,”
Lieseleta explained with a giggle as she helped me get comfortable in bed.
Clarissa opened the book box and took out the
title I’d requested. I asked Ottilie to inform Hannelore or Magdalena of my
absence, then started reading. By the time Clarissa announced that she was
leaving to attend the Archduke Conference, her voice barely even reached me; my
book already had my full attention.
All of a sudden, an ordonnanz perched atop my
book, forcing me to look up. “This is Hildebrand,” it said. “I am sorry to hear
you have fallen ill. My intention was to send you a present to raise your
spirits, but Mother told me not to, since you are not supposed to be here in
the first place. Get... Get well soon.”
I smiled at his cute message, then sent my
response: “My fever has gone down, but my concerned retainers advised me to
rest for one more day. I will be back tomorrow.”
As promised, I went to the underground archive
the next day. Sylvester and Florencia were attending their meeting with the
royal family—I wouldn’t find out how that went until my return to the
dormitory—while Anastasius and Eglantine were busy socializing.
“Good day to you, Lady Rozemyne,” Hannelore
said when she saw me. “It is wonderful to see you well again.” She knew from
experience that a simple tea party could make me collapse, so she wasn’t too
surprised that my trip around the Royal Academy had made me ill.
I smiled and confirmed that I was indeed
feeling better, and it was then that Hildebrand came over.
“Rozemyne. I’m glad to see you have
recovered.”
“Indeed, Prince Hildebrand,” I replied. “I
thank you ever so much for your kind ordonnanz.”
He beamed in response, his purple eyes
sparkling with joy. For a prince, he was very open with his feelings, which was
cute. The way he acted at times like this reminded me of Melchior, so I ended
up letting my emotions come through as well.
As we continued our conversation, I suddenly
had a feeling that I was being watched. A quick scan of the room revealed that
Magdalena was inspecting me closely. The moment our eyes met, she smiled and
said, “Let us go into the archive, everyone.”
Once inside, I silently began working on my
translation... until somebody tapped me on the back.
“Rozemyne, do you have a moment?”
I turned around to see Prince Hildebrand.
“Yes?” I asked. “Is there a word you don’t recognize?” It wasn’t the first time
he had requested my assistance.
“I wanted to ask you something while Mother
and Hannelore are taking a break. Rozemyne...” He paused, clearly agonizing
over his next words. “Are you going to obtain the Grutrissheit and become the
next Zent?”
“I am not of the royal family. As a result, I
am not qualified to take on such a role.”
So my status as a Zent candidate had at last
been shared among the royal family. He had been right to wait for Hannelore to
leave, but I still wasn’t sure this was something we should discuss in the
archive.
Hildebrand took my hand. “Rozemyne, I want to
help you.”
I stared at him in surprise, racking my brain
to discern what he meant. I wasn’t given much of a chance, though; the patter
of footsteps soon interrupted us.
“Hildebrand, what are you doing?”
“Mother...” The prince had gone pale—a sign
that he had probably said too much.
Magdalena looked down at me. “Lady Rozemyne,
what did my son say to you, might I ask?”
“That he wished to help me,” I said. “I have
already recovered from my fever, but I see that Prince Hildebrand is still so
thoughtfully concerned about me.” Of course, I wasn’t going to mention anything
about the Zent candidacy.
Magdalena gave me a searching look, then
sighed. “Hildebrand, let us both take a break,” she
said, bringing our conversation to an end.
After lunch, we got straight back to work.
Magdalena was watching Hildebrand even more closely this time, determined to
ensure he would not speak to me again.
That was when Sigiswald arrived. It was my
first time seeing him here since the beginning of the Archduke Conference. He
commended our work in the archive for the royal family’s sake, then prompted
Hannelore to return to her dormitory to rest.
“I thank you ever so much for your concern,”
Hannelore said to the first prince before taking her leave. She glanced back at
me several times as she went, her eyes betraying her concern.
I moved to stand, only to be told to sit back
down. “There is nowhere else we can speak,” Sigiswald explained with a peaceful
smile while taking a seat opposite me. “Anastasius has told me that, to convey
one’s intentions, one must be almost offensively blunt when speaking with you.
I would thus like to speak frankly, if you do not mind.”
Anastasius’s phrasing annoyed me a bit, but he
wasn’t wrong—it was much better to be straightforward than to allow any
misunderstandings to take root, especially when the royal family was involved.
“I do not mind,” I replied, “as long as I am
not executed for my own bluntness.”
“Fear not; we would not execute such a
valuable Zent candidate,” Sigiswald said with a smile, then looked at me
head-on. “Indeed, Anastasius told us. He also mentioned that you cannot obtain
the Grutrissheit without being registered as a member of the royal family.”
It seemed that Detlinde’s dedication whirl and
the recent Starbind Ceremony had made the Sovereign temple appear more and more
credible in the eyes of the country’s nobles. As a result, calls for the old
ceremonies to be revived and a true Zent to be found were getting louder. The
royals had assumed that even I would manage to obtain the Grutrissheit, but...
here we were.
“Just as Prince Anastasius told you, I am not
qualified to obtain the Grutrissheit. I would thus advise you to have someone
within the royal family secure it instead. Please ask Lady Eglantine.”
“Unfortunately... the royal family does not
have the leeway to do that,” Sigiswald explained, looking troubled. Just as the
library’s equivalent of a foundation had been about to run out of mana, so,
too, were countless magic tools in the Sovereignty. “Do keep this between us,
but there are many magic tools in the Sovereignty that have stopped functioning
entirely for a lack of anyone to supply them. Just the other day... one was
destroyed.”
“It was destroyed...?”
“Some magic tools crumble when they are
completely drained of mana.”
That was seldom the case for the magic tools
we normally used, but I supposed that the ones in the Sovereignty were
particularly old.
Sigiswald continued, “We cannot allow valuable
magic tools that have survived since the distant past to be destroyed in our
generation. Father and the rest of us are already consuming rejuvenation
potions every day in our efforts to refill those that were deemed less relevant
and abandoned years ago. As such, we do not have nearly enough mana to start
donating to the shrines. Allow me to be blunt: our only option is to take you
into the royal family as soon as possible, so that we can have both your mana
and unquestionable power for the nobility to follow.”
He certainly had good reason to be concerned;
Yurgenschmidt would end up on the brink of destruction if the royal family
stopped fueling its magic tools.
“Under normal circumstances, we would wait
until you came of age to have you married into the family and made a royal...
but we cannot wait that long. We wish for you to join the royal family as soon
as you are able. Our hope is that Aub Ehrenfest will disown you so that Father
may adopt you in his stead, until you come of age and are wed to me. Is this
not the best possible future in all cases?”
It would mean saving
Ferdinand from having to marry Detlinde and subsequently be punished for her
crimes... Leaping at the offer simply wasn’t an option, though—not with
Ehrenfest’s current state of affairs.
“My father made Aub Ehrenfest various offers,
believing that Ehrenfest should receive a just recompense for its
cooperation... but the aub refused them all.”
I paused. “What were his offers?”
“They were fairly reasonable,” Sigiswald
prefaced. “Father proposed raising Ehrenfest’s rank, giving the duchy
preferential treatment, and taking as many of its nobles into the Sovereignty
as possible to strengthen your position as the future Zent.”
The royal family had expected Sylvester to be
overjoyed, as greater duchies always loved gaining influence. He had turned
them down, though, saying that the deal would not actually benefit Ehrenfest.
And, well, he’s right.
“I must admit,” the prince continued, “we are
troubled that Ehrenfest would respond so selfishly.”
“Prince Sigiswald, Ehrenfest’s nobles are
already struggling to keep up with the new expectations that have come with our
sudden and continued rise through the rankings. Other duchies frequently tell
us that we do not behave in a manner befitting our position. For those reasons,
we would rather our rank stay the same—or go down, even—until we have managed
to catch up. Raising it any higher would only make Ehrenfest suffer.”
Sigiswald received my explanation with wide
eyes. He was in a position wherein both bottom- and top-ranking duchies were at
his beck and call. Not once had he stopped to properly consider how Ehrenfest
would struggle, stuck between the two extremes of the country’s hierarchy as it
was. He also subscribed to the mindset that all problems should immediately be
dealt with; at no point had it occurred to him that some could only be fixed
through sweeping changes over the span of several years. At the same time, he
had come to see Ehrenfest as a duchy with great ambitions, considering that we
had passed up an even higher position in the rankings to receive the same
treatment as the winners of the country’s civil war.
“In that case, accepting Ehrenfest nobles into
the Sovereignty to strengthen your position would also be negative...?”
Sigiswald asked.
“Our duchy’s population is already much too
small. And, because of extreme circumstances I will not elaborate on here, we
were forced to carry out a purge during the winter. Ehrenfest barely has enough
nobles to support itself right now and would surely collapse if those who do
remain were sent to the Sovereignty en masse.”
Sigiswald put a hand on his forehead and
stared at me in silence. He had clearly misunderstood what things were like in
Ehrenfest.
“In short,” I concluded, “Ehrenfest has its
own circumstances to deal with. I cannot be adopted by the royal family at such
short notice.”
“Even though it is crucial to save
Yurgenschmidt from a fast-approaching collapse?” There was clear anxiety in the
first prince’s voice, but I still refused to budge.
“The collapse you speak of can be summarized
as a mana shortage, no? That can be solved by anyone. Meanwhile, Ehrenfest
needs me specifically.”
“Do explain,” Sigiswald said, leaning forward.
“In Ehrenfest, I have duties within the
printing industry and the archducal family. I also serve as the High Bishop and
the director of the temple’s orphanage. It will not be long before I can
entrust my archduke candidate duties to my siblings, but the rest will not be
so easy.”
Melchior and his retainers would need to
observe every ritual and ceremony before they could take over my work as High
Bishop, which would take at least a year. The current state of the orphanage
also needed to be preserved. There were sure to be complications with the
printing industry as well; we would need to oversee the handover to Elvira and
decide whether the Gutenbergs would accompany me to the Sovereignty or continue
their traveling.
“Furthermore,” I continued, “my engagement to
Wilfried is currently stabilizing his position as the next aub. To dissolve it
would be to send Ehrenfest into chaos, which we would absolutely need to
prepare for. Just as you and the rest of the royal family have wished to avoid
another war between the greater duchies since the great purge, Aub Ehrenfest
wishes to avoid a war between our giebes when our own purge has put the duchy
in such a precarious state.”
Eglantine and Anastasius had mentioned on many
an occasion that they wanted to avoid causing another civil war. I wouldn’t let
them pretend not to know how we felt.
“That is not all, though; my adoptive mother
is currently with child and will not be able to supply Ehrenfest with mana
until she has given birth. In the winter, my little sister will perform her
divine protections ritual at the Royal Academy, and this time next year, my
adoptive father will take his second wife. At the very least, for mana
purposes, I cannot leave Ehrenfest until then.”
“Yurgenschmidt’s mana problems are far more
urgent than Ehrenfest’s...”
“Not to me,” I said, ignoring the attempted
protest with a smile. “The royal family is simply in need of mana. Thus, allow
me to exchange some for another year in Ehrenfest. I would also ask that you
use your new understanding of our circumstances to prepare to accept a
condition that will actually benefit us. Do remember that we are not one of the
greater duchies you are so used to dealing with.”
Sigiswald was momentarily stone-faced; then,
he smiled in turn. “My apologies. I did not seem to hear you.”
I repeated myself, word for word.
“You intend to trade a year’s worth of mana
for an extra year in Ehrenfest?” Sigiswald confirmed. “You would do well to
remember that there are seven members of the royal family currently supplying
mana; no matter how plentiful yours may be, you cannot hope to equal us alone.”
He was speaking with a peaceful smile, as if addressing a child who didn’t
understand such a basic fact. Still, my expression did not waver; I already
knew that my mana alone wouldn’t be enough.
“At no point have I said that I intend to use
my own mana. Recall that the Royal Academy is currently filled
with mana-rich individuals.”
Again, Sigiswald gave me a stony look. He then
smiled a second time—though it seemed much less natural—and muttered, “Filled
with them...?” It seemed that freezing for a moment and then smiling was his
way of expressing surprise.
It reminds me of how Ferdinand freezes up when he
struggles to process something.
I adopted an even broader smile, trying to
emphasize my advantage, while racking my brain for my victory conditions. In
the best possible outcome, I would inform the country that another Dedication
Ritual was to be held—not for my sake but for the benefit of the royal
family—then delegate the preparations and secure myself enough mana to purchase
another year in Ehrenfest. The royal family would also help us to earn a bit
more gratitude from the other duchies, since our nobles had such a hard time
managing that on their own. Then, from our superior position, we would oblige
them to accept as many of our demands as possible in return for my adoption
into the royal family.
A switch inside of me had flipped, and now I
was in full merchant mode. I looked Sigiswald straight in the eye; my aim in
this opening battle was to secure, at minimum, a year of time. I would not act
as subserviently as the average noble, merely nodding in compliance as the
royal family listed off one demand after another; instead, I would take
complete control of the conversation. In this verbal wrestling match, I was
going to have complete control of the ring.
The man in front of me was no longer a prince
but merely someone for me to bargain with. Much like Sylvester, those of the
royal family usually left negotiating to their scholars and just delivered the
final verdict. Doing this here in the archive, where Sigiswald was alone and
without his retainers, vastly improved my chances of success.
I need to use every tool at my disposal to get
more time in Ehrenfest and guarantee that the royal family will secure
Ferdinand more hospitable living conditions. Here I go! Benno, lend me your
strength!
“Let us perform a Dedication Ritual during
this year’s Archduke Conference,” I suggested.
“You intend to take mana from the gathered
aubs...?” Sigiswald replied, his lips twitching ever so slightly. “That would
be unprecedented.”
Perhaps, but the royal family had already
demonstrated that it was willing to gather mana from students; accepting some
from the aubs wouldn’t be much of a leap. Plus, I didn’t intend to take mana only from the aubs—the retainers accompanying them would
participate in the ritual as well.
When you get an opportunity, take it and profit
as much as you possibly can. Isn’t that right, Benno?
“Oh my. Is there a reason for your surprise?”
I asked. “Performing the Dedication Ritual is necessary to grant your wish, is
it not?”
Sigiswald evidently hadn’t connected the two;
he gave me a look of concern and even cocked his head a little, causing his
luxurious golden locks to sway. “My wish...? Do you mean my desire for you to
be adopted by the Zent, obtain the Grutrissheit, and marry me after coming of
age?”
“Not quite. Your wish, as I understand it from
Aub Ehrenfest and the scholars who have accompanied him, is for me to become
the Sovereign High Bishop, visit duchies to perform religious ceremonies, and
inspire better harvests and more divine protections throughout the land. Is
raising Yurgenschmidt’s mana average not your highest priority?”
“That is—”
Sigiswald attempted to protest, but I didn’t
give him a chance. “That was what you asked of Aub Ehrenfest, was it not? I am
confident in my assertion.” His demands from just a few days ago had put
Ehrenfest’s nobles through the wringer, so I wasn’t going to let him act like
the whole thing hadn’t happened.
“Thus,” I continued, “I will perform the
Dedication Ritual, as per your wish. Having the country’s aubs and nobles
participate should give them a much better understanding of the importance of
their temples and religious ceremonies. It should also give them enough
experience to repeat the process at home, thereby improving their harvests and
allowing them to obtain more divine protections. The Sovereign temple will
surely be on board, considering their requests for more mana-rich individuals
to perform religious ceremonies.”
The nobles of other duchies had been pushing
for the “Saint of Ehrenfest” to be made the Sovereign High Bishop and bestow
upon them her knowledge of religious ceremonies. Meanwhile, the Sovereign
temple wanted a mana-rich High Bishop, since they couldn’t perform the old
rituals without one. Both parties would be made to participate in the
Dedication Ritual—and, as far as I saw it, there was absolutely no way that
either of them could refuse.
They can learn one of the ceremonies they’re so
desperate to perform, and we can squeeze every drop of mana out of them. Easy.
“Not only will this raise the mana average in
every single duchy—an outcome that you and the rest of the royal family
strongly desire—but it will also secure you an abundance of mana. This, in
turn, will allow me another year in Ehrenfest. Would you not describe this as a
wonderful idea that benefits everyone?”
Once again, Sigiswald was giving me a blank
look. There was a pause as he processed my question, then he suddenly started,
and a smile returned to his face. “Indeed, that is a wonderful idea, but when
exactly would this ritual take place?”
On occasion, the Archduke Conference could end
up lasting for more than two weeks. We still had over a week to go, which was
plenty of time to prepare for the ritual. Sure, the schedule would need to be a
little bit tighter than usual, since we would need to get everything ready
while the conference was being held, but I didn’t expect that to be much of an
issue; the Sovereignty had plenty more nobles than Ehrenfest usually managed
with.
“The last day of the Archduke Conference
should do,” I said. “That would give everyone more than enough time to
prepare.”
“That is still too soon. We cannot suddenly
amend the schedule when so many nobles are due to be involved.”
Sigiswald was presumably used to his
attendants and scholars making his plans for him; in fact, it wouldn’t have
surprised me to hear that he simply went around doing as instructed. He must
not have had to experience other people abruptly changing their plans, forcing
him to update his schedule on painfully short notice. That was the impression I
got from his reluctance to my suggestion, anyway.
I could also tell that Sigiswald was finding
my stream of seemingly eccentric suggestions to be exhausting. As a prince, he
wasn’t at all used to dealing with such matters himself, and there was nobody
here for him to consult. That wasn’t going to stop me, though; I was determined
to drive him into a corner.
I need to go all out now so that Sylvester can
have an easier time dealing with the royal family in the future!
“Oh my...” I said, feigning surprise. “Prince
Sigiswald, I never expected you to be so hesitant about this Dedication Ritual.
I thought you would embrace it as the perfect idea—especially after you
proclaimed that raising the country’s mana average was our highest priority.” I
placed a hand on my cheek and allowed a few crocodile tears to wet my eyes.
“Did you lie to me about the urgency of the mana crisis? Was your intention
simply to get me into the Sovereign temple to appease the aubs of other duchies?”
“I would never...”
“Aub Ehrenfest was ever so troubled by the
royal family’s request that I serve as the new Sovereign High Bishop... To
think the mana crisis was but a ruse all along...” Taking inspiration from
Angelica, I cast my eyes down in an attempt to look heartbroken. The impact was
enormous; Sigiswald cast aside his smile and desperately shook his head.
“Please wait, Rozemyne. This is all a
misunderstanding. It is unequivocally true that we must raise the mana average
among Yurgenschmidt’s nobles with great haste. However... surely such a
large-scale ceremony must be performed only after extensive discussion with the
Sovereign temple and the relevant scholars. I was simply surprised that you
would make such a suggestion when we had not already factored it into our
plans. The preparations will take time, of which we have so little.”
Ooh... That’s what you’re going
to say? Bad move.
Now it was my turn to be stone-faced. After
working his way through various excuses, Sigiswald asked me whether I
understood, his usual smile now back on his face. I gave him an exceptionally
cold grin as I delivered my response.
“Prince Sigiswald, might I ask you a
question?”
“By all means.”
“It was never a life goal of mine to be taken
into the royal family. Still, is it not normally the case that the Zent’s
adoption of an archduke candidate should take place only after he has had an
extensive conversation with the respective aub, and enough time has passed to
allow for the relevant plans and preparations to be made?”
Sigiswald merely stared at me, his lips still
politely curved. I took his silence as an opportunity to continue.
“Tell me, which is more sudden and drastic:
being ordered to prepare for a Dedication Ritual, or being ordered to join the
royal family as the king’s adopted daughter? Is my adoption really so trivial
that you would choose the former? It surprises me that Ehrenfest and I mean so
little to you all.”
The prince blinked at me several times, now
looking very serious indeed. He might have thought I was some demure rich girl
who would accept his every word, or maybe he had only ever faced people who
expressed their slight criticisms indirectly through euphemisms.
At last, he said, “In no way do we look down
on you or on Ehrenfest. We act because your adoption is urgent and necessary.”
“No, what is truly ‘urgent and necessary’ is
solving the royal family’s mana shortage. If you are so desperate that you
cannot wait for me to come of age and would throw Ehrenfest into chaos, then I
am sure you could order the Sovereign temple and the aubs to prepare for the
Dedication Ritual. That may seem unreasonable, but so is the request you have
made of me. Besides, I thought it was the royal family’s specialty to ignore
everybody else’s intentions when making demands.”
“Do you honestly believe that we are
prioritizing our own needs?” Sigiswald asked, taken aback. “It may seem as
though we are being selfish, but we are attempting to maximize the benefit for
everyone.”
I grimaced. “Given that you are consulting me,
I can accept that you have at least some desire to accommodate others. In
practice, however, you have repeated the royal family’s needs time and time
again while ignoring my circumstances. Have you made even one suggestion for my
benefit? In the first place, these needs for mana, the Grutrissheit, my
adoption, and the aubs’ education about religious ceremonies... They are all
what you desire. Not a single one of them helps
Ehrenfest or me. Do you understand that?”
In truth, I did want
to obtain and read the Grutrissheit, but I wasn’t going to say that here. I
needed to drive Sigiswald into a corner so that he would agree for the royal
family to hold another Dedication Ritual.
“The only reason I am suggesting this
troublesome Dedication Ritual is because it suits the needs of the royal
family. For religious ceremonies and the like, the aubs can simply consult
their own temples and deal with the situation themselves. Even Prince
Anastasius said that duchies must take care of their own problems.”
After listening closely to my explanation,
Sigiswald cocked his head at me. “The purpose of the ritual would be to allow
you another year in Ehrenfest, but you and your duchy are the ones who need
that time, not us.”
The royal family had been unsuccessfully
searching for the Grutrissheit for years, and now it was dangling right before
their eyes; no doubt they had lost sight of everything else. I thrust the
reality of our situation straight into the prince’s confused face.
“It has only been a few days since I was
determined to be closest to obtaining the Grutrissheit. You and the rest of the
royal family keep making my adoption sound simple, so does that mean everything
is ready for me? Baptized royals are given villas, are they not?”
Yes, signing an adoption agreement was simple
enough, but that was far from the only thing that would need to be considered.
To live as the king’s adopted daughter, I would need a villa, items to furnish
it, retainer candidates from among the Sovereign’s nobles, living quarters for
any Ehrenfest retainers who accompanied me, Sovereign capes and brooches, and
so much more than what immediately came to mind.
“I do not believe the royal family could adopt
me without first making the necessary arrangements,” I said. “Or do you not
intend to give me a villa? Could it be that you plan to toss me into the
Sovereign temple and have me serve as its High Bishop until my coming of age?
That must be the case, unless you mean to tell me you prepared my accommodation
in but a few days. Oh, with such talented Sovereign nobles, it should take not
even one day to prepare a mere Dedication Ritual. How reassuring.”
Sigiswald gazed across the room, still
maintaining a smile. His dark-green eyes eventually came to rest on the space
outside the archive, where his retainers were awaiting his return. Hildebrand
and Magdalena were there too, but they must have been told not to interrupt our
discussion; they were both looking in our direction yet made no attempt to
approach us.
“To clarify... we were going to give you a
room in one of our villas,” Sigiswald eventually said, practically forcing out
the words. “We planned to have you stay with my mother, who would by then be
your adoptive mother, or me...”
“Oh?” I gave him a look of exaggerated shock.
“Is it customary for the royal family to grant villas only to their biological
children while giving their adopted children naught but a single room? If so,
then this is my first time hearing about it. Rumors paint my adoptive father as
a cruel man who also discriminates between his children, but he ensured that my
accommodation was equal to that of my siblings. Would the Zent grant me less
than that? How am I to believe you are not looking down on Ehrenfest and me
when you intend to treat me so poorly?”
That hit Sigiswald where it hurt; he winced,
then blinked frantically as he tried to come up with a response. The fact that a prince could no longer fake a smile was confirmation that
I now dominated the conversation.
“Were I to take the time to identify every
single problem with your suggestion, I would no longer need the Dedication
Ritual.”
I shouldn’t actually do that, though. I don’t
want the royal family and the other duchies to resent me going forward.
This was my last resort, but in his state of
panic, Sigiswald surely thought I was only stating the obvious. I could guess
as much from his lack of protests.
I continued, “You are right that a sudden
Dedication Ritual will prove inconvenient, so I understand why the royal family
might not consider it the best course of action. However, I suggested it so
that everyone can have an extra year to do what they
need to. Perhaps I should help with the ritual. Or shall we exchange something
else for the time we require?”
I stared Sigiswald down. He was staring back
at me, searching for my intent.
After a prolonged standoff, the prince sighed.
“I shall heed your advice, with gratitude, and advise the Zent that we perform
another Dedication Ritual.” He seemed to have decided to cut his losses, so I
made a whole list of extra suggestions that would prevent Ehrenfest from
needing to participate.
“Ehrenfest would struggle to obtain permission
to use the altar and divine instruments, so we will leave preparing for the
Dedication Ritual to the Sovereignty. Using the auditorium without its stage
would allow enough space for the aubs’ retainers to participate as well.”
Sigiswald froze, then smiled—his usual
routine. “You intend to have the retainers participate as well as the aubs?
Just how much mana do you mean to take?”
“Well, what can I say?” I puffed out my chest,
then repeated what Benno had taught me: “I was raised to believe that when an
opportunity arises, one should take it and profit as much as possible.”
“So this is what people mean when they say the
temple-raised understand things differently...” Sigiswald murmured, looking
conflicted.
Close, but nope! I was raised as a commoner, not
a shrine maiden! Too bad for you!
“If you would allow me to offer some more
advice,” I said, “making the Dedication Ritual an annual occurrence would greatly
benefit everyone. In this case, why not allow participating duchies to repeat
the divine protections ritual each year, thereby encouraging them to
participate? The process takes a while, so I would expect only two duchies to
be able to complete their rituals per Archduke Conference. However, if
presented with a once-in-a-decade opportunity to obtain more divine
protections, any duchy would start taking religious ceremonies seriously.”
If they truly wished to raise the country’s
mana average, then adults would need to take the ceremonies seriously as well.
Their contributions would encourage the children to do the same.
“Furthermore,” I continued, “Aub Klassenberg
has already asked us about performing the Dedication Ritual at the Royal
Academy on a yearly basis. If you handle this well, you will receive boons of
mana at the end of each spring and winter.”
“Rozemyne, mana is not something you should
trade so lightly.”
“But adopting me is? As you have made clear,
the mana crisis is so urgent that the royal family must use any
method at its disposal to obtain more. Should you not spend your time coming up
with as many approaches as you can?”
This time, Sigiswald froze completely. I could
gather from his wide-open eyes that the royal family had never expected such a
suggestion.
“Of course, these are but a few ideas that
come to mind, but where the royal family sources its mana and whether the
Dedication Ritual becomes a yearly event have absolutely nothing to do with me.
May I continue to outline what preparations must be made before the ritual can
be performed?”
“Yes, of course...” the prince said, though he
was barely keeping up.
I took some paper and started to write,
keeping my eyes down as I delivered my lesson. “It would not take much effort
to prepare ordonnanzes or invitations to be sent to the various duchies,
informing them of the date of the event and what they will need to bring. If
you have the nobles staying in the villas prepare empty feystones, and the
Sovereign temple prepare for the ritual, then it should not impact the Archduke
Conference very much at all. We can use the large chalices from both the Royal
Academy and the Sovereign temple. Oh yes, and now that Spring Prayer is over,
we can also make use of the small chalices. Have the Sovereign temple prepare
those as well.”
At that point, I stopped writing and abruptly
looked up at Sigiswald. He flinched when he saw my smile, no doubt sensing
danger. He was right to be wary.
“Also, be certain to have the royal family
advertise that the Dedication Ritual is being held thanks to Ehrenfest’s
assistance. We have been a bottom-ranking duchy for so long that we are not so
skilled at marketing ourselves.”
“Hold on a moment. You expect the royal family
to promote Ehrenfest?” Sigiswald asked, struggling to grasp the very idea.
I nodded as though it were obvious. “If you
want me; Hartmut, our High Priest; and my guard knights clad in blue to
participate, then that is our fee. You said the royal family is attempting to
maximize the benefit for everyone, did you not?”
Sigiswald drew his lips together in a frown.
Then he sighed, gave a peaceful smile, and promised to help Ehrenfest earn the
other duchies’ favor. This would be infinitely more effective than leaving it
to our nobles, who were still pretty heavy-footed when it came to political
maneuvering. Sylvester would be so happy when he found out.
Sylvester, Benno... I did it! This is a decisive
victory for this opening stage, right?
I gave Sigiswald the notes that I’d made. He
looked them over, then said, “I wonder, though... will the duchies not be
displeased to have so much of their mana taken?”
“If you establish well in advance that the
mana is a payment to participate in a ritual which will increase one’s odds of
obtaining divine protections, then you should not receive too many complaints.
The duchies that really take issue can simply not participate.”
“Will that not cause fewer duchies to take
part? Will we obtain enough mana to justify the time spent preparing for it?”
Sigiswald asked. Indeed, as I gazed at him, only one thought came to mind:
This guy sure is a prince.
“Those who participate in the Dedication
Ritual will see the good it does for their harvests and future divine
protections. Those who are reluctant might be forced to think twice if you
express your regret that the other duchies will get wealthier and ultimately
leave them behind.”
Klassenberg would participate at the mention
of the Royal Academy’s Dedication Ritual, while Drewanchel would not even need
to be prompted, since the entire duchy was tremendously eager to obtain more
divine protections. Not to mention, the duchies that had missed their
opportunity to participate in the Royal Academy’s previous ritual would surely
not want to miss this chance as well.
“In addition, when we allow them to repeat the
divine protections ritual, they will be greatly rewarded,” I said. “If you hint
at the knowledge gained from the underground archive, many duchies will surely
leap at the chance. You will not need to fret about the turnout.”
Sigiswald shut his eyes for a long moment,
then once again sighed and smiled. He appeared to be quite thoroughly shaken;
perhaps I was too sharp-tongued for the pampered prince.
Well, my mentors were Benno and Ferdinand, so
there isn’t much I can do about that!
“Oh, and as this is a ritual for educating
duchies that have never participated in a religious ceremony before, I do not
believe the royal family will need to take part as you did in the winter,” I
added.
Sigiswald was relieved to hear that. “I see.
We will prepare the ceremony ourselves and encourage the duchies to
participate. However, could we ask you to make the rejuvenation potions? In the
Sovereignty, we must prioritize making them for the royal family.”
“The duchies would prepare their own, would
they not? Most nobles keep at least one on their hip, so you would need only
warn them to bring spares.”
At once, the prince’s eyes widened. “But did
Ehrenfest not prepare them for the Royal Academy’s ceremony?”
“Back then, we were having duchies participate
in our research, so we thought it necessary to give them a reward. On this
occasion, however, Ehrenfest will already be offering its time and expertise to
teach the country about rituals at the royal family’s request. I do not see any
reason why we would also need to prepare rejuvenation potions. Is it not far
more important that I continue working through the documents in the underground
archive?”
I’ll need to enjoy it while I can. Once the
Archduke Conference ends, the handover and such will take up so much of my time
that I probably won’t get to read for an entire year.
This was my only chance to visit the
underground archive, and reading time was obviously far more important than
rejuvenation potions.
I continued, “We could also make them to sell,
but I do not consider that an option; Drewanchel would purchase our entire
stock and devote its resources to replicating our recipe. Perhaps we could
instead sell the most powerful of the rejuvenation potions taught in class, but
again, I oppose the idea. Those are owned by everyone and would not bring much
profit to Ehrenfest.”
Having the knights gather at our spot so that
our already busy scholars could make rejuvenation potions would only burden us.
“I now see why Ehrenfest has grown so wealthy
all of a sudden,” Sigiswald said. Exhaustion then crept into his smile. “I am
also painfully aware why the nobles of your duchy are struggling to keep up
with their new rank.”
I smiled back. “It truly is wonderful that we
have come to understand each other better. Let us conclude our discussion about
the Dedication Ritual and move on to my conditions for becoming the king’s
adopted daughter.”
“There’s still more?!”
Hm? That was just the preliminary topic. We
haven’t even addressed the most pressing issue yet, have we?
Conditions for Being Adopted
“Do you even need to ask?” I said. “All we
have done so far is agree upon a way to buy ourselves more time. There is still
no reason for Ehrenfest to agree to the adoption.”
“How is the extra year not already beneficial
enough?” Sigiswald asked, caution arising in his eyes. “You were the one to
suggest it, and why would you ask us to do something that you would not profit
from?”
More than that, I wanted to know why he had
thought that a year to prepare would count as a perk of my adoption.
I sighed. “If some urgent circumstance
required you to leave for another duchy and stay there, would you be able to
move right away? You would need time to make arrangements and pass your mantle,
among other things. And, in this scenario, if you were given but a year to
prepare, would you consider it a gracious gift that benefited you and the
Sovereignty?”
“I am an adult, whereas you are still
underage. No matter how much you might be doing in Ehrenfest, I shoulder so
much more.”
Only then did it occur to me that his
understanding of my duties differed greatly from my own. The royal family
seemed to think that I did no more than any other child of an aub.
Aah. So that’s why they thought I
would come as soon as they were ready for me.
“Prince Sigiswald, I do not think you
understand—when it comes to the printing industry and the temple, I am not
merely assisting Aub Ehrenfest or preparing for the future. I
am the one in charge. That is why my handover would take me so long.”
“But you are underage,” the prince remarked
with a stiff smile. “You must have adult guardians who oversee your work.”
“How bold of you to say that,” I replied,
fixing him with the coldest look I could manage while still seeming courteous.
“I used to have a guardian, but he was sent to
Ahrensbach by royal decree. Now, there is nobody to oversee me in the temple. I
am the High Bishop and orphanage director, while the High Priest is one of my
retainers. Of course, he would accompany me to the Sovereignty alongside my
other retainers, meaning we would need to train a new High Bishop, orphanage
director, and High Priest in just one year.”
We already had adults in those positions, but
they would presumably leave with me, which would cause a lot of problems for
Ehrenfest. There was zero chance that Hartmut would stay behind—he would ensure
he was coming to the Sovereignty no matter how much it inconvenienced the rest
of us.
I don’t want to sound too confident, but Clarissa
would absolutely come along too!
“In a single year,” I said, “my replacements
would need to memorize each ceremony’s prayers and procedures, as well as the
arrangements necessary to perform them. The burden is certainly a heavy one;
religious ceremonies have a direct and sizable impact on the duchy’s harvest,
and one cannot read the High Bishop’s bible without an understanding of ancient
language. Do you realize now that the handover will not be simple?”
I couldn’t help but grin; those of the royal
family still weren’t able to read the old writings, so there was nothing they
could say in protest.
Sigiswald gave me a scrutinizing look,
searching for the true meaning behind my words, before eventually conceding.
“What is Aub Ehrenfest thinking?” he muttered. “Making such a young child the
highest authority in so many fields is far from normal.”
“Hartmut, the man whom Ferdinand trained to
replace him as High Priest, is both my retainer and an adult. We thought he was
perfect for the role, as did Aub Ehrenfest, and we expected to have until my
coming of age to train his successor. I would rather you not assume that
Ehrenfest can simply take skilled workers from other duchies as the Sovereignty
does. I did say that we were suffering from a lack of manpower, no?”
Sigiswald cast his eyes down a little. Only
now, after all this time, was he realizing that a simple statement could give
way to all sorts of drastically different interpretations.
“Even those who simply marry into another
duchy require a year or two to settle their affairs, secure what they will
require for their new life, and say their farewells, do they not?” I asked.
“How, then, can the single year that Ehrenfest has been given—no, that it has
needed to bargain for—be considered generous by any means?”
As I subtly bad-mouthed the royal family for
not having allowed us more time to begin with, I thought about my future plans.
Considering the state of the printing industry and the fact that the Gutenbergs
wouldn’t be back from Kirnberger until autumn, I really would have preferred
two or three years, if possible.
I continued, “A single year will not even come
close to compensating for the devastating losses that Ehrenfest will suffer in
my absence. As for me, I will need to give up my reading time so that I can
devote myself to training a replacement High Bishop, orphanage director, and
overseer of the printing industry. It is a given that the royal family will
need to make up for what our duchy is going to lose, but what is being offered
on top of that? I cannot agree to a deal that does not benefit Ehrenfest overall.”
The prince had just seen my determination to
squeeze as much value from the other duchies as possible, and now he was
quaking in fear over how thoroughly I would wring out the royal family.
“I can understand the High Bishop and
orphanage director parts,” he said, “but the printing industry? Are you in
charge of that as well?”
“Most of my immediate control over Ehrenfest’s
printing industry has already been passed on, so I do not expect that part of
the handover process to be much of an issue. There are still many questions to
be answered, though: Shall we bring the industry to the Sovereignty? How many
of my personnel will accompany me? Will they be allowed to open stores there?
Will they be able to build workshops? Oh, and then we must decide how many
craftspeople I will bring with me, how many I will need to hire anew, how long
they should train for, how they will do business with Sovereign merchants and
stores... As you can see, there are plenty of details that need to be ironed
out. The workload is so daunting that one would seldom even want to think about
it, as I am sure you would agree.”
Sigiswald stared at the table for a few
seconds, stone-faced, then smiled. “That is the work of scholars and
attendants, not archduke candidates.”
“Of course, I will entrust as much to them as
I am able, but I will still need to do the final checks myself, as I am sure
you can imagine. Documents do not always reflect the full truth, scholars are
not always entirely honest in their reports, and the methods employed in
Ehrenfest differ from those of the Sovereignty.”
I recalled times when scholars had given
inaccurate reports about problematic situations in an attempt to avoid seeming
incompetent. On many occasions, one had to check the front lines in person to
confirm what was actually happening.
“That is remarkable insight, Rozemyne. I see
that you truly are in charge of such things.”
“Indeed. All the more reason for you to trust
me when I say that a single year is not nearly enough time,” I said, forcefully
repeating my wish.
Sigiswald shook his head, maintaining his
polite expression. “Though I understand your circumstances, and the amount of
mana obtained during the Dedication Ritual may change things somewhat, there is
only so long we can wait. Do your best to finish everything within the next
year. Now, I wish to ask what Ehrenfest would propose as compensation for its
losses. It may be best if we allow Lady Magdalena to join us.” His green eyes
were visibly tense, no doubt because of the upcoming negotiations.
“Um, Prince Sigiswald... I will discuss
Ehrenfest’s conditions with you, but you must know that I will state my own
opinions purely so that misunderstandings and unnoticed discrepancies can be
corrected. In the end, Aub Ehrenfest and the Zent must make the final
decisions. I do not see the need to summon Lady Magdalena to a conversation
such as this.”
No matter what I said, I did not have the
authority to decide on matters of such great importance to the duchy. Sylvester
would decide on Ehrenfest’s behalf during a meeting with the Zent and everyone
else.
“As we have now come to an understanding on
common-sense subjects and the nature of value,” I said, “you need only convey
my requests to the Zent. After all, it does not fall to us to decide what terms
are presented and agreed upon in the end.”
I was stressing that this wasn’t going to be a
decisive conversation so that I wouldn’t be scolded for going over the aub’s
head or saying things that I shouldn’t have. Plus, it was the perfect escape
route for me if the royal family targeted one weakness or another of mine; I
could just say that the final decision rested with Aub Ehrenfest.
On that note, I could use similar logic for
our discussion about the Dedication Ritual. Though it was my suggestion,
Sigiswald had ultimately decided to go through with it, meaning I hadn’t acted
on my own.
I just made a few suggestions and taunted him a
little. The royal family will need to take care of and pay for things, so...
we’re good.
Above all else, it had only been last year
when the royal family elected to move Ferdinand to Ahrensbach by royal decree,
which an archduke could do nothing to oppose. I could still remember how much
that had pained Sylvester, and I wasn’t going to have him be powerless again.
“Ah yes. This is not something for us to
decide between ourselves,” Sigiswald said with a chuckle; learning that I
didn’t have a final say in the matter had come as a tremendous relief to him.
“Pray tell, what are your conditions for the adoption?”
Have I made him dislike me, I wonder? Well,
whatever.
“Aub Ehrenfest will want to make his own
requests, I imagine, but I will tell you mine. If these conditions are accepted
alongside a year or more of preparation time, I will accept the adoption
without any fuss. Of course, if they are refused, I will not resort to treason
or anything of the sort. I do not intend to cause any undue trouble, I can
assure you.”
“I see,” Sigiswald replied. Sylvester had only
recently refused the royal family’s previous suggestions, so my little preface
must have come as welcome news.
“However,” I continued, taking this
opportunity to drive a point home, “I would seriously
rethink my relationship with the rest of the royal family. I cannot get along
with those who would prioritize themselves and the country while showing such
blatant disregard for my duchy. Ehrenfest is my Geduldh, and I was raised in
the temple—please remember this if you intend to have me adopted.”
It was no doubt considered normal for someone
being adopted or married into another duchy to prioritize their new home first
and foremost, but it wasn’t as if Sylvester canceling my current adoption would
make me forget my connection to Ehrenfest. This definitely wasn’t something to
brag about, but I was still attached to Ferdinand and the lower city despite
them both having been taken away from me. I valued them dearly and would
doubtless fly into a violent rage if they were put in danger.
“I understand that it is best not to expect
common sense to apply to you. So, what payment do you seek for Ehrenfest?”
Sigiswald asked, urging me on with a calm countenance.
“I said the same to Prince Anastasius, but I
want Ferdinand to be freed from his engagement and returned to Ehrenfest. His
return would solve most of our problems.”
It would only take a year for Ferdinand to
resolve our mana shortage, contain the Leisegangs, and train our
successors—plus, I would no longer need to worry about his health. During my
two-year slumber in the jureve, Justus had taken over communications with the
lower-city merchants.
“I am sure that Anastasius has already told
you this, but we cannot simply return Ferdinand to Ehrenfest; doing so would
mean bringing Ahrensbach to ruin,” Sigiswald said, rejecting the best option
for Ehrenfest before even running it by the Zent. “It might be possible if you
were to send another unmarried, unengaged member of an archducal family to
govern Ahrensbach in his stead, but we cannot think of any suitable candidates.
If you know of any from Ehrenfest, convince them to accept and introduce them
to us within the next year.”
Indeed, that was basically what Anastasius had
said. It seemed that not a single person in the royal family was willing to let
Ferdinand out of Ahrensbach. That peeved me, but it was well within my
expectations; as much as I didn’t want to accept it, Ferdinand was now so
deeply rooted in Ahrensbach’s power structure that he couldn’t easily be
removed.
In which case, I just need to secure his safety
and improve his living conditions.
Sylvester had told me that Ferdinand was gone
and that we could no longer consider him part of our duchy. Thus, as Aub
Ehrenfest, he wasn’t going to bargain for him during these negotiations. I
would need to take matters into my own hands.
Prince Anastasius said that I should, after all.
I tightened my expression, then smiled. The
first prince’s smile wavered, but only for a moment.
“I understand that canceling Ferdinand’s
engagement would not be feasible right now,” I said. “I also understand that
obtaining the Grutrissheit would potentially change that.” My intention was to
see whether Anastasius’s opinion was shared by others in the royal family.
Sigiswald nodded slowly. “Yes, obtaining the
Grutrissheit would make canceling the engagement possible.”
“Then I would ask that you delay the wedding
until either I obtain the Grutrissheit or we confirm that I will never be able
to. He can avoid punishment by association as long as he is not married to Lady
Detlinde, correct?”
It’s simple: if canceling the engagement requires
me to get the Grutrissheit, then we can just stall it until that happens.
Sigiswald crossed his arms and fell into
thought. “We cannot delay their Starbinding any longer than we have already.
Considering the potential impact on Letizia’s status at the Royal Academy, they
will need to be married in the event that Detlinde becomes aub.”
As soon as Detlinde dyed Ahrensbach’s
foundation and was recognized as the duchy’s aub during the following Archduke
Conference, Ahrensbach law would demand that Letizia be reduced to the status
of an archnoble. To prevent that, they would need to ensure that Letizia was
adopted between the Starbind Ceremony held on the first day of the conference
and the aub confirmations at the end. Her status at the Royal Academy would
change drastically depending on whether she entered as an archduke candidate or
an archnoble.
“In that case, could the royal family not
simply nullify that bizarre law which has seen so many archduke candidates fall
in status?”
“Only aubs may nullify duchy laws. We made the
same suggestion as you, but the late Aub Ahrensbach did not act on our advice,
so there is nothing more we can do.”
As long as a duchy’s practices didn’t
contradict The Book of Laws, the royal family wouldn’t
have the power to change them. Duchy laws usually arose from unique historical
problems and incidents, so while they sometimes appeared to be bizarre or
pointless from an outside perspective, they were often crucial to the smooth
operation of the duchy that followed them.
Speaking of which, I guess Dunkelfelger has a
bunch of strange laws too, owing to its long history.
“If your objective is to prevent Ferdinand
from being deemed guilty by association, then should we not hasten your
adoption into the royal family?” Sigiswald asked.
The Starbind Ceremony was held on the first
day of the Archduke Conference, so the idea was for me to be adopted a short
while before the conference and then return to the archive. Obtaining the
Grutrissheit then and there would mean I could save Ferdinand from having to
marry Detlinde, whereas failing to obtain it would simply result in their
marriage proceeding normally. No matter what happened, Letizia would not be
disadvantaged.
“Of course, this will give you slightly less
than the year you have requested,” the prince explained. “Is that acceptable?”
My eyes wandered a bit. Ferdinand had
instructed me to delay things for at least a year, but would a little bit less
than that be okay? I would need to ask.
“I cannot give you an answer right now,” I
said. “I must consider how much time we will need to safely release Ferdinand
from his engagement. In the meantime, until the day he is either freed or
married, he is going to be trapped in Ahrensbach as a mere guest. I would ask
that the Zent order that he be given a hidden room, at the very least.”
Sigiswald went from being relaxed that I was
no longer pushing the issue to being completely stone-faced. Then, predictably
enough, he smiled. “It is customary for those marrying into another duchy to
live as guests and not have their own hidden rooms until they are wed. I do not
think we would be able to force such a demand on Ahrensbach.”
I could guess from his polite tone that he
thought my temple upbringing had once again made me ignorant about noble
culture, but he was sorely mistaken; Florencia and Bonifatius had educated me
already. In any case, if Sigiswald wanted to appeal to tradition, so be it. I
would simply fight fire with fire.
“I am aware of that custom,” I replied, “which
is why I did not make my request sooner. But do you know what else is
customary? Engagements being canceled as a result of persistent delays. Given
the complications he has faced thus far, Ferdinand would normally have reason
enough to return to Ehrenfest and ask for things with Lady Detlinde to be
broken off. The royal decree is forcing him to stay engaged to her, but the
least you can do is allow him to return to Ehrenfest while he waits. As long as
the engagement is not canceled, it will not breach the royal decree
whatsoever.”
One could not force a bride or groom to stay
in another duchy if, after they arrived, their wedding was suddenly delayed.
Such a critical error smacked of negligence on the receiving duchy’s part, and
it was a serious enough problem that the bride or groom would be entirely
within their rights to cancel the engagement entirely.
Sigiswald shook his head. “Not only was
Ferdinand paired with Detlinde by a royal decree, but he is also now
responsible for a lot of very important administrative work in Ahrensbach; he
cannot return to Ehrenfest for fear that he might leak sensitive information.
You can understand that as an archduke candidate, can you not?”
“I understand that Ferdinand carrying out such
crucial duties in the first place despite being only a guest proves the
unmistakable selfishness of Ahrensbach and the royal family. Based on
tradition, he has every right to return home.”
To be clear, Ferdinand had accepted the royal
decree and cut ties with Ehrenfest to avoid troubling us. It was unlikely that
he would even want to return, but that had nothing to do with this negotiation.
My focus right now was securing him a hidden room.
“If you and the rest of the royal family
really do value tradition, then allow Ferdinand to return to Ehrenfest until
Ahrensbach’s foundation has been dyed and the wedding can finally take place.
If you do not, you must demand that he be given a hidden room. Then, during the
late Aub Ahrensbach’s funeral in the summer, the royal family should confirm
that Ahrensbach has actually done as instructed. You refuse to cancel the
engagement, which leaves me no choice but to ensure that Ferdinand at least has
better living conditions.”
Faced with a choice between one compromise or
another, Sigiswald gave a broad smile and then let out a quiet sigh. “In any
case, this is not a decision I can make myself. I will leave the final verdict
to Father. Is that acceptable?”
Although the happiest outcome was for
Ferdinand to return home, I understood that not even tradition would allow for
that when he was currently shouldering Ahrensbach’s government and teaching
Letizia. That was exactly why I needed to ensure he got a hidden room.
I nodded, figuring that it was fine to leave
the decision to the Zent.
Sigiswald eyed me carefully, his expression
unchanged. “You certainly are invested in Ferdinand, Rozemyne.”
“Of course. Back when I was in the temple, I
was more sickly than you could even imagine. His hard work and supply of
potions saved my life. Then, he diligently trained me to ensure that I would
survive in noble society. It is because of his teachings that I am able to come
first-in-class each year at the Royal Academy. I owe so much to him, yet not
even a fraction of my debt has been repaid. He is my mentor and, in my eyes,
family.”
At the very least, I wanted to leave this room
with the prince’s guarantee that Ferdinand would not be deemed guilty by
association.
I continued, “I want the royal family to
imagine the worry that his current situation brings me, and the fury that I
feel toward those who forced it upon him in the first place. Ferdinand, who is
so precious to me, was moved to a duchy on poor terms with Ehrenfest, forced
into an engagement, and thrust into a predicament that requires him to be as
dependent on potions as King Trauerqual. He is forbidden from returning home
even now that his wedding has been postponed, and despite his love of spending
time in his workshop, immersed in research, he has not even been given a hidden
room. I assure you, what you imagine will not be pleasant.”
Sigiswald was frozen in place. Though the
corners of his mouth were still drawn upward, the blood was draining from his
face.
I placed a hand on my cheek and sighed. “Worst
of all, on top of everything that Ferdinand is having to endure, he is going to
be punished for Lady Detlinde’s crimes. I must admit, no matter how often I am
told to view him as a stranger now that he lives in Ahrensbach, I find myself
unable to stay calm. I have never been good at containing my emotions, and my
mana is infamous for rampaging out of control. I wonder what would happen if
such a rampage were to occur now?”
Seriously, what would happen? I
can’t even begin to imagine what kind of an impact that might have.
I had a lot more mana now, I was better at
controlling it, and my schtappe had evolved. But what if my emotions got the
better of me? As I was pondering this, Sigiswald appeared to be contemplating
something as well. After a long silence, he looked me in the eye and smiled.
“To put your fears to rest, Rozemyne, I will
speak with my father about how we can help Ferdinand. I will devote my all to
ensuring that he is not unjustly sentenced.”
“My... how delightful. I shall put my trust in
you, Prince Sigiswald.”
Yesss! Now I shouldn’t need to worry about any of
that “punishment by association” business. I did it, Ferdinand! This is bound
to earn me a “very good” or two, right?
I victoriously clenched my fist. Meeting the
bare minimum of my requirements had put me in such a good mood that I wanted to
hum, but our discussion was far from over. I tightened my expression, adjusted
my posture, then swiftly moved on to the next of my conditions.
“To compensate for the fact that Ehrenfest has
lost Ferdinand and will eventually lose me, the duchy will need new sources of
mana. In that regard, I would advise the Zent to enforce a five-year rule:
brides and grooms will only be allowed to marry into
Ehrenfest. We will not lose even one more person to another duchy.”
Florencia had suggested that condition.
Because of our rising rank and abundance of new trends, there were plenty of
duchies that wanted to connect with us, and they were courting more and more of
our students. We had ten Starbindings a year on average, and about half of
those were with other duchies; we were bound to acquire a steady flow of new
adults if we made marrying into Ehrenfest mandatory. Then, those married
couples would presumably have children, making this a highly effective method
for increasing the duchy’s population.
Marriages not involving the archducal family
only required the permission of the relevant aubs, so Sigiswald gave me a brisk
nod. “That suggestion will most likely be approved.”
“I would also like thirty to forty of the
magic tools given to newborns. We have a glut of children who cannot become
nobles for lack of one, and I would like to use this opportunity to raise them
properly.”
“Thirty to forty?” Sigiswald repeated. “Is
that not an unusually large number to ask for?” His smile deepened, perhaps to
indicate that my request would prove both troublesome and expensive.
“Oh? Considering that this is a condition for
the marriage, I think we were generous with our calculations. Ferdinand and I
have such a wealth of mana that a mere thirty to forty mednobles will not even
come close to compensating for our loss. Please stop to consider just how much
harm the royal family is inflicting upon Ehrenfest.”
If we were given the magic tools I was
requesting as well as a year to prepare, then Ehrenfest would presumably have
enough mana even after my move to the Sovereignty.
“Furthermore,” I said, “could you perhaps
instruct the Sovereign nobles from Ehrenfest to temporarily return home?”
That one was a request from Sylvester. As it
stood, we weren’t receiving any intelligence from the Sovereignty and other
duchies. Justus had, uh... somehow managed to supply
us in the past, but now that he was gone, we were running blind. We were having
to rely on Clarissa for intelligence—which showed just how dire the situation
was.
This should also be a good opportunity for me to
meet the Sovereign nobles from Ehrenfest before I go to the Sovereignty myself.
Sylvester had refused, but the royal family
had urged him to send more Ehrenfest nobles to the Sovereignty to strengthen my
power base there. It was probably normal to pick retainers from among the
Sovereignty’s nobility to begin establishing a faction—and, with that thought,
a wave of realization suddenly hit me. Would I even be able to see eye to eye
with the Sovereign nobles? They had moved away during the height of Veronica’s
reign, whereas I had only ever known an Ehrenfest without her. I could already
foresee us struggling to communicate. If we didn’t meet and break the ice in
advance of my adoption, then I would surely struggle to decide which of them I
wanted in my retinue.
“That is precisely what we were hoping for as
well,” Sigiswald said joyously, immediately accepting another of my conditions.
The royal family had apparently been troubled that so few of our Sovereign
nobles wanted to return home. They would use our request as an excuse to send
them back in the winter.
“Last of all, there are some personal
conditions unrelated to Ehrenfest that I desire. Due to various circumstances,
I have underage retainers who are name-sworn to me. I would ask for permission
to bring them all with me, regardless of their age or status.”
“Can you not wait until they come of age?” the
prince asked, confused. “If your retainers are underage, then you will require
permission from their parents. Plus, considering matters in the Royal Academy,
it would be best for them to stay in Ehrenfest.”
“Some of them no longer have parents,” I
replied, then explained what I wanted to be communicated to the Zent. “As their
names and their lives are in my hands, I have more authority over them than
their parents would. Anything they do requires my permission, and there is a
reason why they cannot be left in Ehrenfest without me. You may ask Aub
Ehrenfest for the details.”
I decided to leave it at that, then took a
deep breath; this next condition was one that I absolutely could not afford to
lose. I sat up straight, which made Sigiswald do the same. He was still wearing
a smile, but I could see that he was tensing up slightly.
I gave the prince the most intense look I
could manage. “This is my most significant condition, and one that I absolutely
cannot budge on. If you wish to marry me, Prince Sigiswald, then there is
something that you must pay very close attention to.”
“And what might that be?”
In my most forceful voice, I said, “I desire
the freedom to enter any library or book room within the Sovereignty, and
permission to read all of the documents within them, in part to obtain
information not available in the underground archive. I also want a book room
in my villa.”
Sigiswald was silent for a few seconds; then
he put on a rigid smile. “A book room in your villa, you say...? One separate
from the royal library?”
“In truth, I agreed to marry Wilfried and
become Ehrenfest’s first wife in return for complete control over the duchy’s
book rooms. Anyone I marry must give me a library. If
you are to be my husband, Prince Sigiswald, then you must put a book room in
the villa I am given. My dream proposal involves my husband-to-be showing me a
library he built just for me, and the countless books he collected to fill it.”
I smiled. “You do wish to marry me, do you not?”
He nodded. “I am glad that you are being so
open-minded about our union.”
Buddy... I can see you twitching.
“Incidentally...” Sigiswald continued, “this
book room you desire—how large do you expect it to be?”
“Larger than the one in Ehrenfest’s castle,
but... I would not mind it being larger than the one Ferdinand owned.”
“Ferdinand...?”
“Indeed,” I replied with a firm nod. “He
entrusted to me his estate and a vast collection of books before leaving for Ahrensbach.
Now, here I am marrying a prince; would it be wrong to expect a greater gift
than the one given to me by my guardian? It must be simple enough for the royal
family to create a book room larger than one that belonged to a member of the
Ehrenfest archducal family. Eheheh...”
I started going into detail about Ferdinand’s
book room, describing its dimensions and the number of books inside... and the
smile slowly vanished from Sigiswald’s face.
Hm? Wait... is this a lot to ask of a prince?
“U-Um... if you think that my request for a
book room in my villa is too unreasonable, then you could give me the royal
library instead. Living in a library has always been a dream of mine. I look
forward to seeing what you, as my future husband, will gift me.”
I gave the prince my sweetest smile yet,
trying to indicate that this was his chance to butter me up... but he merely
stared at me in a daze and muttered, “Am I truly going to marry this girl...?”
Hm? You were the one who brought it up, were you
not? Hmm? Am I mistaken or something?
I cocked my head at him and decided to ask for
confirmation. It would be hugely embarrassing if I was operating under a
misconception of some kind.
“You did say that you
wished to marry me for the benefit of the royal family... right?” I asked. “Did
I mishear you or something?”
“No, not at all. I am simply, um... How shall
I put this? Surprised...? For the benefit of the royal family... Yes, that is
true. But are you truly satisfied with the idea?”
At last, something had compelled him to ask me
how I felt about all this. This was my only
opportunity to be honest, so I decided to speak the truth.
“I am not at all interested in becoming the
wife of a man whose second marriage I blessed as High Bishop... but if this is
my duty as the king’s adopted daughter, then I will accept my fate. That is why
I am requesting at least a library—to help protect my sanity.”
My engagement to Wilfried was the same. There
was nothing I could do but accept my guardians’ will; it wasn’t an environment
in which I could simply do as I pleased.
“At least a
library...” Prince Sigiswald repeated, a distant look in his eye. He certainly
didn’t seem like someone who had gotten his wish after speaking about it so
passionately. But why? I didn’t understand.
Well, putting that aside...
“That concludes my honest thoughts and
conditions,” I said. “I will leave the actual decision-making to Aub Ehrenfest
and the Zent. Please be careful when discussing these matters with the royal
family—once I am adopted, my hope is that we can all stay on good terms for
years to come.”
Secured Conditions
After my private meeting with Sigiswald, I
explained to Sylvester and the others what the royal family had told me:
namely, that they had thought they were treating Ehrenfest especially well.
There had been plenty of misunderstandings at work between us, but they hadn’t
simply wanted to dump the entire burden on us, so I believed there was still
room for negotiation.
Next, I reported that the royal family was
going to hold another Dedication Ritual on the last day of the Archduke
Conference, and that I had put forward our conditions, assuming they wanted to
adopt me on good terms. I also made sure to mention my repeated reminders that
I was merely expressing my own opinions and that the aub had the final say—I
wanted Sylvester and the others to recognize my efforts to avoid a repeat of
the mess last year.
Sylvester must have been irritated that, after
failing to secure his agreement, the royal family had attempted to go behind
his back by obtaining my approval instead; he praised me for blocking them and
stressing that the final decision was not mine to make.
Not long after my debrief, Sylvester received
another summons from the royal family. He was to meet with them again in two
days’ time.
“Alright, Rozemyne,” Sylvester said upon his
return, “tell me exactly how you negotiated with the
royal family.” We were in a meeting room without Florencia or his retainers,
and he looked unmistakably angry for some reason. His eyes narrowed, he started
grinding a finger into my cheek.
“Pooey...?”
“No! This time, we had our meeting without
retainers so that we could speak more clearly—and guess what I discovered. You
were unbelievably rude to Prince Sigiswald in the archive, weren’t you?”
I cocked my head at Sylvester, unsure why he
was scolding me. “I told you that I was blunt with Prince Sigiswald, since he
promised not to punish me for stating my opinion. Was he really so wounded that
he found it necessary to complain to you? That’s not very manly of him.”
“No, he wasn’t complaining. He wanted me to
warn you not to take the same tone with anyone else, since he was confident you
would. The stress of listening to him made my stomach ache.”
So he really isn’t manly.
If we had agreed to speak as nobles, then even
I would have had the common sense to be more discreet. Sigiswald had told me to be blunt, so it was kind of messed up that he was
now complaining about it.
“To return to your original request,” I said,
“yes, I did push for the royal family to host another Dedication Ritual. That
was only to buy us some time, though, and I don’t believe I did much else that
could be described as negotiating. Bear in mind that I do not have the
authority to make any actual decisions. At most, you could say that I
threatened them a little to ensure they would spare Ferdinand.”
“Hold on just a moment!” Sylvester exclaimed,
his hands on his head in disbelief. “I just assured Prince Sigiswald that you didn’t threaten him—that he must have misunderstood you,
since you would never resort to such means. But he was right?!”
I felt kind of bad knowing that Sylvester had
worked so hard to defend me, but... indeed, the prince was correct. My threats
were entirely deliberate.
“No matter how much concern I show for
Ferdinand, nobody in Ahrensbach will treat him as family. Prince Anastasius
even told me that I would need to take matters into my own hands. Asking the
royal family to help him through normal means did not work, so I was forced to
make use of the rare opportunity that the archive afforded me. Had that
conversation taken place anywhere else, in the presence of others, I would have
been executed. Is that not true?”
Being in the archive had allowed me to speak
my mind. Of course, if my efforts ended in failure, I would need to think of
some other means to accomplish my goal.
“In any case,” Sylvester said, “the royal
family understood you loud and clear, so you don’t need to worry about it
anymore.”
Hope welled up in my heart. “They accepted my
requests for Ferdinand to receive better living conditions and not be deemed
guilty by association?”
Sylvester responded with a tired nod. “Yeah.
They said they would order Ahrensbach to give him a hidden room.”
“Yesss! And the other conditions?”
“They approved more or less every single one.
In a way... I’m pretty sure that’s all thanks to you.”
He went on to tell me how the rest of the
meeting had proceeded. The first time he was summoned, they had only used an
area-affecting sound-blocking magic tool, but this time they had spoken alone,
without any attendants or guards present, and used individual sound-blockers.
Then, in this extremely contained environment, the thoroughly exhausted royal
family had gone through my conditions, made sure that they were accurate and
properly understood, then confirmed that everyone was on the same page.
Sylvester continued, “As far as I can tell,
the royal family is pretty divided when it comes to how to deal with you.”
Trauerqual, for example, believed that anyone
who obtained the Grutrissheit deserved to become the next Zent, and that they
would need to be obeyed without question. In his eyes, preparing a villa and
such for me was an absurd misplacement of priorities; he instead maintained
that I should be welcomed into the royal palace as the country’s next queen
while he moved into a villa instead.
“He also believes that one is best served
making one’s own faction,” Sylvester informed me, “and that Zents need to
surround themselves with people they can trust. That is precisely why he opened
our first meeting with an offering to accept as many Ehrenfest nobles into the
Sovereignty as possible—and was shocked when we declined.”
There was also the matter of my marriage.
Everyone knew that engagements were a crucial means of creating new factions,
so while Trauerqual wanted to adopt me for the sake of obtaining the
Grutrissheit, he would refrain from getting involved afterward. He apparently
believed that the new Zent should rule Yurgenschmidt as they saw fit.
“That all sounds very nice,” I replied, “but
would that not boil down to King Trauerqual dumping his burden on me?”
“Prince Sigiswald seemed to feel the same way.
He said that simply obtaining the Grutrissheit wouldn’t be enough for someone
to rule.”
Because I was from Ehrenfest, I wouldn’t have
much authority to speak of, nor would I be able to rely on the greater duchies
to help me. I doubted that Trauerqual would do much to support me either, since
he was so against getting involved with my rule. These facts had spurred
Sigiswald to ask a very important question: How much could a mere student
really be expected to do with just the Grutrissheit? Abandoning me to rule on
my own wasn’t an option. That was why he had instead proposed that I marry into
the royal family after my adoption; it would introduce the least discord,
allowing me to depend on them as well as their existing support base.
Even then, Trauerqual had refused to budge.
“Your position is sound, but we do not have the final say on this matter,” he
had said. “The next Zent must decide our fates.”
“You agreed with Prince Sigiswald, I’m told,”
Sylvester remarked to me.
“I simply believe that, if they’re willing to
accept my terms, marrying him is the least I can do.”
According to Sylvester—and perhaps
unsurprisingly—Anastasius had disagreed with both his father’s and brother’s
positions. “He said that obtaining the Grutrissheit and the authority of a Zent
would not give you the political aptitude necessary to rule a country. Until
then, he had seemed to be of one mind with Prince Sigiswald, but after that...”
“Yes? What did he say?”
“Well, er... In his words: ‘We cannot entrust
Yurgenschmidt to such a book-obsessed, maladapted gremlin. Her temple-born
customs would clash with our own, and society would descend into chaos. For all
our sakes, we must take the Grutrissheit from her as soon as possible.’ Let me
tell you, King Trauerqual dragged him over the coals for that.”
“I mean, that was rude... but he’s not wrong.”
Anastasius had gone on to say that, if taking
the Grutrissheit from me was an option, he would ease the country’s
frustrations toward Ehrenfest by having me serve the Sovereign temple as its
High Bishop until my coming of age. Then, he would allow me to return home. If
taking the Grutrissheit from me wasn’t an option, he
would propose that they hide my status as Zent, make me Sigiswald’s third wife,
and confine me to a library whenever my assistance wasn’t needed. That, he had
said, would be the most peaceful solution.
In response, Trauerqual had scolded Anastasius
for being so disrespectful to the next Zent and subsequently forbidden him from
speaking to me in the underground archive.
“King Trauerqual stated that he would do his
utmost to follow Ehrenfest’s requests,” Sylvester said, “but he also very
apologetically asked if you could, as the next Zent, be more considerate of the
Sovereignty’s budget and the state of its treasury.”
“Is that somehow relevant to Ehrenfest...?”
Sylvester glared at me. “You asked for your
own extravagant book room, didn’t you?”
In a shocking twist, the book room I’d
requested would cost an absolute fortune, and the royal family was agonizing
over what to do. The other conditions had been trivially easy to meet in
comparison.
“Your book room was the only condition that
the royal family could not agree to,” Sylvester continued. “So, Ehrenfest
agreed to give up on it.”
“NOOOOOO! You gave up the one thing I told you
I wasn’t going to budge on?! That’s so mean! MY BOOK ROOOOOOM!”
I screamed until there was no more air in my
lungs, then clutched my head, started gasping for breath, and glared at
Sylvester with tears in my eyes. I’d worked so hard during my meeting with
Sigiswald, but he hadn’t figured out what mattered to me most.
Sigiswald... you colossal dummy!
“Quiet down, Rozemyne. It was a decision to be
made between the Zent and me. Accept it. You said that you would obey any
conclusions we came to, did you not?”
“GAAAH! I DID SAY
THAT!”
That makes me the colossal
dummy!
“They’ll allow you to visit the palace library
and their various archives as you please, so it’s not like you won’t have any
books at all. Plus, the other conditions were far more important than you
getting to have your own book room. We can thank your ridiculous request for
the fact that they were all accepted, but come on. Give it up. The royal family
looked completely drained.”
Sigiswald had arrived at the underground
archive expecting a classy conversation with a noble, only to come face-to-face
with an unwavering merchant and receive a firm dressing-down for not being on
the same page as Ehrenfest. The encounter had apparently made him lose
confidence in how other people saw the royals, among other things, and the
report he had subsequently delivered to his family had made them all cradle
their heads in agony.
The royal family had clear reasons and
public-facing excuses to hold a Dedication Ritual on the last day of the
Archduke Conference. They also had handwritten instructions detailing how to
perform it—courtesy of yours truly—so their only concern would need to be
changing everybody’s schedule. Even then, they had so very much to gain from
the ritual that it was worth being a little bit pushy to make it happen.
Still, there was only so much that the royal
family could manage. Ehrenfest’s demands had largely made sense, given its
situation, and our request for Ferdinand to receive better living conditions
hadn’t been too unreasonable either. My book room was the sole exception; it
simply wasn’t feasible, no matter how they tried to approach it.
“In the first place, what were you even
thinking by asking for your own book room?”
“Hm? Is it not normal to have one in one’s
home?”
There were book rooms in Ehrenfest’s temple
and castle, and the Ehrenfest Dormitory had a dedicated reading corner.
Ferdinand also had a library in his estate—though that was now “Myne” to love
and to cherish. A villa fit for the adopted daughter of a king would surely
have a book room, at the very least.
“Leaving Ehrenfest would require me to give up
the library that Ferdinand gave me, would it not?” I asked. “Was it really that
strange that I wanted a new one as compensation? It seems unthinkable that the
quality of one’s life should worsen after being adopted by the king.”
“Aah... It makes my head ache that you equate
the quality of your life to books, but in any case—they’ll prepare somewhere
for you to store the books you already own. Just take whatever you want from
Ferdinand’s library.”
“Excuse me? It’s my
library! The handover has already taken place, thank you very much.”
“Whatever.” Sylvester waved away my complaint,
uninterested. “Just don’t drain the country’s budget with your book-related
demands.”
“I never intended to. If a newly made library
was too much to ask for, then I would have been fine with Prince Sigiswald
giving me his. That was what Ferdinand did, right? I just want new books to
read—my future husband allowing me to share his would suffice, even. The
shelves could easily have been filled with transcriptions of the palace
library’s books, so...”
“Ferdinand, are you
the reason she’s like this...?” Sylvester muttered to himself, shaking his
head. He then looked straight at me and said, “Rozemyne, a little tip: very few
people own as many books as Ferdinand once did. Prince Sigiswald, for example,
only borrows books from the palace library—he’s never bought one to keep. Can
you imagine, then, how many books the royal family would have needed to buy to
fulfill your request? Trying to match Ferdinand’s collection would bankrupt
Yurgenschmidt.”
The strength drained from my body. I wouldn’t
obtain any new books from moving to the Sovereignty.
“This is awful. Just awful,” I groaned. “How
can that man call himself a prince when he doesn’t own a single book? He’s
crushing the dreams of little girls everywhere! On top of that, he already has
two wives. How am I supposed to make my heart throb for him?! I mean, he can’t
even make a single library to propose to me with!”
“The heck are you saying?” Sylvester griped.
He was baffled, but this was a matter of grave importance.
“Wilfried told me I could do as I pleased with
the Ehrenfest Dormitory’s bookshelf. Wilfried! Yet an actual
prince can’t promise me a single book. I can’t believe I’m having to
give up on my book room, even after I suggested moving into the palace
library.”
The quality of my life wasn’t the only thing
on the decline—so was the quality of my fiancés. This was a nightmare. It had
never even crossed my mind that being adopted into the royal family would cost
me so much.
“I’m stunned,” I said. “Depressed, even.
Prince Sigiswald is the biggest disappointment of my life.”
In an instant, my scant few reasons to be
optimistic about moving to the Sovereignty had been completely obliterated. I
had planned to spend the next year devoted to my handover duties, content in
the knowledge that a new book room awaited me, but now my motivation was
swirling down the drain. Swoooooosh.
“I’ll still go, since they promised to improve
Ferdinand’s living conditions and spare him from punishment, but... I don’t
want to.” A deep sigh escaped me. “To think I’m going to lose my library...”
“Drop it already. They might not provide any
books, but they’ll at least make the room for you. And you have that book
deposit system, right? We’ll send you the ones we make here, and your shelves
will start filling up in no time. What’s the difference?”
My move would introduce a considerable delay
between the books being made and them ending up in my hands. In other words, I
was still going to be worse off. How was he unable to grasp something so
simple?
“Anyway, that’s enough about books,” Sylvester
said. “What’s done is done. We need to discuss the other decisions that were
made. Listen closely, since this is going to determine how you should approach
these things.” His unilateral decision to move the conversation along
frustrated me, but there was nothing I could do; no amount of complaining from
me would change an agreement made between the king and an archduke.
My shoulders slumped, I could only allow
Sylvester to continue.
“The royal family will oversee another
Dedication Ritual, as you suggested. Then, with a surplus of mana under their
belts, King Trauerqual and Prince Sigiswald will spend the next year trying to
obtain the Grutrissheit. If their attempts end in failure, they will adopt you
as planned.”
Not even the slightest trace of a smile
remained on my face. “If they do obtain the Grutrissheit without us, will they
still meet our requests...?”
“As payment for our help in the underground
archive, they will grant Ferdinand a hidden room and ensure that he is not
punished alongside his fiancée. That’s all, though. And, uh... while they’re
going to make an attempt on their own, they expect it to be a formidable task,
if not an impossible one. King Trauerqual is only encouraging it because he
believes the royal family shouldn’t rest on its laurels and expect a student
from another duchy to do everything for them.”
Well, if our Ferdinand-related conditions were
still going to be met, that was fine with me. I didn’t want to move to the
Sovereignty in the first place, so their resolve was much appreciated.
So much so that I want to shower them with
ultra-nasty rejuvenation potions. I won’t actually do that, though. They may be
effective, but I would definitely be suspected of an attempted
poisoning.
“There’s a lot of groundwork to be laid,”
Sylvester informed me, “so our next year is going to be spent preparing. As
things stand, I will need to disown you during the next Archduke Conference, at
which point the king will adopt you instead. On the surface, we will maintain
the status quo, but Ehrenfest and the royal family will actually be getting
ready for said exchange.” He lowered his voice and said, “Is that understood?”
I nodded; that we needed to keep this adoption
a secret was a forgone conclusion. It was good, then, that Ehrenfest had
already taken complete control of its information network, making it much
easier for us to keep to ourselves and work in the shadows. We would manage.
Sylvester continued, “I plan to clear the room
of retainers when we discuss this back in Ehrenfest. We can decide who to tell
after that.”
“We will need to inform Melchior’s and my
retainers, as well as those in the temple. The handover and their future plans
will require some deliberation. Oh, and when will we tell the Gutenbergs? How
will we teach their technologies to the Sovereignty? Will they only need to
visit, as per usual, or will they actually have to move there? We will need to
give them plenty of notice, else the burden will prove too great.” My next year
was sure to be spent managing the temple, the Gutenbergs, and my personnel.
“I don’t expect things to be easy for the
Gutenbergs, but can that stuff not wait until you’ve been adopted and gotten
things ready for your craftspeople? You’re always on my back about not rushing
the commoners.”
“I will discuss it with Benno and decide from
there. In any case, we will need to approach the Sovereign scholars and ensure
that the necessary documents are sent as soon as possible. In the meantime,
would you grant me permission to share retainers with Melchior, which you
refused to permit before? I am suffering a severe lack of archknights at the
Royal Academy.”
Simply traveling between the dormitory and the
auditorium was fine with my current squad, but I would need archknights to
visit the underground archive, and I wanted as much time to educate Melchior’s
retainers as I could get.
“It’ll depend on Melchior’s answer, but... eh,
sure. By the way... although we’ll be acting as though nothing’s changed for
the next year, how do you feel about Wilfried now that you’ll no longer be
engaged to him?”
Despite my best attempts to avoid them, my
thoughts about Wilfried came to mind. “To be honest, I don’t feel anything
about our engagement coming to an end. We were always more like siblings than a
couple, and we’ve barely even interacted in quite some time. He didn’t even
appreciate the ordonnanzes I sent him. Above all else, though, we haven’t done
any of the rituals necessary for an engagement.”
We hadn’t traded feystones, and we had decided
not to start color-mixing until we were a bit older. In short, our engagement
had been a verbal agreement with the king’s approval and nothing more.
Sigiswald was going to replace Wilfried, sure, but that was pretty much the
only change; I wasn’t emotionally invested in either political marriage, nor
was I romantically interested in either of my suitors.
“However,” I continued, “I do recognize that
this change of plans will impact Wilfried. His engagement to me was the only
reason that so many chose to overlook his connection to Lady Veronica and the
fact that he entered the Ivory Tower. I regret that the future he spent so long
working toward is going to be shattered out of the blue, and as the result of a
royal decree he has no power to overturn.”
“Yeah...” Sylvester muttered in agreement, the
picture of a father worrying for his son. He wasn’t thinking about me at all,
and that realization made me sigh.
“But you’re aware that Wilfried won’t be the
only one having to endure the life-changing consequences of a royal decree,
right? I never intended to leave Ehrenfest, yet here I am, at risk of losing
all of my belongings and everyone who’s precious to me. And don’t forget
Ferdinand, who’s gone through that already. Wilfried, on the other hand, will
get to stay in Ehrenfest. You need only look after him as his father.”
Wilfried would at least get to stay with his
loving family—and that was enough to make me envy him. There was a pregnant
pause before Sylvester replied:
“You’re right.”
A few days later, an invitation from the royal
family arrived, and Sylvester formally announced the Dedication Ritual that was
going to be held on the last day of the conference. The nobles let out joyous
cries upon hearing that they would no longer need to endure pressure from the
other duchies, but they were also surprised to have been ordered to participate
as well in order to gain more divine protections; very few of them had
participated in a religious ceremony before.
“Rozemyne’s retainers,” Sylvester said, “I
expect you to be there in your blue robes, supporting and protecting everyone
throughout the ritual.”
“Understood.”
We would only need to show up and perform the
ritual on the specified date, so there was nothing for us to prepare. I needed
only to continue visiting the underground archive until the last day of the
Archduke Conference.
“So, the royal family is hosting a Dedication
Ritual...” Hannelore said during lunch. “I am told that it was made possible
thanks to Ehrenfest, who wished to answer the calls of the other duchies and
teach them about religious ceremonies. Even we of Dunkelfelger are thrilled to
be participating. Ehrenfest must be finding it difficult.”
“I admit,” I replied, “I did not expect
Dunkelfelger to take part. Your research has already demonstrated that one can
obtain divine protections through the ceremonies performed before and after
ditter games.”
“We are interested in other religious
ceremonies as well, it would seem. There are only so many divine protections we
can obtain through our ditter rituals, no?”
That surprised me. Maybe this was rude, but
I’d never expected those from Dunkelfelger to care about anything other than
ditter.
Because, I mean, they’re always going on about
it, right? So, like... Yeah.
According to Hannelore, the scholars and
attendants wanted divine protections from other gods as well. “We also want our
adults to have another chance to perform the divine protections ritual. My
father and mother are currently agonizing over how to involve our laynobles and
mednobles as well, despite them not usually being able to attend the Archduke
Conference.”
Magdalena nodded in agreement—she was
listening too—while Hildebrand bemoaned the fact that he could not participate
in the ritual.
“Hannelore will not be able to participate
this year either,” Magdalena said chidingly. “Some have suggested that it be
incorporated into the Royal Academy’s lesson plan, and that Klassenberg and
Ehrenfest perform it annually as joint research. Be patient until you enroll.”
“By then, it will already be too late...”
Hildebrand grumbled, his lips pursed.
“Will the majority of duchies be participating
in the ritual, as one might expect?” Hannelore asked.
Magdalena nodded. “Indeed. Ahrensbach has
declined, as they have Ferdinand to teach them, but every other duchy has
announced its intention to take part.”
I remembered Ferdinand writing that he had
traveled around Ahrensbach with a group of nobles for Spring Prayer. Simply
having experience with religious ceremonies wouldn’t be enough, though; if one
wanted new divine protections, they would need to repeat the divine protections
ritual.
“Would it not be wise for them to participate
anyway?” I asked with a quizzical tilt of my head. “Most nobles simply want a
chance to obtain new divine protections.”
Magdalena gave me a cold smile, as if she were
holding back some much darker emotions. “According to Lady Detlinde, they will
be able to repeat ‘that trifling ritual’ as many times as they desire once she
becomes Zent.”
“Did she actually say that?! Really?!”
“Three times, courtesy of her ordonnanz. Her
retainers’ desperate attempts to stop her were included in the recording as
well, but in any case, the entire royal family was present for it.”
AAAAAAH! It might have required me to threaten a
prince, but I’m so glad that I managed to save Ferdinand.
The Archduke Conference’s Dedication Ritual
Hirschur made a rare appearance at the
Ehrenfest Dormitory and gave me a board, on which was a list of all the
ingredients necessary to make mobile magic tools like Schwartz and Weiss. “Lady
Rozemyne, I will be participating in the Dedication Ritual,” she said, sounding
extra pleased with herself. “Do give the aub my thanks.” Her announcement had
nothing to do with the board, so I wasn’t sure whether to thank her or play
along.
“Thank you ever so much for delivering this,”
I eventually replied. “I am also glad to hear that you have been allowed to
join the ritual.”
The first Dedication Ritual we hosted at the
Royal Academy was for research purposes, so only archduke candidates and
student archscholars had been allowed to participate. This had deeply troubled
the research-crazy professors, who were very much interested in religious
ceremonies that allowed one to gain more divine protections.
At first, the news that another Dedication
Ritual was going to take place had come as another disappointment to the
professors; only the aubs and their retainers had received invitations.
Hirschur had grumbled about being left out again; then she had gotten Sylvester
to send an ordonnanz to the royal family requesting that they include the
professors as well.
I didn’t think the royal family would mind. The
more participants, the better, after all.
“I am aware that participants were asked to
bring their own rejuvenation potions this time,” Hirschur remarked. “Gundolf
was rather frustrated. The students had said that Ehrenfest’s potions were
particularly effective, so he wanted to try one for himself.”
I giggled. Just as I predicted, Drewanchel was
thinking about our rejuvenation potions first and foremost.
All of a sudden, I noticed a twinkle in
Hirschur’s eye. “The royal family wants to make this ceremony a yearly event,
but the promise of divine protections and nothing more will surely lead to
mounting dissatisfaction.”
“Oh? And why is that?”
“Although having a chance to perform the
ritual once every ten years is fine in itself, one will need to obtain several
divine protections before they feel an impact on their mana usage. One must
continually offer mana during the ceremony to earn the right to repeat the
ritual, but those who receive their chance during the first or second year will
receive barely any divine protections.”
Hirschur was correct; how many divine
protections one obtained was dependent on how much mana one offered and whether
one’s regular behavior drew the attention of the gods. It wasn’t enough to
perform the odd ritual and then proceed with one’s everyday life. If one
considered the number of protections received by my retainers, who were
visiting the temple every day as part of a silly competition to see who could
transform their schtappe into a divine instrument first, and the number of
protections received by Wilfried, who had performed Spring Prayer and offered
mana to the foundation since I first entered a jureve five years ago, it became
clear that quantity and consistency were tremendously important.
She continued, “It will most likely be the
losing duchies who are made to repeat their rituals first. Their mana is sparse
to begin with, and they are unlikely to obtain many divine protections after
their first ritual. Then, they will need to wait an entire decade before they
can repeat it again, locked into participating over and over for fear of
getting left behind. All those years of struggling will doubtless inspire
frustration—and so, Lady Rozemyne! Do you not think you should distribute
rejuvenation potions to ease their burden and turn their painful struggle into
a more tolerable one?”
I considered Hirschur’s point. It did seem
like a good idea to provide an immediate reward to ease the nobles’ inevitable
dissatisfaction.
“If you believe this is important, Professor
Hirschur, then I would advise you to say as much to the royal family and
suggest that the Sovereign professors work together to make those rejuvenation
potions,” I said, turning her down with a polite smile. “At least one of you
must have a recipe for a highly effective brew. This is not a problem that
Ehrenfest must strive to solve.”
Hirschur shrugged, unamused. “You are correct
that making rejuvenation potions for the defeated duchies would not be
beneficial in the slightest. I would never waste time that I could spend
researching on such a fruitless endeavor.”
“I agree from the bottom of my heart. Just as
you would not want to surrender your chances to be immersed in your precious
research, why would I want to fritter away time that I could spend reading?
Furthermore, the royal family are the ones holding this ritual. I would not
like to intervene.”
Hirschur let out a laugh. “So you claim, but
it is clear as day that you are devising a solution to their discontent. It
would not be the first time you have done something of no apparent value to
you. On that note... a rather large change is being made to the Royal Academy’s
curriculum. You inspired that as well, I imagine? You would do well to
understand that your words move the royal family. At this rate, they will want
to take you for themselves.”
Her warning had come too late, but it was a
good indication that news of my adoption had yet to circulate.
“How are the lesson plans changing?” I asked.
“The royal family declared that it would make
more sense to obtain one’s schtappe after learning
mana compression and obtaining divine protections. They wanted a return to the
old ways, when students would need to wait until the year of their graduation,
but were forced to compromise when an overwhelming number of duchies proclaimed
that they would rather the younger generation learn to use their schtappes at
the Royal Academy than at home. Thus, students will now obtain them during
their third year.”
As it turned out, the students obtaining their
schtappes sooner made lessons easier for the teachers, so they hadn’t protested
the event being moved to the first year. Hirschur suspected my involvement
because the topic had come up so abruptly and during the second half of the
Archduke Conference.
Ngh! As much as it hurts, her deduction is
spot-on!
Hirschur continued, “We were also instructed
to revert our lesson plans for the first- and second-years to what they were
before. Gundolf’s group is overseeing this, with plans to have the process
completed in time for the next academic year.”
The professors had initially opposed this
schedule, arguing that lesson plans couldn’t be changed at such short
notice—but Fraularm had already set a precedent for using the old plans during
our second year, so their hands had ultimately been tied.
Oh? I guess there are times when Professor
Fraularm’s little schemes actually benefit the royal family.
“There was also an inquiry into whether the
Dedication Ritual could be added to the standard curriculum,” Hirschur informed
me. “At the moment, many duchies still struggle to visit the temple, but the
royal family stated that a degree of competition must be introduced at once.
They want the students to experience plenty of religious ceremonies and pray as
much as possible during class so that they can obtain more divine protections.”
This suggestion had actually been rejected,
since the professors knew next to nothing about religious ceremonies. In the
end, it was decided that the new content would be incorporated into the
curriculum gradually over a much longer period—and that Ehrenfest and
Klassenberg would continue to perform joint research focused on the Dedication
Ritual.
“Once the term begins, Ehrenfest will be asked
to participate in this joint research, I imagine. It is also my understanding
that Klassenberg is helping the royal family get ready for the upcoming ritual
so that they may learn the process and make their own preparations in the
future.”
Klassenberg and the royal family both act fast,
though I can’t imagine Ehrenfest will ask for much. I received a report earlier
today that we brought a trial set of our picture-book bibles to the Royal
Academy and started promoting them.
And then it hit me—I had said in the past that
Ehrenfest would not have any qualms about repeating the ritual as long as
Klassenberg took care of the preparations.
Hirschur gave me a look of understanding. “Ah,
I see. So this had already been discussed. It was mentioned that the burden on
Klassenberg would plummet when the ritual does eventually become part of the
curriculum and duchies start bringing their own rejuvenation potions. Oh,
regarding the potions—you may be interested to know that Klassenberg was
suspicious of the apparent ease with which Ehrenfest prepared so many.”
Preparing rejuvenation potions certainly is a
handful.
Just making them was draining enough, but the
biggest complication was gathering the materials. Ehrenfest’s gathering spot
hadn’t used to be very abundant, and it seemed reasonable to assume that the
other duchies were still dealing with the same problem.
They could just regenerate their own gathering
spots, but you need to know the prayer for that, so...
As I pondered this, Lieseleta entered with a
warm meal packaged neatly in a box—our way of thanking Hirschur for actually
bringing the board to me and providing so much additional information. She
tried to stand near the wall and wait for us to finish our conversation, but
the overeager professor gestured her over without delay.
“Lieseleta, if you would,” she said, then
immediately took the box with a smile. “If you’ll excuse me, then, I must
return to my laboratory.”
“U-Um, Professor Hirschur...” I stammered.
“There are still things I must ask you about—”
“Good day to you, Lady Rozemyne. May we meet
again during the Archduke Conference’s Dedication Ritual.”
Having obtained her food, Hirschur turned on
her heel and swiftly departed, not even bothering to conclude our discussion. I
was left in a daze, which made Lieseleta slump her shoulders.
“My apologies, Lady Rozemyne... I did not
think she would beat such a hasty retreat. I should have taken longer to
prepare her food.”
“I cannot blame you for failing to realize her
intentions. Professor Hirschur may teach here at the Royal Academy, but she
never behaves as a noble normally should.” Not even I had expected her to leave
so abruptly. She was too much of a free spirit.
“I thank you ever so much for your
consolation, Lady Rozemyne, but I have known Professor Hirschur for years now.
It was my failure as an attendant that I did not anticipate what she was going
to do. That was such a crucial opportunity for you to gather information as
well...”
I get how you feel, but Hirschur is outright
unpredictable. Attendants aren’t mind readers, so what can you do?
I continued to translate in the underground
archive, then spent lunch with Magdalena, discussing the royal family’s
Dedication Ritual. In no time at all, it was the final day of the Archduke
Conference. Despite the suddenness of the whole affair, everything was made
ready without incident.
After breakfast, I cleansed myself, changed
into my High Bishop robes, then went with my blue-robed retainers to a
specified waiting room, where we would await the beginning of the ritual.
Geh. It’s Immanuel.
No sooner had we entered the room than we
found ourselves face-to-face with the Sovereign High Priest. I recalled his
attempt to cut us off after the Starbind Ceremony and was struck with a sudden
urge to step away from him out of disgust, but Cornelius placed a hand on my
shoulder to keep me in place. He then moved me just a bit to the side, behind
Hartmut.
I gazed up at Cornelius, who gave me a small,
reassuring smile in response. He then adopted a more neutral expression and
stood next to Hartmut. They both stared down Immanuel, with whom I exchanged
the usual greetings before we took the seats offered to us.
“Lady Rozemyne,” the Sovereign High Priest
said, “I am beyond grateful that we will soon welcome you as our Sovereign High
Bishop.”
Hartmut shook his head. “As we have mentioned,
Lady Rozemyne is an Ehrenfest archduke candidate. There are no plans for her to
join the Sovereign temple. She is here only to carry out a request from the
royal family.” He then directed the man a chilly smile that practically
screamed, “Get this through your thick skull already.”
“Soon after this ceremony concludes, I expect
Ehrenfest to receive a royal decree,” Immanuel said, his lips curling. “One
instructing Lady Rozemyne to be sent to the Sovereign temple to serve as its
High Bishop, that is. As I understand it, there do exist
methods to move an archduke candidate to the Sovereignty—and there will not be
anything that Ehrenfest can do to stop it.”
Hartmut looked momentarily surprised, then
smirked provocatively. “By law, the only way for an archduke candidate to be
moved to the Sovereignty is through marriage—but someone who is married cannot
become the High Bishop. Were you unaware of that fact, despite being a
Sovereign priest? Even if she does move, she will
never enter your temple. Ah... Perhaps those of the royal family intend to take
her for themselves?”
Immanuel clearly had a limited understanding
of noble culture; he had only learned that archduke candidates couldn’t
normally be taken into the Sovereignty through a conversation with Ferdinand.
He stared at us in wide-eyed shock and muttered, “The royal family intends to
take her...?” He had genuinely believed that I would start serving as the
Sovereign High Bishop once the royal family took action.
I mean, they do have ways to cancel my adoption
in Ehrenfest, and they did speak to the Sovereign temple about me joining its
ranks... Perhaps he genuinely thought he had a good chance of winning.
Midway through the Archduke Conference,
however, it had come to light that I was a Zent candidate on the verge of
acquiring the Grutrissheit. The royal family’s focus had then shifted to
adopting me instead. They had probably forgotten all about the Sovereign
temple.
Everything really did change over the span of
this conference.
“Immanuel, you should go to the auditorium,” I
said. “You will need to tell the nobles how to enter and arrange themselves,
no?” I tried to wave him away—his staring contest with Hartmut was starting to
get annoying—but he instead chose to stay and tell me his complaints about
today’s ceremony.
“Lady Rozemyne, the Dedication Ceremony is
meant to be performed while facing the shrine, not with everyone standing in a
circle. Please ask the royal family to reposition the participating nobles.”
Indeed, it was standard practice when making
an offering to the gods to face the shrine, as the dedicated mana would then
flow into the divine instruments on the altar. Unfortunately for Immanuel, that
was not our intention for today. We needed the mana for our own purposes, so
the nobles involved were to kneel around chalices instead.
He continued, “Filling all of the divine
instruments will be of enormous benefit to the Sovereign temple.”
“I have absolutely no intention of providing
mana to the Sovereign temple,” I retorted. “Harvests all across the country
have worsened specifically because you took each duchy’s best blue priests and
shrine maidens—is that not true? Well, in this case, I think the Sovereign
temple should return the favor.”
After the civil war, the return of the more
plenteous apprentices to noble society had caused trouble enough, but the
Sovereign temple’s poaching had really wounded the temples of the country’s
lesser duchies. The state of the blue priests who were left in Ehrenfest said
it all.
“In any case,” I went on, “if you truly want
the mana from the duchies here today to be given to the Sovereign temple,
consult the royal family. They are the ones hosting the ritual, not I.”
Again, I waved the Sovereign High Priest away
and asked that he leave. Hartmut and Angelica basically forced him out of the
waiting room this time.
Leonore peered down at me, worried. “Are you
well, Lady Rozemyne? You seem exhausted already.”
“There has been so much on my mind recently
that I must be losing sleep. I am not so tired that I cannot perform the
ritual, but I do not have the strength to deal with Immanuel right now.” His
lunatic, somewhat unfocused stare always put me on edge. Just being in his
presence was gross and unsettling. It was as though simply facing him drained
me of my life force.
I hadn’t even spoken to my retainers about the
fact that I was being adopted into the royal family. Thinking about everything
I would need to do upon my return to Ehrenfest was enough to make me sigh. I
would need to inform Wilfried that our engagement was being canceled, confirm
what my retainers intended to do, and train Melchior to take over at the
temple—and tie up the lower city’s loose ends on top of that.
I also need to write Ferdinand another letter,
this time using invisible ink. There’s so much he needs to know, like how I
secured him a hidden room and protected not just Ehrenfest but the entire
country. Oh, and our discoveries related to the dangerous silver cloth, and the
weird thing Professor Hortensia said to Detlinde... Just a ton, really. I
wonder if Sylvester will grant me permission...
“Lady Rozemyne, the participants have all
arrived and received an explanation of today’s ceremony. As the Sovereign
temple is going to perform it, I shall serve as the High Priest.”
I gazed up to see Immanuel; he had evidently
come to fetch me while I was lost in thought. He extended a hand to me, but
Hartmut swiftly smacked it away.
“It would be much too dangerous for you to act
as High Priest,” he said with a smile. “A blue priest who is not himself a
noble could never endure so many aubs making an offering. At best, the flow
would completely drain you of your mana. At worst, it would kill you. Even
standing on the outskirts would put your life in danger.”
Hartmut carefully wiped the part of his hand
that had touched Immanuel and added in a low voice that, while he did not care
what fate befell the Sovereign High Priest, he did not want anything to happen
that might trouble me. Then, he offered me his hand instead. My eyes flitted
between the two men before I eventually accepted it.
“Indeed, we would not want you to pass away
during the ritual,” I said to Immanuel, then turned my attention to my
retainers. “Damuel, I would ask you to participate by the edge of the circle.
Please signal us if the burden becomes too great.”
“Understood.”
“Everyone else, do not participate. Focus on
your guard duty.”
“Yes, my lady!”
So, with my retainers surrounding me, I made
my way to the auditorium. Angelica was behind me, and I could sense that she
was paying excruciatingly close attention to Immanuel’s every move.
“The High Bishop shall now enter!” came the
expected call, and a bell started to ring.
I made my appearance, and the gathered nobles
all turned to look at me. They were kneeling atop a red cloth and, true to the
Sovereign High Priest’s complaints, positioned around chalices rather than
facing the shrine.
They look a bit like a pie chart...
Every noble was wearing a cape in their
duchy’s color, and their doughnut formation only made the comparison more
striking. As far as the ratios went, the greater duchies had more
representation, whereas the lesser duchies had... considerably less. The weaker
one’s mana, the closer one was to the outermost rings, so it made sense that
the archducal couples were all so close to the center.
As I walked through the nobles, I heard Damuel
stop Immanuel with a candid, “This is as far as you go.” It was best to leave
the situation to him.
I glanced over at Ehrenfest’s ocher capes and
spotted Sylvester kneeling at the very front. Florencia was absent rather than
beside him—as expected, considering her pregnancy—but Karstedt and several
others of the Knight’s Order were keeping watch from outside the circle.
Oh, there are Sovereign nobles participating as
well.
A group wearing black capes was in position
between the reds and blues. They were scholars and attendants, I assumed. The
royals weren’t going to participate, so they were standing a short distance
away from the red cloth and the nobles kneeling atop it.
Surrounding the royal family was the Sovereign
Knight’s Order, as imposing as ever. They were glaring straight at us.
I soon arrived at the center of the circle,
where there were two large chalices and many smaller ones. They hadn’t been
particularly hard to gather, I was told; while the Sovereignty didn’t have
giebes, royals other than the Zent supplied mana to their villas and the
surrounding land as giebes would. I checked the chalices to make sure they
contained empty feystones, then nodded. They would do well enough.
“Aub Ehrenfest. Rozemyne,” the Zent
proclaimed. “As the representative of all those gathered here today, I thank
you for agreeing to cooperate on such short notice.”
I crossed my arms and knelt in response, then placed
my hands on the red cloth beneath me. Hartmut got on his knees beside me, but
my blue-robed guard knights remained standing.
“I am one who offers prayer and gratitude to
the gods who have created the world,” I said, then waited patiently as everyone
repeated after me.
“I am one who offers prayer and gratitude to
the gods who have created the world.”
Their voices were mismatched at the start but
gradually aligned, much like during our previous Dedication Ritual at the Royal
Academy. And as per usual, waves of light began coursing down the red cloth and
into the chalices.
Wait, what? Only the Royal Academy’s divine
instrument is shining.
My understanding had been that ceremonies
performed with one’s schtappe formed pillars of light, while those performed
with temple instruments did not—but I was evidently mistaken. Just one of the
chalices began to shine crimson, as though declaring itself the only real
instrument among a group of phonies. The light shimmered as though it were a
flame, then rose up into the air like sparks. It was yet another strange event,
completely different from a pillar of light.
This is kind of similar to what I saw on the
Night of Flutrane.
As I stared at the spectacle, mesmerized, I
heard Damuel say that we had done enough. I took my hands off the floor and
gracefully stood up.
“Everyone, please remove your hands from the
cloth,” I said. “I expect that some of you are reaching the limits of your
mana, so let us end the ceremony here.”
Damuel was a laynoble with the mana of a
mednoble, but his limit was bound to be considerably lower than that of a noble
equipped to attend the Archduke Conference; even a moderately effective
rejuvenation potion would restore him. The aubs already had experience
supplying their foundations, so they were entirely unperturbed, and while those
who had never participated in a religious ceremony before seemed tired, nobody
looked to be on the verge of collapsing. It was more than we could say for the
previous Dedication Ritual.
Mm-hmm. At this rate, they shouldn’t have any
trouble doing this each year and gaining more experience with ceremonies.
Nobody will give too much and shoot themselves in the foot. Isn’t it perfect?
But as soon as a victorious smile graced my
lips, the blue priests and shrine maidens who had apparently been participating
by the edge collapsed, unconscious. I could only cover my mouth and utter an
“Oops.”
I... forgot they were here. And, wait—if they do
this ritual all the time, shouldn’t they know their limits?!
This was a tremendous shock, but I maintained
a neutral expression while looking over the nobles and directing those who
needed a rejuvenation potion to drink one. The room grew noisier as people
began to replenish themselves, but I could still easily speak over them.
“In truth, this was a winter ceremony meant to
fill chalices for the giebes to then use to wet the earth. If you continue to
pray and offer mana in your temples, then your harvests will increase aplenty.
The process will even allow you to obtain additional divine protections from
the gods.”
I punctuated my last remark by noting how many
divine protections Wilfried received.
After listening closely to my explanation, the
Zent offered a grave nod. “Henceforth, we shall perform a Dedication Ritual
each winter so that our students might gain more experience with religious
ceremonies. Our children will need to pray from a younger age if they wish to
obtain these critical protections. It was proposed that Klassenberg and
Ehrenfest would continue to host these ceremonies to progress their joint
research, and both duchies have expressed that they are willing.”
Uh, did we formally agree to
that?
The matter had come up in the underground
archive, but did Sylvester even know about this? Or did it count as academy
business and not require his permission? In either case, now that the Zent had
announced it—and to such an important crowd—it would be more or less impossible
for us to back out. The nobles urged to participate in today’s ritual were just
as trapped; they all glanced at their rejuvenation potion pouches with looks
that seemed to say, “You intend to continue stealing our mana?” I couldn’t help
but feel sorry for them.
“As the Zent has said, it is necessary to
perform religious ceremonies not only to obtain divine protections but also to
support Yurgenschmidt as a whole,” I pronounced. “That said, as one must
inevitably follow the ritual with a rejuvenation potion, we understand the
burden this will place on the students.”
Several of the nobles shot their heads up to
look at me—mostly those from the losing duchies. “Will Ehrenfest distribute
rejuvenation potions as it did for the previous Dedication Ritual?” one of them
asked.
“I am afraid not. As I am sure you can
imagine, not even a greater duchy like Klassenberg could readily make
rejuvenation potions for the entire Royal Academy. Ehrenfest would stand no
chance at all.” The hope quickly faded from their eyes, but I couldn’t risk
putting such a heavy burden on Ehrenfest when there was a good chance that I
wouldn’t even be there next year. “Instead, to make it easier for everyone to
brew their own potions, I would like to teach you all a prayer that will
rejuvenate your gathering spots.”
“Hm? Our gathering spots...?”
The nobles looked confused, so I nodded. I
would teach them the prayer and nothing more; if they wanted better
ingredients, they would need to rejuvenate their gathering spots themselves.
That was why we had only squeezed a conservative amount of mana from them this
time.
“There are mysterious magic circles engraved
in the gathering spots granted to your dormitories,” I said. “If your nobles
all press their hands against them and offer their mana as you have done here,
then your gathering spots will be replenished with an abundance of materials.
This will make it easier for you to brew rejuvenation potions, and it will
serve as another ritual you can perform.”
As the buzz in the room got louder, I faced
the nobles and taught them the prayer to Flutrane that was used during Spring
Prayer. Some struggled to hear me over the noise, so I repeated it again and
again while stealthily channeling my mana into the not-entirely-filled
chalices.
“Now the chalice is shining green?!” someone
cried.
“Hm...? Oh, my apologies,” I said. “I was
repeating the prayer, so I must have accidentally begun an entirely different
ceremony.” I frantically removed my hands from the now full chalices and put on
a smile. That had almost been a gigantic blunder, but adding that extra bit of
mana had surely secured me the full year that I’d bargained for.
And so, the Archduke Conference’s Dedication
Ritual ended without incident.
Before we left, I asked Ehrenfest’s adults to
rejuvenate our gathering spot. Thanks to their large numbers, this proceeded
without issue, which came as quite a relief; I was glad to know that they would
manage once I was gone.
Epilogue
“Done at last.”
After the conclusion of the Archduke
Conference, Hildebrand sat down to have dinner with his mother, Magdalena; he
was too young to participate in the Dedication Ritual, so he wanted to know how
it had gone. He had considered asking his retainers to take part and then
questioning them instead, but his guards were unable to leave their charge
unattended. It had also been necessary for them to stay and assist with
guarding the Sovereignty while so many were absent for the ceremony.
“How was it, Mother?” the prince eagerly
asked. “Did you see any pillars of light?”
Instead of merely watching the ritual as a
member of the royal family, Magdalena had participated as a Sovereign noble.
Hildebrand could not wait to hear about her experience; the ceremonies that
Rozemyne performed as the High Bishop were always so dramatically unique.
Magdalena cut into the herb-wrapped bird on
her plate, popped a morsel in her mouth, then scanned the room. The prince’s
excitement must have rubbed off on his attendant and guard knights, as they
were also listening with great interest.
“No, I did not even glimpse the ‘red pillar’
that the other royals said occurred during the winter.”
“Oh... Is that so...?” Hildebrand replied,
crestfallen. He had assumed that strange occurrences were a given when Rozemyne
performed a ceremony.
“Lady Rozemyne speculated that using one of
the temple’s divine instruments rather than her schtappe might have been the
reason—or the fact that we were performing a winter ceremony in the spring.”
“Were you disappointed, Mother? I know how
much you wanted to see it.”
Magdalena had not been able to participate in
the previous Dedication Ritual, since she had needed to stay at the palace to
complete administrative work. She had heard about it from the royals who did
attend, though, and their descriptions had made her declare that she would one
day see it for herself.
“That said,” Magdalena continued, her red eyes
narrowing into a mischievous smile, “one of the chalices did glow the same
divine red, and we witnessed the most wonderfully fantastical sight as the
light shimmered up into the sky.”
“I knew it! Something did
happen!” Hildebrand exclaimed, in high spirits once again. “Please tell me
more, Mother.”
Just as Magdalena had said, the pillar of red
seen during the winter Dedication Ritual had not made a second appearance—but
that did not mean she had nothing to report. As the participants had gradually
begun to pray in sync, they had started to feel as though they were becoming
one. Entrusting themselves to the flow of mana had actually been quite
comforting. Hearing the delight in his mother’s voice made Hildebrand resent
the age restrictions that had kept him from attending as well.
“It was my first time performing a religious
ceremony with so many in attendance,” Magdalena continued, “and I must admit,
the joy it brought me was indescribable. Even the exhaustion afterward was
pleasant enough.”
Several of the participants had apparently
collapsed during the previous ritual, so Rozemyne had ended its spring repeat
much sooner. Thanks to her consideration, none of the nobles had passed out
from a lack of mana.
“That is not to say that nobody
collapsed, though,” Magdalena noted. “The mana flowed so quickly that
the Sovereign temple’s blue priests and shrine maidens were unable to stop in
time. Rozemyne was very troubled, as she had already told them that they did
not have enough mana to keep up.”
It was only natural that there would be a huge
mana disparity between priests who had never compressed their mana before, and
the aubs and retainers who supported their duchies. Even in Ehrenfest’s temple,
Rozemyne was said to perform the Dedication Ritual separately from the local
blue priests.
“I suppose it could not be helped, as the
Sovereign temple has never before performed the Dedication Ritual with nobles,”
Magdalena said with a laugh. She believed that the Sovereign temple had gotten
too cocksure ever since its discovery of a means to find the next Zent. It had
made demand after demand of the royal family... but its humiliation during the
ceremony had satisfied her desire for vengeance.
After dinner, the mother and son moved from
the dining hall to a parlor. Arthur prepared them both tea, after which
Hildebrand cleared the room; it had been such an aggressively turbulent
Archduke Conference for the royal family that they had no shortage of
confidential matters to discuss. Even the least serious of them required
privacy and the use of sound-blocking magic tools.
Hildebrand gripped one such tool, then looked
at Magdalena, who was leisurely enjoying the aroma of her tea. “Did it work?”
he asked in a low voice. “Did we strengthen everyone’s impression of Rozemyne
as a saint, and demonstrate that she is special enough to be adopted by the
king?”
“Quite. The ritual alone would have sufficed,
but then she repeated a prayer that would make it easier for everyone to brew
their own rejuvenation potions. The events that followed were not part of our
plan, but they were exceedingly convenient; seeing the chalice shine green must
have erased any lingering doubts from the minds of the nonbelievers. Everyone
should now agree that Ehrenfest should not be permitted to keep her to
themselves.”
Rozemyne had not only reinforced the fact that
her religious ceremonies produced bizarre phenomena, but also demonstrated that
she knew the words to a prayer that could rejuvenate gathering spots. Then, she
had caused a divine instrument to shine simply while attempting to share her
knowledge. It was all more than enough to warrant her reputation as a saint
used to speaking with the gods.
Magdalena continued, “Even without the
Grutrissheit, she belongs in the Sovereignty. Ehrenfest will consider it a
great loss, but few others will protest her adoption.”
Indeed, when it came to religious ceremonies,
Rozemyne had a wealth of wisdom and experience. Her mana capacity befitted a
Zent, and the translated slates from the underground archive indicated that,
because she had managed to enter every one of the Royal Academy’s shrines, she
was omni-elemental. Even if she could not become the country’s next ruler, her
mana would greatly benefit future generations of the royal family.
“I find it so very hard to believe that she is
the same young woman who requested a book room as a prerequisite for her
marriage...” Magdalena said with a sigh, then sipped at her tea.
Hildebrand picked up his cup as well, taking
care to hold it as his mother was holding hers. “Rozemyne simply does not want
to marry Sigiswald,” he said, then took a sip himself.
Rozemyne had teared up and started trembling
midway through her private conversation with Sigiswald in the underground
archive. That she had given him such an impossible condition was proof enough
that she wanted to avoid marrying him at all costs.
“We are fortunate that Aub Ehrenfest agreed to
do away with that request,” Magdalena said.
“But, um... has Father really approved of
this? We mean to end Rozemyne’s engagement to Wilfried, so...”
Rozemyne’s current engagement had already
received the king’s support, and the king’s word was absolute. Were they really
able to pair her with someone else? If so, Hildebrand wondered, would it be
possible for him to cancel his own engagement? So many questions ran through
his mind.
Magdalena set down her cup and gave a light
shrug. “He did not object, as this new arrangement is the most peaceful way to
resolve our problems. Lord Wilfried might have been able to join Lady Rozemyne
in the Sovereignty as her prince consort, were Ehrenfest more powerful, but Aub
Ehrenfest was clear that the role would prove too much for his son. I expect
that, with his duchy’s low population, he wished not to lose any more talented
nobles.”
As far as Magdalena knew, Ehrenfest’s sudden
rise through the ranks was largely due to Rozemyne, and its most talented
individuals were among the younger generation.
She went on, “Aub Ehrenfest displayed a
willingness to swallow the demands put to him, as one would expect of a lesser
duchy... but one of the young scholars with him objected, introduced his own
terms, and displayed an intention to negotiate.”
After receiving so many requests from the
other duchies for Rozemyne to be made the High Bishop of the Sovereign temple,
Sigiswald and the Zent had made the suggestion to Ehrenfest. The aub and his
retainers had said not a word in response, merely looking troubled, until one
young scholar had dared to protest.
“That is out of the question,” he had said
with a calm and dazzling smile. “The first Zent was a High Bishop—and, for some
time, so were those who followed. Ehrenfest honors this by selecting its own
High Bishops from among its archduke candidates. Likewise, should a temple
under the royal family’s jurisdiction not be overseen by a member of the royal
family? I would suggest Prince Hildebrand. Have him serve as High Bishop until
he comes of age. If you wish to know what he will need to study in preparation,
I will explain; I am already supervising the education of a future High Bishop.”
The royal family had just proposed moving an
Ehrenfest archduke candidate to the Sovereign temple, so they were in no
position to refuse to send one of their own as well.
“So I would need to endure the temple on top
of moving to Ahrensbach...?” Hildebrand asked. He was treated so poorly
compared to his elder brothers, who were both getting to stay as royals. Was he
really so inferior in his father’s eyes?
“I would never allow that to happen,”
Magdalena declared, comforting her son with kind eyes. Her warmth made him feel
safe, though he still spoke quietly as he said...
“Must I marry into Ahrensbach...?”
Hildebrand wanted to hear the same words of
reassurance—that his mother would never let him be taken—but she gave him a dry
smile. “That is a royal decree, I am afraid.”
“It unnerves me to think that Detlinde is my
future mother-in-law. And will I really be able to get along with an archduke
candidate raised by someone like her?”
He had only briefly heard Detlinde’s voice
when they were in the underground archive, and most of her other remarks he had
only learned about from other people, but that was still enough for him to
gauge what kind of a person she was. And then there was the ordonnanz from
Ahrensbach expressing her refusal to participate in the Dedication Ritual.
Still, he could not openly refuse a royal decree. His mother was the only one
to whom he could express his unease.
Magdalena stood up at once and gently embraced
the seated prince. “Everything is going to be alright. I will eliminate Lady
Detlinde before you must leave for Ahrensbach. Her fiancé, Lord Ferdinand,
would normally be expected to keep a close eye on her and prevent her from
committing such malicious acts, but I see no reason to count on him for that.”
Her tone became more forceful as she continued, “He must know better than
anyone that her misdeeds will affect him as well once they are married, and
that he was expected to train her before he was locked into such a miserable
fate—but an entire half year has passed, and she remains so unruly.”
Magdalena went on to list Detlinde’s many
misdoings, chastising Ferdinand all the while for having allowed them to
happen. In her words, he did not understand the hearts of women and was much
too careless when it came to taking care of others. His shortcomings were not
just with the opposite sex, though—he was the kind of person who would refuse
to interact with most people in general.
“Let me be clear,” she said, “Lord Ferdinand
is an attractive man, he obtained prodigious grades, and his strength as a
knight is undeniable. From afar, he would appear to be the perfect man. He can
negotiate, manipulate factions, and devise plots so malicious that nobody would
wonder why he is called the Lord of Evil... but that is all. He is an
emotionless husk of a man, incapable of engaging with others on a personal
level.”
Hildebrand met his mother’s vicious character
analysis with wide eyes. Her description of Ferdinand was so far removed from
all the positive things that Rozemyne had said about him during tea parties and
over lunch.
“Um, Mother... Could you be mistaking him for
someone else? He was Rozemyne’s mentor, was he not?”
“He was, but I am not mistaken. Lord Ferdinand
must have made his retainers look after Lady Rozemyne on his behalf.” She
paused, then sincerely announced, “That man could never raise a young child.
Never.” He was apparently so strict and unforgiving that any child in his care
would wither before they ever had a chance to grow.
“Still, Rozemyne made his safety one of the
conditions for her adoption, did she not? Does she not hold him close to her
heart, then?” She would need to have strong feelings for him to have made such
a demand during negotiations with the royal family.
Magdalena nodded, looking unsatisfied.
“Indeed, that appears to be the case. To be honest, when Prince Sigiswald told
me, I could not contain my shock; I never thought that anyone but Aub Ehrenfest
would care for Lord Ferdinand as family.”
Ferdinand must have been receiving the most
unfortunate treatment in Ahrensbach; why else would Rozemyne have found it
necessary to petition the royal family, beseeching them to improve his living
conditions and spare him from punishment by association?
“Mother, I want to be the next Zent. Then I
won’t have to go to Ahrensbach, correct? It must be a terrible place if
Rozemyne had to resort to such means.”
“I will stop at nothing to correct Ahrensbach
before your move there, all so that you can live without fear,” Magdalena said,
still embracing him tenderly. “However, you cannot become the Zent.”
“Why not?”
“Even if you started now, there would not be
enough time to prepare you. We are already in such dire straits that we can
barely wait a year for Rozemyne’s adoption. Meanwhile, you do not have enough
elements, nor have you even enrolled at the Royal Academy. How long do you
believe it would take you to obtain the necessary qualifications?
Yurgenschmidt’s collapse will not wait for you to grow up. But even those
reasons are only secondary. Most important of all, if we do adopt Rozemyne next
year, and she successfully obtains the Grutrissheit... she
will become the next Zent.”
There could not be two Zents at once—and if
the young Prince Hildebrand, son of King Trauerqual, came to be recognized as a
Zent candidate, the subsequent contest for the throne would divide the country.
“Neither the current Zent nor I will allow the
royal family to be disturbed during the reign of a new queen, especially one
whose engagement we canceled and whom we forced into power for our own reasons.
As a royal yourself, you must not introduce such instability.”
The prince hung his head at his mother’s harsh
words. Though he knew that she spoke true, he did not want to believe her.
“Mother, Rozemyne is sickly—she couldn’t
endure the harsh duties of a Zent. She needs someone to support her. I just
want to help.”
Hildebrand already knew from seeing his
father’s exhaustion that the obligations of the throne would prove too much for
Rozemyne. A girl who was sickly enough to collapse at tea parties could never
be expected to rule. Just as the law required archduchesses to take husbands
from among the country’s archducal families for support, he believed that a
queen would need to marry someone qualified to be a Zent.
“You are right to be concerned, Hildebrand,
but Prince Sigiswald is best suited to support her—as both a fiancé and a
husband. It is not your place to intervene.”
“I am sure that Sigiswald made Rozemyne hate
him...” Hildebrand grumbled, his lips pursed in dissatisfaction. “I would show
her so much more kindness.”
Magdalena gave her son a scrutinizing look. “I
realize that your time with Lady Rozemyne has made you rather fond of her, but
you must not think above your station. You are engaged to Lady Letizia and must
learn to cope with your emotions better.”
No matter the extent of the prince’s
displeasure, royal decrees were set in stone. The only person who could
overturn his and Rozemyne’s engagements was the Zent.
By becoming the Zent, Hildebrand thought, I could save Rozemyne from being forced into a marriage she doesn’t
want and from having to take the throne. I also wouldn’t need to move to
Ahrensbach.
The prince wriggled out of his mother’s
embrace. “If this really is so urgent, then shouldn’t the entire royal family
be working toward it?”
“We were able to gather mana during the recent
Dedication Ritual, but our duties do not end there. Even now, we are unlikely
to have enough leeway for us all to devote ourselves. And even if we did... you
will not obtain your schtappe until your third year at the Royal Academy.”
“My... third year?”
“There has been a change to the Royal
Academy’s curriculum. You will only be able to obtain the schtappe you will
need to enter the shrines after Lady Rozemyne has already come of age.”
But that means I would never make it in time. Why
is Father not even giving me a chance?!
Hildebrand swallowed down his dissatisfaction
with another gulp of tea; he knew that no matter what he said, the others in
his family wouldn’t listen. His feelings did not fade, however; instead, they
sat festering in the pit of his stomach.
And with that, their mother-son dinner came to
an end.
After the Archduke Conference—which had proven
to be especially tumultuous for both the royal family and the third prince
personally—Hildebrand returned to his usual routine. He was going to be
training with Raublut, the Sovereign knight commander, for the first time in
quite a while. The Knight’s Order had been busy with guard duty throughout the
duration of the conference, so the prince had merely been training with his
guard knights between breakfast and going to the underground archive.
Hildebrand and Raublut started with a
practical review of the fundamentals before finally crossing blades. Their
exchange was only brief, though; Raublut soon grimaced and demanded that they
stop.
“Your bladework is off,” he said. “What in the
world happened? No amount of training will stick with you today.”
Hildebrand went with Raublut to the resting
area, still carrying his heavy sword. He had thought that he was successfully
hiding his emotions, so he was frustrated to have been found out so easily.
The prince’s head attendant, Arthur, was
surprised to see his charge return so early. Still, he served the pair some
tea.
Raublut drank from his cup. “So, what has you
looking so down?”
“I... cannot say.”
Hildebrand was unable to admit his reluctance
to marry into Ahrensbach. The thought of Detlinde being his mother-in-law was
depressing beyond compare, but he could not reveal that he was searching for a
way to escape his current engagement. To do that would be to oppose a royal
decree.
He also couldn’t say that Rozemyne was closest
to becoming the next Zent; the royal family was keeping such information from
their own retainers, so discussing it openly was unthinkable. His beliefs that
Sigiswald was a poor match for Rozemyne and that he himself would do much
better as her husband were also out of the question.
The third prince wanted nothing more than to
speed up his mana compression, circle the Royal Academy’s shrines with his
father and Sigiswald, and meet the requirements for him to become the next Zent
with Rozemyne by his side. He would need to manage it before his coming of age,
but it would secure him the power to cancel his own engagement and free
Rozemyne from hers.
But there was a problem—because of the recent
change to the Royal Academy’s curriculum, he would now obtain his schtappe in
his third year rather than his first, by which point Rozemyne would already be
of age, and trying to become the Zent would be pointless.
Unable to voice his true opinions, Hildebrand
puffed out his cheeks and changed the subject. He was already frustrated that
everyone kept asking him questions about such sensitive subjects.
“I was just wondering what Schlaftraum’s
flowers are,” he said.
Raublut shot his head up to look at the
prince. “Excuse me?” He seemed unable to keep up with the sudden turn in their
conversation, and seeing the shock on his face made Hildebrand smile.
“Hortensia asked Detlinde about them at the
Royal Academy, in the library’s archive. Do you like them, Raublut? It seems
they can only be found in Ahrensbach. What are they like?” Hildebrand
remembered how surprised he had been to learn that the brawny knight commander
had a soft spot for flowers—and that he liked ones from Ahrensbach, of all
places.
“Oh. She did, did she?” Raublut paused, then
adopted the smile that nobles often wore to hide their unrest. His eyes
wandered the room; then, after searching for his next words, he said,
“Schlaftraum’s flowers are... white. And sweet-scented. I do like them, yes,
but they are hard to find. She must have wanted to know whether they were
blooming this year.”
Was it rare for them to bloom? Hildebrand
cocked his head at the Sovereign knight commander. “Were you not from
Gilessenmeyer? How do you know about a flower that blooms only in Ahrensbach?”
A distant look in his eyes, Raublut reached up
to touch the faded scar above his cheek. Hildebrand got the impression that it
had something to do with his response; the knight commander’s expression was
one of a man still mourning a loss.
“Remembering something?” Hildebrand prompted.
“They were a favorite of the lady of a villa
to which I was assigned directly after coming of age. It had a greenhouse in
one corner, in which the flowers bloomed. Not even the lady herself could say
when they first appeared, but generations had treasured them. However... I was
reassigned not even five years later. The villa has now been closed, and it no
longer has a lady.”
Perhaps the flowers had come from an
Ahrensbach archduke candidate who married into the royal family, Hildebrand
thought. The civil war had taken place before he was born, but he had heard
about villas needing to be closed down after many of the royals were purged.
Raublut was surely referring to one of those.
“Now, my old memories aside...” Raublut said,
“I would hear your troubles, Prince Hildebrand. If you remain as you are, then
your studies will suffer as well as your bladework.” He glanced toward Arthur.
“I am not the only one who is worried about you.”
Indeed, Arthur looked concerned as well.
Despite the prince’s best efforts to change the subject, they were now back
where they had started. Raublut was even jokingly acting offended that
Hildebrand would ask questions while refusing to answer any himself.
The young man felt compelled to oblige them...
but how? He couldn’t say that he didn’t want to marry into Ahrensbach, nor was
he at liberty to say that Rozemyne was closest to becoming the next Zent, or
that the king was going to adopt her. And, for obvious reasons, he couldn’t
declare that he thought he would make a better husband for Rozemyne than anyone
else. At most, he could complain about the change to the Royal Academy’s
curriculum.
“I was hoping to obtain my schtappe as soon as
possible, but Father has changed the Royal Academy’s lesson plan. That has
soured my mood a little.”
“As soon as possible, hm...?” Raublut
repeated, his eyes wide. He then squinted at Hildebrand and scoffed. “You are a
prince. You can open the door to the Farthest Hall whenever you please.”
“Truly?!” Hildebrand exclaimed—just as Arthur
barked out a protest.
“Are you not the Sovereign knight commander?!
How could you say such a thing?!”
Raublut raised a hand to silence the head
attendant. “However, the Zent must have changed the
curriculum for your sake, Prince Hildebrand. You would do well to recognize
your father’s act of compassion.”
“What...?” Hildebrand asked. How had it been
anything of the sort? He wanted to become a Zent candidate before Rozemyne came
of age; then he would put a stop to both of their engagements. To those ends,
he needed to get his schtappe right away. How was the change of curriculum
anything but an obstruction?
Raublut carefully explained, “We have learned
that it is best to compress one’s mana to the fullest extent before obtaining a
schtappe. One should also pray to the gods to gain their divine protections and
more elements. That is why the curriculum was changed, and it must have
happened so suddenly because the Zent wishes for you to obtain the best
schtappe that you can.”
Arthur nodded, relieved. “Prince Hildebrand,
the knight commander speaks the truth. Please understand that King Trauerqual
has done this for you.”
Hearing “the best schtappe” gave Hildebrand
pause. His mother had said during a conversation between royals that visiting
the Royal Academy’s small shrines and obtaining the divine protections of all
the subordinate gods would grant one the protections of the primary gods as
well. He wasn’t very skilled when it came to transcribing texts, so he had
mostly spent his time in the archive replicating maps.
Will visiting the shrines
give me more elements? the prince wondered. Maybe
he would be able to become the next Zent after all.
“Does this mean that, assuming I obtained
every element through prayer and mana compression, Father would not stop me
from getting my schtappe?”
Raublut nodded. “You certainly would do well
to compress your mana and obtain new elements alongside the Zent. I will speak
to him when the time is right.”
Hildebrand grinned from ear to ear; he knew
from his long-term relationship with Raublut that the knight commander was
being sincere. Arthur likewise smiled and thanked the man for his
consideration.
“It was nothing special,” Raublut said,
shaking his head and returning the smile. He then gestured to a nearby knight,
who came forward and presented Arthur with a box. “Inside are new learning
materials offered to us by Ehrenfest, namely books and toys designed to help
with memorizing the names of the gods. They are apparently one of the secret
reasons why the duchy’s grades rose so abruptly.”
Ehrenfest would now be selling the resources
to other duchies, so copies had been offered to the royal family. The king had
ordered that they be given to Hildebrand to help him with his studies, and the
inspection of them had just recently concluded.
“Lady Magdalena said that we should wait until
you enter the Royal Academy before giving them to you,” Arthur explained, “but
there is no harm in getting a head start with one’s studies. Use these
materials well; knowing the names of the gods is essential to the prayers you
will need.”
Arthur then handed the prince an Ehrenfest
book. Hildebrand was used to them by now. He thumbed through it and saw the
most splendid illustrations alongside easy-to-understand explanations. Perhaps
these resources would help him get closer to Rozemyne.
I’m going to learn the names of the gods, pray to
them, obtain new elements, and ask Father for my schtappe.
Hildebrand was glad; at last, he had a path to
follow. After wandering aimlessly through the darkness, someone had given him a
light.
Raublut grinned and rose to his feet, sword in
hand. “Now, Prince Hildebrand—let us resume our training and see if your blade
is as straight as your gaze.”
“Right!”
After returning the book to Arthur, Hildebrand
took up his own sword and chased after the knight commander.
An Unwanted Marriage
It happened at the end of winter, a few days
after the Royal Academy’s graduation ceremony. I was still in complete
disbelief when my retainer came to fetch me from the Drewanchel Dormitory.
“Lady Adolphine, Lord Ortwin is requesting a
discussion. The archducal couple will also be present.”
After attending the Interduchy Tournament and
the subsequent graduation ceremony as Prince Sigiswald’s fiancée, I wanted to
know more about the magic circle that had momentarily appeared during Lady
Detlinde’s dedication whirl, as well as the reason why the Sovereign temple’s
High Bishop was proclaiming her to be a Zent candidate. There were two obvious
sources for the information I sought—the royal family and the Sovereign
temple—but then there was Ehrenfest as well; Lady Eglantine had apparently
summoned Lady Rozemyne when gathering her own intelligence.
The matter was sensitive enough that the royal
family had decided not to keep me informed, and that was how I expected things
to stay. That was why I had asked Ortwin to contact Ehrenfest, on the off
chance that he might make a discovery of some kind.
“He actually learned something from Lord
Wilfried...?” I asked, stunned.
It was late enough that the graduation
ceremony had concluded, and everyone was preparing to return to their home
duchies. I had not thought that Ehrenfest would respond to my brother’s
investigation, let alone that they would tell us anything. Had it been another
duchy inviting someone from Drewanchel, we would have refused without fail. It
seemed that Ortwin had established a much closer bond with Ehrenfest than I
realized.
“I shall head to the meeting room at once,” I
said.
If the Sovereign High Bishop was correct, and
Lady Detlinde went on to become the next Zent, then the current royal family
would inevitably be eliminated. That, in turn, would violate the terms of the
engagement contract between the king and Drewanchel, rendering it null and
void.
My wish might be granted after all!
I had spent years working tirelessly to become
the next Aub Drewanchel, only for the Zent to swoop in and crush my dreams.
After the civil war, he had sought to strengthen his support base through a
marriage with the greater duchy Drewanchel, so I was now having to marry one of
the princes instead.
Oh, how many times have I wished that I were not
born the daughter of a first wife?
The archduke had decided that the engagement
would benefit Drewanchel, and it was my duty as a member of the archducal
family to obey. Everything was already set in stone, even if one of my suitors
had wanted Lady Eglantine’s hand in marriage purely so that he could obtain the
throne and the other thought nothing of me at all.
To be frank, I loathed my engagement so
terribly that I would do anything to escape it—even support Lady Detlinde, of
all people, becoming the next Zent.
“Ortwin, what did Ehrenfest say?” I asked upon
my arrival in the meeting room. My younger brother was already seated with our
parents.
“Sister, if you would,” he replied, then held
out a sound-blocker.
I accepted the magic tool and squeezed it;
this was a discussion that could change the very course of my life. Hopeful, I gazed
straight into Ortwin’s light-brown eyes.
“Wilfried was sworn to silence, as expected,”
he said. “He did not provide any details, but it would seem that simply causing
that magic circle to appear does not make Lady Detlinde the next Zent. It will
not affect your marriage to the prince.”
“I see,” Father said. “Well done, Ortwin.”
My parents were both relieved, but I was
immensely disappointed. That I had dared to hope in the first place made the
pain all the greater.
“How unfortunate...” I muttered. “If she had
taken the throne, it would have been the perfect opportunity to nullify my
engagement.”
“Adolphine, are you still going on about that?
Your engagement has already been formally arranged.”
“Oh my. Were you not the one who described it
as a contract between Drewanchel and the Zent? It seems only natural that
someone else taking the throne should require us to rework or even cancel it.”
Mine was the perfect political marriage:
Drewanchel would support the next Zent, who would be more accommodating to our
duchy in return. But if something happened to stop Prince Sigiswald from taking
the throne, then our union would serve no purpose at all. Our priority would
instead be to forge a relationship with the new ruler.
“You are marrying a royal prince and the heir
apparent—what more could you ask for?” my father said. “I cannot even begin to
fathom the reason for your displeasure.”
“Then let me be clear: I am marrying Prince
Sigiswald, a man whose spoiled upbringing has made him repulsively arrogant and
who looks down on others without even realizing it. Worse still, nobody can
even mention these glaring faults to him. His standing makes it too much of a
risk.”
“Sister!”
“Adolphine, you...”
I had merely told the truth, but Ortwin was
thunderstruck, Father was speechless, and Mother was furrowing her brow.
“My treatment as his fiancée has been far from
ideal,” I said. “I doubt that will change when I become his wife. Do you really
expect me to squeal with joy simply because I am marrying a prince? Just how
witless do you think I am? From the bottom of my heart, I would welcome anyone
to take my place.”
For as long as Lady Eglantine had yet to
choose a partner, my now husband-to-be had completely ignored me, despite my
being a candidate for the engagement. That had scarcely changed even now that I
was formally his fiancée. Prince Sigiswald did only the bare minimum expected
of him; I would receive much better treatment engaged to an archduke candidate
from another duchy.
“Fear not, though,” I continued. “I understand
my position and do not intend to flee from this engagement. My feelings about
the matter have no relevance, as you know all too well, so I will carry out my
duties as an archducal family member. If the terms of our contract were
violated, I would do my utmost to have it nullified, but as it stands, I am
beaten down once again.”
On that note, I stood up and briskly left the
meeting room. I knew that I had disrespected the royal family, but I was in no
mood to hear anyone’s complaints about it.
Winter had passed, and spring was soon to
follow. There were but a few more days before the Archduke Conference, so I was
moving the last of my belongings to Prince Sigiswald’s villa and managing the
preparation of the room I would move into after our wedding. Seeing my new home
slowly come together filled me with neither giddiness nor anticipation for my
future.
“Your disinterest is showing clearly on your
face, Lady Adolphine.”
“You must be mistaken, Oderkunst. For security
reasons, only a limited number of people can enter this villa, and only for a
limited amount of time. I will not be able to rely on Drewanchel personnel
after my wedding, and there is not much time before the Starbind Ceremony. I am
simply worried about whether everything will go as planned.”
Oderkunst was a Sovereign scholar from
Drewanchel, due to become my retainer after the Starbinding. His little sister
Lisbeth served as my attendant, so I felt more at ease with him than I did with
other Sovereign nobles.
“I have heard no shortage of complaints from
Lisbeth, but if you insist,” Oderkunst replied, teasingly raising an eyebrow at
me. I would need to scold the girl for leaking sensitive information, but it
was heartening to know that at least one of my Sovereign retainers knew how I
truly felt.
“More importantly...” I said, “what business
do you have here? I was told that I would not be introduced to my Sovereign
retainers until after the ceremony. You are not serving me yet, are you? Is it
okay for you to be in my room like this?”
“I am but a messenger,” he replied. “Prince
Sigiswald wishes to see you. He said that I was a fine choice for the task,
since I am to become your retainer in ‘some few days.’”
The fact that Oderkunst and my other future
retainers were going to enter my service after the Starbind Ceremony meant that
they were having to get ready to move their living quarters on top of their
usual preparations for the Archduke Conference. They had no free time to speak
of, and it would normally be unthinkable to treat those who had not yet been
formally assigned to me as though they were already my retainers.
It repulses me that Prince Sigiswald assumes he
is busier than everyone else, and that he would casually make demands of
someone who has not yet begun to serve me.
“I wonder what news could inspire him to
summon his busy bride-to-be so soon before our Starbinding...” I mused aloud.
“I can only hope he has wonderful news—perhaps that the ceremony is being
canceled, or at the very least delayed.”
“Lady Adolphine!” Lisbeth cried, her lips
pursed.
I sighed and waved away her protest. “Everyone
here is from Drewanchel. Allow me this brief opportunity to vent before the
wedding.”
After selecting several of my already busy
retainers to accompany me, I went to answer the first prince’s summons. This
little inconvenience would only delay our work. It was just like him not to
give any advance notice or show us even the slightest concern.
Whatever shall I do if this is about something
trifling?
I pondered that question as I went to the
parlor where Prince Sigiswald awaited me, but my fear was soon put to rest. His
dark-green eyes softened into a smile as he delivered some news of critical
importance.
“Nahelache has given birth, and we do not want
my mana to change while the baby is so young. Thus, our intimacy must be
delayed for some time.”
It was unbelievable. I was at a complete loss
for words. The shock was so great that my mind went blank.
What in the world does this prince think he’s
saying?
There was nothing strange about Lady Nahelache
giving birth before my wedding. It also made perfect sense that the news was
being kept private, as children were generally not made public until after they
were baptized. She had displayed none of the telltale signs of pregnancy during
the graduation ceremony, from which I could infer that at least a season had
passed since she gave birth. The prince had not said exactly how long our
“intimacy” would need to be postponed, but he surely intended to wait until his
mana no longer influenced the child.
It still made no sense, though. One would not
normally impregnate another wife so soon after becoming engaged to another, and
a man who did not want his fiancée to influence his mana would delay the entire
marriage. After all, it would make no sense to perform the Starbind Ceremony.
Was that what he meant to say? That our wedding is being delayed, not just our intimacy? Yes, that must be it. A
prince would never do something so incomprehensible.
“My apologies,” I said. “You meant to say that
our wedding is going to be delayed, but I misunderstood you. Fear
not—Drewanchel shan’t utter a word in complaint.”
This new development would require us to
significantly change our plans, so it was unfortunate that we had not been
informed after Lady Nahelache’s pregnancy was confirmed. Had we been told
sooner, I would have done everything in my power to accommodate the delay.
“I must inform my father of this urgent
news...” I said.
“But you are mistaken, Adolphine. You would do
well to pay closer attention when others are speaking to you. We are not
delaying our Starbind Ceremony, only the beginning of our life together.”
To think I went out of my way to let him pass
this off as a misunderstanding. Must I truly marry this man?
Had this foolishness come from my little
brother, Ortwin, rather than the first prince and future Zent, I would not have
hesitated to give him a thorough tongue-lashing. The entire situation was
insulting and absurd, but I still managed to stave off a frown and adopt a
polite smile.
“Pray tell,” I said, “why would you not abide
by tradition and postpone our Starbind Ceremony?”
It is outrageous that he would order me to become
his wife when he has no intention of treating me like one. There had better be
a truly compelling reason for this madness.
I was already being shown only the bare
minimum of courtesy, but now my husband-to-be was saying that he would not
treat me as a wife even after our Starbind Ceremony. How could anyone belittle
me so viciously?
Even now, Prince Sigiswald was oblivious to my
anger and humiliation; he looked at me as though I were a naive child and gave
a troubled smile. “I suppose you do not know, Adolphine. Ever since the civil
war, the royal family has been suffering from a mana shortage. We need as many
royals as we can get.”
“How does that explain your decision to cast
aside noble traditions and marry me by force? You understand that taking a new
wife while one’s mana cannot be changed is anything but proper, do you not?” It
concerned me so deeply that I was having to endure this farce in the first
place.
The prince looked even more troubled, as
though he had not expected my response. “Of course I understand. I am humbly
asking you to assist us nonetheless.”
I sincerely doubt that, and your “request” has
been anything but humble.
It was clear as day that Prince Sigiswald
expected me to obey his every command, and that he never considered anyone
else’s feelings, desires, or objections. He exuded arrogance born from a
privileged upbringing and would go the rest of his life without even realizing
it.
“If your circumstances really are so dire that
our marriage cannot be delayed a year, then show me some reasoning,” I
demanded. The mana shortage had apparently been an issue since the civil war,
but Ladies Nahelache and Eglantine had since joined the royal family. Even if
one of them was now tending to her newborn, they must have had more leeway than
before.
Sigiswald made no effort to disguise his
sorrow. “They are dire indeed. An ancient magic tool we had decided not to
supply until we had more mana to spare has collapsed.”
“It collapsed...?” I repeated. “Never before
have I heard about a magic tool collapsing simply because it was not supplied
with mana. It must have been close to a foundational...”
A shiver ran down my spine. A magic tool that
had been guarded by the royal family and stored in the royal palace since
ancient times had to have been a crucial pillar of support for the country.
“Indeed,” the prince said. “We must now
investigate every magic tool we stopped supplying and refill any on the verge
of collapse. That is why we require as many royals as we can secure—and the
hole left by Nahelache must be filled.”
In other words, now that his wife is unable to
carry out her duties as a royal, he wants me to pick up her slack.
My heart iced over. Even in the context of a
political marriage, there were more delicate ways to phrase the situation. Who
would agree to an already insulting engagement after being told that they were
needed as little more than a mana slave?
“Furthermore,” Prince Sigiswald continued,
“Rozemyne is going to bless our Starbind Ceremony as High Bishop. We have
cooperated with Ehrenfest and the Sovereign temple to make this happen; we
cannot afford to postpone it.”
“Lady Rozemyne, serving as the High Bishop?
This is news to me...”
Changing the active High Bishop was a very big
deal; why had Drewanchel not been informed? I asked what had inspired the
switch, which prompted the prince to give a breezy response.
“Do you recall the blessing that rained down
upon Eglantine and Anastasius during their graduation? We have since learned
that it came from Rozemyne.”
That blessing had sparked rumors that Prince
Anastasius was better suited to become the next king than Prince Sigiswald. I
knew that well, as I had been there to witness it. The royal family had
evidently asked Lady Rozemyne to serve as High Bishop to wash away any and all
doubts that the first prince was the best candidate to rule.
What childish idiocy.
Prince Sigiswald did not need to prove
himself; the king had already made him the heir to the throne, and the mere
chattering of outsiders would not change that. If nobles could so easily
overturn the decisions of royalty, then I would have escaped my engagement by
now.
“You would summon a student from another duchy
to serve as High Bishop for the Starbind Ceremony...?” I asked, astounded. “I
am opposed to this. I cannot imagine that Lady Rozemyne wants to be involved,
and it should go without saying that the Sovereign High Bishop will not
appreciate having his role taken from him. How do you intend to respond when
this worsens our already delicate relationship with the Sovereign temple?”
“Who knows? Anastasius proposed the idea, so
he is taking responsibility for it. I am unaware of the details.”
How irresponsible. It is your duty as his elder
brother to chastise him and declare that you need no such blessing!
Prince Sigiswald was always desperate to push
down his younger brother and elevate himself. Prince Anastasius may have
proposed the idea, but it was highly likely that he had only done so because of
the indirect pressure put on him by the first prince.
“In any case, that is the current state of
affairs,” Prince Sigiswald said. “The Starbind Ceremony will continue as
planned, but our life as a married couple will not begin for another year.”
Having said his piece, he then stood up with the smarmiest of grins. That was
his way of telling me to leave already.
I could never come to like such an arrogant man.
“Prince Sigiswald, I cannot approve of our
Starbind Ceremony being held this year when you have no intention of treating
me as your wife. Let us marry during the next Archduke Conference instead. I
will consult my father and send you a more formal response later. In the
meantime, please inform Lady Rozemyne that we are delaying the ceremony.”
The moment he heard my objection, Prince
Sigiswald turned to look at me, causing his soft blond hair to sway ever so
slightly. His dark-green eyes were wide with shock as he said, “Adolphine, did
you not hear me?”
He sat back down, no doubt intending to repeat
himself, so I rose to my feet and went to leave. There was no longer any value
in continuing this exchange; my father, Aub Drewanchel, would take care of the
rest. It did not matter whether my engagement was delayed—he would use the
opportunity to the benefit of our duchy.
“Oh, I heard every word,” I retorted as I made
for the door. “Your intentions to ignore noble customs, prioritize your own
convenience over everything else, and deprive me of the respect I deserve have
been conveyed in full.”
“That is just... I did not say that I would never treat you as my wife. That time will come. We simply
need to postpone, um... matters of the bedroom. I should not need to tell you
that you will one day be respected as my first wife.”
Had I not protested, Prince Sigiswald would
have concluded that the matter was officially settled and pressured others into
complying with it by saying that he had already obtained my agreement. Perhaps
such tricks would work on a woman raised to obey her husband, but I had trained
to become an archduchess and clash with the archdukes of other duchies. His
assumption that I would simply roll over for him would only complicate our life
together.
“I will not be looked down upon as a woman
cast aside by her husband,” I said. “At the very least, you will personally explain the circumstances to my parents and
retainers. If you make it clear that the delay of our marital duties is your
fault, not mine, then I will not be entirely unwilling to provide my support.”
Prince Sigiswald was staring at me, wide-eyed,
unable to form his next words. I might have been too intense, considering that
he was so used to everybody obeying him, but my entire life was on the line; I
would not bend.
How you set the stage is what matters most, as
they say.
So came the day of my Starbind Ceremony.
Father had grimaced when Prince Sigiswald explained the situation to him,
displeased with the break from tradition; but he had determined it best to
respect the royal family’s circumstances despite the extremely offensive nature
of their request. As I understood it, he had squeezed more than enough out of
the first prince as compensation for the inconvenience.
I expected nothing less from my father. He is as
reliable as ever.
Incidentally, he had also said that he now
understood why I could never love Prince Sigiswald. He remained of the opinion
that I needed to accept the union for its political advantages, but he had
muttered that I was “free to have my preferences.”
“There,” one of my attendants said. “All
ready. How beautiful you look, Lady Adolphine.”
“Adolphine, do away with that frown at once,”
my mother added. “You must not let your true feelings be known. Smile so
brightly that anyone would think you are the happiest bride in the world.”
“Yes, Mother.”
I stepped out of my room with Mother and my
attendants, who had prepared me for the ceremony. Father was waiting in the
entrance hall; he looked me over, then sighed.
“You are intelligent and a hard worker. I expect
you to remain tenacious even after joining the royal family. Feign obedience
when you must, and exploit Prince Sigiswald as much as you can for the benefit
of our duchy.”
“I shall do my best.”
“Then let us go.”
Our nobles showered me with congratulations
and words of encouragement as we left the Drewanchel Dormitory. Father escorted
me to the royal family’s waiting room, while our retainers surrounded us. One
of them was carrying an empty wooden box.
“Prince Sigiswald, we have arrived,” I
announced. He and his retainers were present, but the other members of the
royal family were nowhere to be seen. They were likely either waiting elsewhere
or already heading to the auditorium.
“First, the exchange of capes,” the first
prince replied.
My attendant undid my brooch, removed my
Drewanchel cape, then put both into the wooden box. I would no longer be able
to enter our dormitory freely.
Next, one of the prince’s attendants
approached us with another box, from which a separate cape was taken. This one
was black on both sides, identifying the wearer as royalty. Sovereign nobles
not of the royal family wore capes that were only black on the outside; the
inside would display the color of their home duchy.
My attendant draped the garment around my
shoulders, then fastened it with a brooch. The emerald green I was so used to
was replaced with the same inky black as the royal cape.
The sorrow of parting with Drewanchel and the
anxieties of entering a hopeless marriage seized my heart, but I swallowed them
down and put on the elegant smile of a greater duchy archduke candidate proud
to be engaged to a member of the royal family.
“Now then, let us head to the auditorium.”
Father took a step back, then knelt before me.
Part of me wanted to ask him, “What are you doing?” but then I realized—now
that I was wearing my black cape, I was formally the first wife of the future
king. It was only natural that an aub would show such reverence, but the sight
of my own father kneeling to me was thoroughly discomforting.
“Lady Adolphine, I pray for your happiness,”
he said.
“That gladdens me, Aub Drewanchel.”
After saying my farewells to Father and many
of my retainers, I participated in the Starbind Ceremony and received a
blessing from Lady Rozemyne. The blessing was fantastical, like nothing I had
ever seen before, and made me feel optimistic enough that I resolved to support
Yurgenschmidt as Prince Sigiswald’s first wife and a member of the royal
family.
As for putting that resolve into practice,
however...
The start of the Archduke Conference had seen
me thrust into an extraordinarily awkward position. Despite my marriage, I was
unable to socialize as a royal, for I had not attended any of the royal
family’s preparatory meetings. Nor was I allowed to participate in Drewanchel
meetings anymore.
Under normal circumstances, I would use this
time to rest and recuperate as my body became accustomed to the intimacy
inherent to marriage—but because those activities were being delayed, no such
break was necessary for me. I had simply been told not to leave the villa and
was placed under watch.
“They certainly are desperate to maintain
appearances...” I said.
“And who can blame them? Appearances are
important to nobles and royals alike,” Lisbeth replied while cleaning up after
breakfast. “How will you be spending today? You are a newlywed, after all.
Perhaps you could do some embroidery for your husband.”
“I shall consider such marital duties when I
am actually being treated as his wife. He married me for my mana, so perhaps I
should make him some rejuvenation potions or something of the like. It seems
best to brew them now, while I still have enough leeway.”
So, I summoned my new scholar Oderkunst and
informed him of my intentions. “That is not very wifely at all...” he said in
response.
“Ah, how alike siblings tend to be.”
Oderkunst exchanged a glance with Lisbeth, who
was standing behind me, and raised an eyebrow. Their exasperated looks forced
me to propose a compromise:
“Very well, then. I shall brew not just
rejuvenation potions, but also charms for my husband. I assume that is ‘wifely’
enough for you. It is my understanding that royals are allowed to repeat the
ritual for obtaining divine protections, meaning there is much to be gained
from praying as often as possible. Charms engraved with the sigils of the gods
should be of some use, no?”
“An excellent idea.”
Having obtained their approval, I changed into
my brewing attire and moved to the villa’s brewing room. My scholars brought
the relevant materials and recipes.
“I do not recognize this recipe from the Royal
Academy’s curriculum,” Oderkunst said.
“This potion primarily replenishes one’s
mana,” I explained. “Back when Lady Rozemyne performed her Dedication Ritual at
the Royal Academy, I was permitted to join as a royal fiancée. The rejuvenation
potion I received then was truly wonderful. I have been working to recreate it
ever since, and I believe that I am rather close.”
“May I take a closer look? Um, unless you
intend to keep it private, that is.”
Some recipes were unleashed unto the world,
while others were kept secret. I intended to keep this one between myself and
my retainers, much like Lady Rozemyne was doing with hers.
“You will need to keep it to yourself,” I
said, “but I plan to have you all use this recipe anyway. May we work together
to improve it even further.”
I showed Oderkunst and my other scholars the
recipe, then how to prepare the ingredients and wash the tools.
“Lady Adolphine, are you going to do your own
brewing?!” exclaimed the scholars of other duchies, but those from Drewanchel
answered swiftly on my behalf.
“But of course. Drewanchel is known for its
research; there, it is not at all unusual for archducal family members to
brew.”
“Lady Adolphine conducts her own research. We
scholars are here to prepare the rejuvenation potions she consumes on a daily
basis and other such details. It is essential that we understand her findings
on top of the ingredients and recipes she uses.”
The exchange reminded me that the archducal
families of other duchies seldom brewed.
I see... It certainly is
true that experienced retainers from one’s own duchy are important in the
Sovereignty. If not for the sage advice of my
retainers learned in the ways of both Drewanchel and the Sovereignty, it would
have taken ages for the two groups to come to understand one another.
“This is going to be your first time making
this particular potion, so I shall provide a demonstration,” I said.
“Henceforth, I will expect all rejuvenation potions to be made according to
this recipe.”
“Incidentally, her demonstrating means she
will permit no mistakes.”
“Oderkunst, I am not my father. Such
strictness does not suit me. I will permit three
mistakes before I lose patience.”
At once, the scholars all got serious. They
intently observed my hands and the recipe while I worked; then, after I was
done, one of them tested the potion I had produced.
“My mana is recovering at such tremendous
speed,” the scholar said, head cocked. “What about this recipe dissatisfies
you, Lady Adolphine?”
“It cannot yet compete with the potions that
Lady Rozemyne distributed. You may be impressed, but her recovery speed was far
superior. I wonder what ingredients she used...”
Oderkunst looked contemplative for a moment.
“Although any improvement would obviously be welcome, the speed of the
rejuvenation is not particularly important. One can drink a potion before bed
and then wake up fully replenished, so these would suffice on a day-to-day
basis.” It seemed to me that he was trying to say, “Please give it no more
thought.”
“That certainly is true,” I replied with a
nod. “Everyone, continue brewing until you have the recipe memorized. I will
make charms to gift to Prince Sigiswald. Oderkunst, do provide your
assistance.”
After giving instructions to my scholars, I
started working on the charms. I gave Oderkunst a sound-blocker, then started
drawing magic circles while keeping half an eye on the others.
“I am told that the royal family is
experiencing a severe mana crisis,” I said. “Why would you resist further
improvements to the potions?”
“The faster your mana replenishes, the harder
they will work you. You are better off using standard rejuvenation potions and
securing some time to rest.”
With our marital duties on hold, all that
Prince Sigiswald expected me to do was offer my mana to the royal family and
perform the administrative tasks that had once been entrusted to Lady
Nahelache. Oderkunst was clearly worried about me, and I concluded that it
would be best to heed his warning.
“Things are worse than I ever imagined,” I
muttered. “I will improve the rejuvenation potion in secret. Putting that
aside, Oderkunst—what news do you have of the Archduke Conference?”
“None at all. As your retainers, we are
confined to this villa with you. Something must be occurring outside that they
truly do not want you to know about.”
“Indeed. Someone has blocked my every attempt
to contact Father and the others. I did not expect to be put under lock and key
like this.” I sighed, then resumed my work on the magic circle. “Still, why was
I not born as Ortwin?”
“Would you care to elaborate?” Oderkunst
asked, cocking an eyebrow while he placed some Wind-rich materials before me.
He had deduced that I would need them after looking at my circle.
“Had I ended up in the same grade as Lady
Rozemyne, I expect that my student days would have been eventful and deeply
entertaining. Furthermore, men are at least allowed to pursue their dreams, are
they not?”
Even men could end up forced into political
marriages, but they were much less likely to find themselves engaged and en
route to another duchy in the blink of an eye. A man who had worked tirelessly
to become the next aub and achieved grades befitting the role would never have
been sent away from Drewanchel.
“In any case, what charm are you making?” Oderkunst
asked.
“This should answer your question,” I replied,
then drew a sigil.
“Lady Adolphine, I would ask that you not gift
your husband a charm dedicated to Jugereise the Goddess of Separation.”
“This is for my own purposes. I would never
present such an obvious weakness for him to exploit.”
My charm for Prince Sigiswald would be
dedicated to another god, though I was still trying to decide which. I was
caught between Gebordnung the Goddess of Order, so that he would cease
prioritizing his own convenience above all else when making decisions, or
Erwachlehren the God of Guidance, in the hope that he might improve his
personality more generally and actually become suited to rule.
“I would rather you not make it for yourself
either,” Oderkunst said, but I pretended not to hear him.
I remained in isolation for the remainder of
the Archduke Conference. Only on the final day was I allowed to leave the
villa, and only to give my farewells and observe the Dedication Ritual that was
apparently being held. I had asked why the ritual was happening to begin with,
but the other members of the royal family had merely smiled and said that they
would explain later. I was made to participate—and, once again, I was entirely
unprepared.
I spent the last few moments of the conference
aghast, unable to believe the rumors that were flying about. Never in my life
had I thought it would be so difficult to smile and pretend that I wasn’t
completely oblivious.
“Prince Sigiswald, I demand answers,” I said.
My scholars were just as shocked and already scrambling to collect as much
intelligence as they could. I, however, would go straight to the source.
“Ah, perfect timing. I was just about to tell
you the decisions we made.”
I was taken to a separate room and arrived to
find that the prince’s second wife, Lady Nahelache, was there already. She wore
a bubbly smile, but I simply could not get along with her. The way we lived,
our perspectives on things, and the goals we worked toward were wholly
incompatible.
“The king will adopt Rozemyne so that she can
obtain the Grutrissheit for us,” Prince Sigiswald informed me. “I shall take
her as my third wife once she comes of age.”
What nonsense is he saying this time?
“My apologies, but could you elaborate? How
did that come to pass?”
“While you were leisurely resting in my villa,
the Archduke Conference became quite frantic.”
It was almost comical to hear such words from
someone who had stationed guards around the villa to keep me from leaving.
Rather than being made to “rest,” I would have liked to be included in this
ridiculous plan. Instead, I was only finding out about it after the fact.
I simply do not have the resources and people I
need. I am at an overwhelming disadvantage here.
“Prince Sigiswald, allow me to confirm
something: Am I supposed to feel respected as your wife when you are doing
things like this?”
“Oh? I thought it obvious that, as the future
Zent, I must involve myself with anyone who can obtain the Grutrissheit. My
kingship is the foundation of our contract with Drewanchel, you know. But of
course, if you, my first wife, were to secure it for me instead, that would
definitely be ideal.”
In other words, “Don’t complain unless you can
get me the Grutrissheit.” Do you not realize that, as Yurgenschmidt’s next
ruler, you should acquire it yourself and through your own power?
Lady Rozemyne obtaining the Grutrissheit, the
literal mark of the sovereign, would make her the next
Zent, not Prince Sigiswald. Was he not ashamed by the mere thought of taking
her as his third wife to become king?
“In any case,” he said, “this matter has been
settled.”
“Nothing matters more than making Prince
Sigiswald the next Zent,” Lady Nahelache added, still wearing the same spirited
smile. “I will do everything I can to help.” One could guess that she cared
only about preserving her current lifestyle.
“I assume that Lady Rozemyne and Aub Ehrenfest
agreed, then?” I asked.
“They had various conditions, but we managed
to come to an amicable agreement. The experience taught me that Anastasius was
entirely correct: Rozemyne’s upbringing in the temple of a lesser duchy has
made her almost impossible to converse with. Trying to deal with her was
exhausting. She has no common sense whatsoever.”
She must have more than you, and she must be
easier to communicate with.
Prince Sigiswald shook his head and shrugged,
seeking some agreement, but his words irritated me so much that I responded
only with a cold glare.
“It must have been very unpleasant dealing
with such a strange child,” Lady Nahelache said, coming to the prince’s aid. I
could venture that his experience had been nothing compared to what Lady
Rozemyne had been through, having to stomach the royal family’s attempts to
bully her into submission.
“We must spend the next year preparing to
welcome her as the king’s adopted daughter,” Prince Sigiswald explained. “I
would appreciate your assistance, Adolphine, but perhaps you would find it too
difficult. It was only recently that you became a royal yourself.”
Just how scant is your common sense? The problem
is not how demanding the task might be but the fact that you are attempting to
unload it onto me in the first place. How do you not realize this?
I was struck with the urge to confront the
first prince’s tutor over his evident failure to do his job, but I quickly
suppressed it. “You are not adopting Lady Rozemyne—the Zent is. Preparing for
her entrance to the royal family should thereby fall to his
first wife. If you are not marrying her right away, would it not give the wrong
impression for you to welcome her?”
“Yes, she is going to join the royal family as
the king’s adopted daughter, but we must have the public believe that we are
welcoming her as my third wife. Anastasius is much closer to Rozemyne than I,
and we do not want the country’s nobles to assume that he
will marry her when she comes of age.”
In other words, he did not want Prince
Anastasius to take her from him as he had taken Lady Eglantine. He was no doubt
acting on a strong impulse to keep the one who would obtain the Grutrissheit
within his sphere of power.
Hm... It would seem that this arrangement for
Lady Rozemyne to marry Prince Sigiswald is still no more than a verbal
agreement.
Had it been the Zent’s will, then Prince
Sigiswald would not have needed to consider his brother an enemy. My heart went
out to Lady Rozemyne; like me, she was at the whim of the first prince’s
arrogance. I could not help feeling that there was an unspoken companionship
between us.
If she does end up joining the royal family...
perhaps we could do research together.
That raised my spirits a little. At the very
least, I would ensure that Lady Rozemyne lived in relative comfort until she
came of age and was forced to move into Prince Sigiswald’s villa.
“I do not mind providing my assistance,” I
said, “but as an adopted daughter, will she not receive her own villa? I
wonder, which one will she be given? The ones in the Sovereignty are all in
use, are they not?”
“We plan to give her a villa on the Royal
Academy’s grounds. Raublut has just been given the key so that he can
investigate it. In the process, the building will be furnished, cleaned, and
the like. It should not take as long to prepare as a normal villa would. Plus,
there is its proximity to the library that Lady Rozemyne is so fond of.”
Does the Royal Academy’s library not close after
the Archduke Conference? Do they intend to keep it open year-round for her
sake?
In any case, Prince Sigiswald seemed fairly
invested in Lady Rozemyne now that he believed she could obtain the
Grutrissheit. Comparing her treatment to mine made me want to sigh, but once
again, I repressed my dissatisfaction.
The prince continued, “I expect the next year
to be quite taxing, but Rozemyne’s adoption should ease the burden on us all.
At the very least, she will make for an excellent source of mana.”
He was so consistently self-centered that my
head started to ache. I clenched my newly made charm and, without a moment’s
hesitation, began to pour my mana into it.
O Jugereise the Goddess of Separation, I beseech
you! Bring down your divine instrument and sever the foul ties that bind me so!
Schlaftraum’s Flowers
“Well, Solange, I am done for today. Let us
meet tomorrow as the Goddess of Light rises.”
“Take care, Hortensia. As the Goddess of Light
rises.”
After exchanging farewells with Solange, I
started toward the central building. Now that the students had returned to
their duchies, I would commute between my home and the Royal Academy instead of
using the library dormitory.
My current duties included organizing the
closed-stack archives and repairing damaged books—tasks we did not have time
for during the academic year. There was no shortage of work to be done either;
Schwartz and Weiss had been inactive for so long that many sections of the
library were now neglected. There were also plans for the royal family and
members of the Library Committee to start going through the documents in the
underground archive during the Archduke Conference, so we would need to prepare
for that as well.
I had only volunteered for this librarian job
at the request of my husband, but now I valued and took pride in my work.
“I have returned,” I announced to my head
attendant, as I always did upon returning home. But it was Lord Raublut who
came to greet me. I could not remember the last time he had welcomed me home,
if ever; as the Sovereign knight commander, he was at work more often than not.
“Oh my, Lord Raublut. Is everything okay?”
“There’s something I want to ask you in
private,” he said. “Come to my room before dinner.”
Now this was exceptionally
rare. I could only wonder what had caused all this. I went to my room to
change, then hurried to see my husband.
“Attendants, clear the room,” he said.
“Hortensia, hold this.”
I swallowed; we were at home, so his decision
to clear the room of attendants and use sound-blocking magic tools indicated
grave circumstances. Something quite severe must have happened.
“An ancient magic tool in the palace—one we
stopped supplying after the civil war, since it appeared not to be in use—has
completely dissolved.”
“A magic tool dissolved simply because it ran
out of mana? That is...”
If one stopped supplying a magic tool meant to
illuminate a room, the light would merely turn off. I had never heard of a
magic tool dissolving from neglect.
“Magic tools formed purely of magic, such as
foundations and those meant to protect buildings, apparently do break upon
running out of mana,” my husband explained.
“Oh, how terrible!” I cried. “Do you mean to
say that a building collapsed as well?!”
“Indeed. A small tower that was being used for
storage dissolved into white sand. It threw the palace into a frenzy. The
scholars are checking all of the remaining buildings to ensure that none of
them meet the same fate, while the royal family is supplying any
dangerous-seeming foundation they come across with mana.”
Lord Raublut spoke so flatly that one might
assume there was no frenzy at all, but one of the palace’s towers crumbling was
an enormously significant event.
He continued, “The king has declared that the
magic tools in the Royal Academy’s library must be checked as well. Now that we
know its archive contains valuable documents, we cannot afford to let it
collapse. Could you complete those checks before the Archduke Conference? Stay
in the library dormitory if you must. The royal family will supply any tools
that need mana during the conference.”
“Oh, I should not need to stay there. The
Royal Academy’s library is going to be fine. I investigated its magic tools
with Raimund, at Lady Rozemyne’s request. Its foundation equivalent was in
danger, but Lady Rozemyne refilled it using the mana left over from the
Dedication Ritual. You may let the Zent know.”
I had hoped to ease Lord Raublut’s concerns,
but his brow furrowed even deeper. “It was my understanding that magic tools
like the foundations required royal mana. Ah, but I suppose the royal family did participate in that Dedication Ritual. Did a portion of
the mana given belong to them, then...?”
I had desperately tried to restore the
library’s protective magic tool myself, only to panic when my best efforts did
nothing to change its color. Had the issue been my lack of royal mana, not the
size of my offering?
As I mentally took inventory of the library’s
magic tools, Lord Raublut raised an eyebrow in apparent realization.
“Hortensia... Librarians are scholars too, correct? Can I assume you have the
authority to enter the scholar building?”
“Hm? Oh, yes. Nobody who saw me enter would
consider it strange.”
To be frank, I doubted that anyone would
notice my entrance to begin with. The professors of the scholar course who
stayed at the Royal Academy between school terms instead of returning to the
Sovereignty were all too obsessed with their research to pay attention to
anything else.
“In that case, my apologies, but I would ask
you to check the scholar building alongside the library and the library
dormitory. Professors of the knight and attendant courses are quick to respond
to orders, but those of the scholar course still at the Royal Academy will
refuse to do anything but their research.”
I gave a wry smile and nodded; he had good
reason to be concerned. Ordering the scholars to check their building’s magic
tools before the royal family arrived for the Archduke Conference would achieve
painfully little. At best, they would procrastinate until the conference was
already upon them.
“During the Archduke Conference, the royal
family intends to visit the underground archive,” Lord Raublut informed me. “I
am sure you have preparations to make, so I must ask you to stay in the library
dormitory until then.”
“Very well. I shall accept this as an order
from the Zent.”
The day after my discussion with Lord Raublut,
I prepared to return to the library dormitory. I was to stay there until the
Archduke Conference, but with help from Raimund, I had already checked the use
and mana supply of the magic tools in the library. In the first place, each
building only had one foundation-esque tool.
I did not have much to do in preparation for
the Archduke Conference either. The rest area outside the archive would need to
be cleaned, I would need to consult with Solange on how far inside the library
dormitory the attendants preparing lunch and tea were permitted to go, then we
would need to find a resting spot for the accompanying retainers. We librarians
could not enter the archive ourselves, so we had to leave that to Schwartz and
Weiss.
“I suppose that gives me more time to focus on
repairs, and not having to think about my daily commute is nice, but... To be
honest, there is not nearly enough work to justify staying in the dormitory.”
Staying in the dormitory meant I could only
have one attendant with me, as even professors were limited in that regard. I
had chosen Dirmira, and we had more than enough luggage between us.
“Do you think Lord Raublut might be inviting
another woman to the house while you are absent?” she asked.
“Again with this? Have you forgotten just how
long we have been husband and wife?”
Dirmira had served me since before I married
Lord Raublut. We were the same age, and close friends. Her most unusual trait
was her long-standing disdain for my husband and his head attendant. No matter
how many years passed, her bizarre frustrations remained.
Immediately after my wedding to Lord Raublut,
his head attendant had approached me and said in no uncertain terms, “You would
do well to know that my lord already has someone he cannot forget.” His words
had come as no surprise to me, and they had meant just as little; I was not
seeking love to begin with.
Dirmira, on the other hand, was still angry
about it. “What a thing to say to a bride visiting her new home for the first
time!” she seethed, no less furious than when she had witnessed it. “When it
comes time for me to ascend the towering stairway, I will raise
a complaint with the gods!”
“And I am sure they will find your
vindictiveness just as troubling as I do.”
We teleported to the Royal Academy via a
circle in the royal palace, then started walking from the central building to
the library dormitory. Along the way, we happened upon knights of the Sovereign
Order. At their head was Loyalitat, the vice commander.
“Oh my. Lord Loyalitat.”
“Lady Hortensia. It has been too long. I...
heard you were assigned to the Royal Academy’s library, but what brings you
here with luggage and an attendant?”
“By royal decree, I will be staying in the
library dormitory until the Archduke Conference. I am to investigate some magic
tools.”
He nodded, having immediately understood me.
“The commander did return home for that purpose, now that you mention it. We
are quite busy ourselves; on top of all the incidents we have to deal with
these days, we no longer have you to assist the commander with his paperwork.”
He shrugged and added, “He always puts it off whenever he can.”
A smile crept onto my lips. “I wish you all
the best of luck,” I said.
I had married Lord Raublut after losing both
my lord and my life as a retainer. By then, I was too old to bear children,
leaving me with little else to do but assist my husband with his paperwork and
start brewing rejuvenation potions and magic tools.
“And what brings you here?” I asked. “It is
rare to see you all at the Royal Academy.”
“We are revising our security in the run-up to
the Archduke Conference. There is less to do compared to last year, when we had
to keep our sights on Old Werkestock’s dormitory on top of everything else,
but... as you may know, Lady Rozemyne is to perform this year’s Starbind
Ceremony as the High Bishop. We need to review our plans with that in mind, and
work out the details with the Sovereign temple.”
The Sovereign High Bishop was furious about
the situation, especially because the Sovereign High Priest was looking to
permanently replace him with a mana-rich archduke candidate for the sake of
reviving the old ceremonies. The Sovereign temple had thus divided into two
factions: those who supported the High Bishop, who refused to let the nobles
steal away the last few duties they had; and those who supported the High
Priest, who was determined to exploit the nobility for the sake of reviving the
old rituals and restoring the temple to its former glory.
“Lady Rozemyne is coming to the Archduke
Conference to serve as High Bishop?” I repeated. “Oh my. This is news to me.” I
had known that she was coming to transcribe and translate documents in the
underground archive, but this was my first time hearing about her plans to
perform the Starbind Ceremony.
“At the royal family’s request, I am told.
They wish for Prince Sigiswald to receive a true blessing during his
Starbinding, since he is to become the next king. Accommodating this sudden
turn of events has been no easy feat.”
“Hold on,” one of the knights interjected. “I
thought Lady Rozemyne demanded to serve as High Bishop so she could show the
Sovereign temple what real blessings were like.”
“What?! Who told you that?!” another knight
barked. “Her only requests were for the royal family to obtain the Sovereign
temple’s agreement and increase security for the event. It was the least they
could do, after all.”
“Do you not think it presumptuous that she
made demands of the royal family?”
“Come on. It’s obvious that Lady Rozemyne’s
arrival will cause a stir of some kind. Anyone in her position would make the
same requests.”
I stared at the quarreling knights for a
moment, then said, “It would appear that even the Sovereign Knight’s Order is
experiencing a communication failure. You share neither knowledge nor
opinions.”
Those of the Knight’s Order were always given
the same, consolidated intelligence so that they could obey the Zent’s will
without hesitation. Public discourse meant nothing to them; they were only
concerned with the opinions of the throne.
“The Knight’s Order is in partial disarray at
the moment,” Lord Loyalitat explained. I was not privy to the details, but it
had reached my ear that a few Sovereign knights had gone rogue during the
winter. “It has become increasingly common for even the commander to act alone,
I would assume as the result of confidential orders from the Zent. He wanted to
perform the preliminary investigation of that villa on his own, and only a few
of us were informed about his plan to return home to communicate the Zent’s
will to you.”
“My, my... I understand the need to keep
intelligence confidential, but how can you knights relax when your commander is
acting in such a manner...?” It seemed that mutual distrust was running rampant
throughout the Sovereign Knight’s Order.
“Lady Hortensia, perhaps you should be wary of
staying at the Academy for such an extended period,” one of the knights said.
“The commander might bring another woman home.”
“You believe so too?!” exclaimed not I, but my
attendant Dirmira.
The knight froze. “Er, my apologies. I was
only speaking in jest...”
“But you would not have said it without good
cause. Am I wrong?” she demanded, causing the knights to all step back.
“Um, Lady Hortensia...” Lord Loyalitat said,
“did something happen between you and the commander?”
“A few rude words were spoken more than a
decade ago, after we married. That is all. Dirmira has been like this ever
since.”
The vice commander stifled a laugh by clearing
his throat, then turned to my attendant. “Fear not. There is nothing to be
concerned about. Lord Raublut is a loyal husband.”
Lord Loyalitat went on to explain that, around
this time last year, a horde of feybeasts had appeared while the Order was
investigating Old Werkestock. The knights had participated in slaying them.
“We needed to do battle to progress our
investigation,” he said, “but, well... There are some knights who require the
comfort of a woman after such vicious fighting. Ahrensbach’s first wife
informed us that Schlaftraum’s flowers were blooming wonderfully that year,
then took us to a private location. As the knights chose their women, Lord
Raublut pointed to a vase filled with white flowers. He said they were so
beautiful that he would rather have them instead.”
“I think we can all agree that Lord Raublut
would never take an interest in flowers,” Dirmira
snapped, evidently skeptical. “Were they truly to his tastes?”
The knights scrunched up their faces, trying
not to burst out laughing. Lord Loyalitat alone maintained a completely
straight face as he said, “Most likely. It seemed to me that he had a strong
sentimental attachment to them.” The vice commander certainly had an iron will.
I paused. “That said, I do not recall Lord
Raublut bringing any white flowers home. Do you, Dirmira?” They surely would
have stood out, but neither one of us had seen any.
“Perhaps he was hesitant to bring home flowers
he obtained elsewhere?” Lord Loyalitat ventured.
“To think he was capable of such
consideration...”
“Well, they were in a vase, were they not?”
Dirmira said. “They must have just withered. He is trying to deceive you, Lady
Hortensia.”
I came close to a chuckle but managed to stop
myself.
Lord Loyalitat shook his head, wearing a
guilty smile. “Believe what you will, but the commander is loyal to his wife.
You have my word. Lady Hortensia, I will ensure that the knights do not speak
out of turn again.”
After making the knights apologize, the vice
commander took his leave, clearly eager to part with Dirmira. Even as we
resumed our journey to the library, she looked entirely unconvinced.
As expected, it did not take long at all to
inspect the magic tools in the library and the scholar building. I noted down
and reported the location and mana quantity of each place’s foundation
equivalent, then got to work airing out and repairing documents from the second
closed-stack archive.
“Solange, these documents are frequently
borrowed,” I said. “What say we move them to the reading room?”
“A fine suggestion. It certainly is
time-consuming having to unlock the door every time someone wishes to borrow
them.”
We had Schwartz and Weiss reregister the
documents’ location, then arranged them on the shelves in the reading room.
“Several years ago, I would never have
imagined that so many professors would one day return to prewar lesson plans,”
Solange mused aloud. “Could it be that Professor Fraularm influenced them?”
“It speaks to how much Yurgenschmidt has
calmed down that the coursework of executed professors can finally be used,” I
replied. Indeed, it was wonderful, but the documents that had already been lost
would never return. The archive was far emptier than when I was at the Royal
Academy.
“User. Here.”
“Guiding user.”
The two shumils had suddenly spoken. Only the
professors of the scholar course came to the library at this time; which one of
them was here now? They often made unreasonable demands of Solange, who was
only a mednoble, so I decided to step forward.
“I shall welcome them in the entrance hall,” I
said. “Solange, continue your work here.”
I made my way out of the reading room and
opened the door in the entrance hall. Then, after a short wait, a group clad in
black capes arrived. But these were no professors.
“Oh, Prince Anastasius. What brings you here?”
I asked, taken aback by his unexpected appearance. He had not given any notice
and was with only a small group of retainers, which suggested that he was
visiting in secret. “Could it be that you are here to supply mana to the
scholar building?”
The prince shook his head. “No, there is
something urgent I want you to investigate. Do you have somewhere we can speak
in private?”
“In that case, the office would do better than
the reading room.”
I guided them inside, at which point Prince
Anastasius made his retainers step back and gave me a sound-blocking magic
tool. He did not want even his own entourage to hear us, which made me
understandably nervous.
“I do not want to involve the Knight’s Order
in this matter,” he said. “I am aware that your husband was the reason you
became a librarian, but first, I must ask you to sign these.” He put two magic
contracts before me, one a declaration of my loyalty to the king and the other
a vow of secrecy. How troubling.
“I am afraid that I cannot sign the contract
swearing my loyalty to the king.”
“You cannot?!” Prince Anastasius barked,
wide-eyed, his voice mixed with surprise and anger. “Hortensia...!”
“When I became a librarian and a guardian of
knowledge, I vowed to obey Mestionora the Goddess of Wisdom. Swearing loyalty
to another, even the Zent, would violate our contract. I have no intention of
acting against the royal family... but I cannot sign that.”
“What is a ‘guardian of knowledge’?”
I did my best to explain.
“Thus,” I concluded, “I became a guardian of
knowledge both to obtain a key to the underground archive and to assist the royal
family with acquiring the Grutrissheit. Is my loyalty still not apparent? Will
you have me executed as the archlibrarians were after the civil war’s purge?”
I went on to note that the executed
archlibrarians had also been guardians of knowledge, which had prevented them
from signing magic contracts to prove their loyalty to the Zent.
Prince Anastasius stared at me in shock. “That
was not known to me... I shudder at our own mercilessness.”
“The librarians in question were from Old
Werkestock, so they were quickly deemed to be threats when they refused to
swear their loyalty to King Trauerqual. I am from Klassenberg, and my lord was
the late Prince Waldifrid; I can at least partially sympathize with the royal
family’s predicament back then.”
There had been a time when the royal family
faced one betrayal after another, to the point that they could no longer trust
any of the people around them. The circumstances had necessitated extreme
caution toward those of enemy duchies, and it was reasonable to be wary of
those who could not even sign a loyalty contract.
“In any case,” I continued, “while it was your
family who ordered the purge, you were but a child at the time, not even old
enough to have been baptized. Although it is important to remember the past,
the blame for those deaths does not rest on your shoulders. But you are accountable for what happens next.”
Prince Anastasius glared at the contract. For
most, swearing loyalty to the king was simple, so this was presumably the first
time he had encountered an issue. It was clear as day that he was now racking
his brain for how to deal with someone who was obedient but unable to prove it.
“Prince Anastasius, while I cannot sign your
loyalty contract, I can at least sign this vow of silence.”
“That will do, then.”
Once the contract was signed, Prince
Anastasius told me that Sovereign knights had interrupted a Royal Academy
ditter game, even dragging students from lesser and middle duchies into the
mix. It was suspected that a plant known as trug was involved.
“A dangerous plant that gives off a sweet
smell when dried and burned, and which produces hallucinations, intoxication,
and disturbing memories...?”
“Yes,” the prince said. “That is what
Ehrenfest has told us, but we cannot act on their word alone. If we make our
accusation without evidence, some will say that Ehrenfest orchestrated it
themselves to move against the Sovereign Knight’s Order. Father has ordered me
to obtain the proof we require in complete secrecy.”
Many viewed Ehrenfest with hostility and
suspicion, but none more than my husband, Lord Raublut. His reason for sending
me to the library in the first place was to investigate the duchy’s intentions.
Prince Anastasius continued, “We had the
palace library scoured for information about the plant, but we found not even a
single mention. We did come across a lead, though—a
scholar older than fifty remembered being taught about trug by his herbology
professor. The professor retired before the scholar’s graduation. I raised this
with one of the palace librarians, and they replied that the Royal Academy’s
library was more likely to have documents relating to a professor’s studies.”
That librarian was correct; there was a much
better chance of a professor’s coursework being held in the Royal Academy than
the palace library. Still, it was surprising that the latter had contained not
even a single reference to the plant they were searching for; trug had to be
rare indeed.
“It is possible to find course-related
materials by specifying a professor,” I said. “And if we are fortunate enough
for this herbologist’s disciples to have preserved his documents, then we might
even come across the names of scholars who took his course. I do not expect
many to have taken a class specializing in rare herbs, but surely there were
some.”
“I see,” Prince Anastasius said. He appeared
to be hopeful, which simply would not do; I did not want him setting himself up
for disappointment.
“However,” I went on, “depending on where they
were born, it is more than likely that the professor and his disciples were
executed and the documents lost, especially with the complete lack of relevant
materials in the palace library. I will search everything, including study
guides left by students of other duchies, but there is no guarantee that I will
find what you seek.”
The executed archscholars had dedicated their
final moments to preserving as many documents as possible, but not everything
had ended up in the third archive. Solange had said it was only natural that
some would be missed.
“Just do all that you can. We are counting on
you.”
After saying farewell to Prince Anastasius, I
started identifying herbology professors with the help of Schwartz and Weiss.
Because I already knew the generation in which he had retired, finding the man
we were looking for was especially easy—as was finding the name of the disciple
who had inherited his work.
It was just as I suspected, though. The
disciple had already been executed.
Next, I went through every herbology document
in the reading room and the second closed-stack archive, hoping to see whether
anyone had continued the professor’s work. It appeared not. In fact, the new
lesson plan incorporated nothing from its predecessor; there were very few
descriptions of rare herbs, with the research instead focusing on how to grow
each duchy’s specialty herbs in other territories.
“I can only hope for success in the third
closed-stack archive...” I said to myself, making my way there with Schwartz
and Weiss. This third archive contained research documents from those executed
as political criminals.
Again, I searched through documents with
Schwartz and Weiss, but not a single one belonged to the professor. There were
no records about trug to be found.
“Hm... If the plant is so rare, could it have
been known by another name?” I changed my approach, this time searching for
records of anything that produced similar effects.
“Hortensia, here,” Weiss said, holding out a
document—specifically a diary from two hundred years ago. It described a drug
that seemed to tick the right boxes, most commonly used on women of a
particular position. One of the ingredients listed was “Schlaftraum’s flower,”
and that was it.
“Schlaftraum’s flower”? Is that still what they
call it in Ahrensbach?
Once again, I updated my search, but there
were no other mentions of Schlaftraum’s flowers being used as an ingredient for
a drug.
To think this is all that remains... Just how
many valuable documents were lost in the purge?
Once my investigation settled down, I sent
word to Prince Anastasius, then began to contemplate the state of my home. As
the commander of the Sovereign Knight’s Order, my husband was rarely ever
there, and my own absence made me wonder whether our attendants were having any
trouble guarding the place by themselves.
“I understand your concern,” Dirmira said. “It
makes me uneasy to leave anything in the hands of that head attendant.”
“How many times have I told you not to speak
about him like that?”
“You cannot count on him to tell you whether
Lord Raublut is bringing another woman into your house, Lady Hortensia.” All of
a sudden, there was an amused twinkle in her eye. “You know... This is an
opportunity. You could return home under the guise of having forgotten
something.”
She was right that Lord Raublut’s head
attendant would prioritize his lord over me—but there was nothing strange about
that, considering the length of their relationship.
Besides, Dirmira is exactly the same with me.
“I see no reason to do that. Go alone, if you
must. You have grown rather tired of dormitory life, have you not? I permit you
one day of leave to stock up on soap and makeup.”
After sending Dirmira home on business, I
would spend the day she was absent working in the library’s reading room.
“Welcome back, Dirmira,” I said upon her
return. “Was there another woman in my home, by chance?”
“Not a woman, no. The Sovereign High Priest.”
She had arrived to find my husband in some
manner of negotiation, wherein the Sovereign High Priest had apparently said,
“If you can promise me Ehrenfest’s flower in return, then...”
“I was only close when I poured them tea, so I
don’t know what their negotiation was about,” Dirmira informed me. “But your
husband was wearing a fake noble smile, even though he never usually smiles at
all. It made me believe he was forming some kind of evil scheme. He looked like
a villain, not a knight commander.”
I understood how she felt. Perhaps due to the
scar above his cheek, Lord Raublut’s face turned into something fiendish
whenever he smiled.
“For him to have gone to such lengths, it must
have been to do with work,” I said. “Lord Loyalitat said just the other day
that the Order has been engaged in more frequent negotiations with the
Sovereign temple as a result of the Starbind Ceremony.”
“That’s true, but such business is always
carried out by a group of knights. I thought it strange that Lord Raublut was
acting alone.”
Indeed, the Knight’s Order always had several
people take part in its negotiations and investigations; this helped to prevent
any subterfuge or personal feelings that might get in the way. I found it hard
to believe that my husband would violate that rule.
“Perhaps they were absent from the table
during the brief moment you were there,” I suggested.
“The number of cups suggested otherwise, and
the head attendant mentioned no other guests. Isn’t this suspicious?”
“You might think so, but why would he be
speaking to the Sovereign High Priest if not for work?” The royal family’s
relationship with the Sovereign temple had been strained ever since the civil
war—and my husband, as a servant of the Zent, had never been on good terms with
them either. The very idea that he had suddenly befriended and was casually
meeting with someone of the temple was laughable.
“Lord Loyalitat did say
that he has been operating on his own more as of late, which must have
something to do with his work. At the very least, the exchange I came across
did not seem romantic in nature.”
“Oh my, Dirmira. Whatever are you saying?”
We looked at each other and laughed. In any
case, I was relieved to know that everything was okay at home.
Before the Archduke Conference, Prince
Anastasius visited the library to ask about the results of my research. He
looked especially busy. I was handed a sound-blocker as we entered my office,
then I took a seat across from him.
“In conclusion, no records remain of the work
done by the professor in question,” I said. “His disciple was from Werkestock.”
“I see...” the prince replied, his shoulders
slumped. His eyes then wandered to the pile of documents beside me.
“I could not find any mention of a plant
called ‘trug’ in the Royal Academy’s library. However, by investigating records
of drugs and ingredients with similar effects, I was able to produce some
meaningful results.” I picked up one of the documents and turned to a page I
had bookmarked. “Prince Anastasius, are you familiar with Schlaftraum’s
flower?”
“No. But I assume that the decision to name
them after the God of Dreams, subordinate to the God of Life, is significant in
some way. A code, perhaps. Or some kind of euphemism.”
“Quite. This is a record from two hundred
years ago, when it seemed to be a euphemism for a drug ingredient. The drug was
used on select women who served as partners to the royal family and the aubs.”
I pointed at one line in particular. “The author of this diary wished to secure
the ingredient but was unable, for it was grown in a place that was not easily
accessible.”
Prince Anastasius looked it over, then
frowned. “And you believe this could be referring to trug?”
“I do, but I cannot say for sure. This was the
only mention of ‘Schlaftraum’s flowers’ being used as an ingredient for a drug.
From there, I started to investigate the term. As generations passed, it went
from being the name of an ingredient to a moniker for a certain group of women.
There are many more records of this latter usage.”
I pointed to various examples in another text
and read them aloud. “‘During the Archduke Conference, Aub Werkestock received
an invite marked with a white blossom—an invitation from one of Schlaftraum’s
flowers. How I wish to obtain one myself.’ And over here, ‘The second prince
sought one of Schlaftraum’s flowers but was refused.’”
I continued, “As I understand it, a
hundred-some years ago, there existed a facility where women would invite
archdukes and members of the royal family to bed with them. Those women were
known as Schlaftraum’s flowers. It is hard to say why they were named after an
ingredient for a drug. One theory is that they used the drug themselves, but
the truth remains uncertain.”
The prince grimaced in displeasure. Perhaps
the tale was too extreme for him, or he was too virtuous not to automatically
disapprove.
“Prince Anastasius, you might learn more about
the drug and its ingredients if you research Schlaftraum’s flowers in the
palace library. Or do you already have an idea? I was Prince Waldifrid’s
scholar for a very long time, but not once did I hear of such flowers or see a
blossom-marked invitation.” The records were only a hundred years old, but such
information had never come up in the royal palace, not even as a tale of the
past.
“Neither have I,” the prince replied. “I would
assume they are connected to flower offerings. Could the facility have been in
the Sovereign temple?”
“The Sovereign temple would not have had the
authority to serve only aubs and the royal family. Even professors of the Royal
Academy can enter as they please. Maybe things were different generations ago,
but any changes of that nature would absolutely be mentioned in the Sovereign
temple’s records.”
Any connection between Schlaftraum’s flowers
and the temple’s flower offerings would not be recorded in the Academy’s
library. Prince Anastasius must have taken the hint, because he smiled and
said, “I will research Schlaftraum’s flowers in the palace library. Your
assistance is appreciated.” But as he went to stand, I quickly called out.
“One moment, please. It would seem that the
term ‘Schlaftraum’s flowers’ now applies to the women given to knights after
battle.”
The prince frowned, clearly skeptical. “I have
never heard it used like that.” Neither the Knight’s Order nor Klassenberg had
ever used the term in that way either; it was new to me as well.
“I had not either until the other day. I was
told that last year, after the Knight’s Order slew the feybeasts that
interrupted their investigation into Old Werkestock, Ahrensbach used the term
to describe the women it provided.”
“Ahrensbach, you say?” Prince Anastasius
cocked an eyebrow. It was so unlike his previous reactions that I could not
help but blink at him curiously.
“Do you know something?”
“No, its mention merely surprised me. Erm...
what did the knights say? Did they see any rare plants in Ahrensbach or notice
any sweet-smelling smoke?”
I was about to say that he could ask them
himself when I remembered that he did not want to involve the Knight’s Order.
“My apologies, but it came up only briefly during an exchange of pleasantries.
That was several days ago, and I did not think it particularly important at the
time. My memory of the conversation is far from perfect, but I think they
said...”
Ahrensbach’s first wife had taken the knights
somewhere, saying that Schlaftraum’s flowers were blooming beautifully that
year. Lord Raublut had then refused to take part; he had wanted a vase of white
flowers instead.
“Hm. My apologies, but could you see whether
the term ‘Schlaftraum’s flower’ is common in Ahrensbach?”
“Would you have me ask the duchy’s knights?”
“No, nothing so blatant. Just, uh... broach
the subject casually and see how they react.”
That was easier said than done. I could engage
in pleasantries with fellow professors, Sovereign nobles, and those from my
home duchy, but how was I supposed to speak casually with nobles who never
visited the library in the first place?
“I do not expect anyone from Ahrensbach to
visit the library during the Archduke Conference,” I said, expressing my
doubts. “You want me to be discreet, but would it not be unnatural to ask them
to visit or wait for them by the entrance to the meeting rooms? If you would
not mind waiting until winter, I could ask the students, but I suspect the
children are all too young to be of any use.”
“I shall ensure that Detlinde or someone from
her retinue visits the library. Ask them when they arrive. And could you
possibly make it so that Rozemyne overhears your conversation? That girl
manages to pick up information from the strangest places.”
I could understand why he wanted to involve
Lady Rozemyne; her insights were always so strange yet intriguingly nuanced.
“How am I to ask, though? I cannot just
mention Schlaftraum’s flowers out of the blue.” To those from Ahrensbach, the
term seemed to refer to women of a particular role. It was not something to
mention lightly.
“Simply express your displeasure that your
husband was introduced to and even took flowers from another woman. That would
seem natural enough.”
“Would it...?”
“Hortensia. Your husband
took flowers from another woman. Even now, I imagine you are struggling
to maintain your composure.”
Oho, I see. Were he in my shoes, Prince
Anastasius would surely be losing his mind right now. How cute.
I often heard rumors about the prince’s
intense love for Lady Eglantine, but this was my first time actually witnessing
it. It was so... innocent. And youthful in a way that warmed my heart.
“Perhaps I could mimic you and pretend to be
envious,” I said. “Embarrassingly enough, I did not actually mind in the least;
in fact, I was pleased that he received some flowers to his liking.”
“Why do Klassenberg women always react like
that?! Some jealousy is important for a couple! Your husband received white
flowers from another woman, and gazed upon them sentimentally! It is clear
that...”
Thus began a passionate lecture from the
lovestruck prince.
I cleared my throat, interrupting Lady
Detlinde’s high-pitched cackling. “Lady Detlinde, if you would allow me to ask
a question...” Then, in a voice clear enough for Lady Rozemyne to hear me: “Are
Schlaftraum’s flowers blossoming as beautifully as ever this year?”
“‘Schlaftraum’s flowers’?”
“Oh, are you not familiar with them? They can
only be obtained in Ahrensbach, and my husband is rather fond of them. Do ask
Lady Georgine about them when you next get the chance.”
Lady Detlinde had not the only blank face;
even her older, male guard knights were nonplussed. They wore looks not of
outrage that I would mention such a topic to a young woman but of mild
confusion, as though they had no idea what I was referring to. It was strange.
Is the term used only by those close to Lady
Georgine, the first wife of Ahrensbach?
Immediately after my investigation, there was
an incident in the underground archive. Then, during the Archduke Conference
proper, a string of unexpected developments shook Yurgenschmidt to its very
core. Suffice to say, I did not have a chance to report my modest findings to
Prince Anastasius before the conference’s conclusion.
I imagine he will summon me again once things
calm down.
Feeling more at ease, I cleaned the library
with Solange, focusing in particular on the rest area by the underground
archive—which had been especially busy—and the waiting room where the retainers
unable to enter the archive had stayed. I also organized the office, tidied my
room in the library dormitory, and supplied Schwartz and Weiss with mana. The
entire process took several days.
It was not long before my time in the library
dormitory came to an end. I returned home with Dirmira... and immediately upon
my arrival, Lord Raublut summoned me to his room.
“Hortensia. Who told you about Schlaftraum’s
flowers?”
Afterword
Hello again, it’s Miya Kazuki. Thank you very
much for reading Ascendance of a Bookworm: Part 5 Volume 5.
This volume’s prologue was written from
Bonifatius’s perspective. Despite being retired, he has been training the guard
knights at Rozemyne’s request, helping with administrative work in the castle,
and even educating Wilfried for when he becomes the archduke. He’s such a
considerate grandfather.
The main story began with Melchior and the
other children performing the fealty ceremony with Rozemyne naturally serving
as the High Bishop. She participated in the same ceremony as a commoner all the
way back at the start of Part 2. She sure has grown a lot since then, hasn’t
she?
This volume was all about the Archduke
Conference, where members of the royal family and aubs from every duchy come
together. Those who are underage are usually not allowed to attend, but
Rozemyne was summoned to serve as High Bishop for the Starbind Ceremony and to
translate the documents in the underground archive. Getting to speak with
Hannelore after so long was a rare source of comfort during these trying times.
Rozemyne fled the library to get away from
Detlinde, stumbled upon a shrine, then obtained a tablet of a divine color.
There sure was a lot going on! After that chapter, many readers of the web
novel version said that they wanted to know the words given by the gods, so I
made sure to include them in the light novel.
From there, Rozemyne transformed into the
merchant saint and took on Sigiswald, fighting to delay her adoption by a year
and save Ferdinand from punishment by association. I think that chapter made it
very clear how much of an influence Ferdinand and Benno have had on Rozemyne’s
growth... though it’s hard to say how they would have reacted to seeing her in
action! Would they have given her a thump on the head and cried, “You
cannot/can’t use those techniques against a prince!” Or would they have praised
her for a job well done? (Hahahaha.)
This time, the epilogue was written from
Hildebrand’s perspective. As you might have noticed, he’s in love with Rozemyne
and displeased with his current engagement. He’s desperate to have his wishes
come true, but he’s young and doesn’t yet understand what’s happening around
him. What’s going to happen now that he mentioned Schlaftraum’s flowers to
Raublut?
The first original short story in this volume
was from Adolphine’s perspective. I focused on how she feels about Sigiswald
and the events that followed their wedding. She hasn’t been thrilled about her political
marriage from the start, as she wished to become the next Aub Drewanchel. How
does her husband approach such a delicate situation...?
The second short story was written from
Hortensia’s perspective. It began with Raublut asking her to stay in the
library dormitory to prepare for the Archduke Conference. She then investigated
trug at Anastasius’s orders, during which she found a connection to
Schlaftraum’s flowers.
Magdalena was the only character to receive a
design for this volume. She’s the Zent’s third wife, Hildebrand’s mother, and a
true Dunkelfelgerian. The moment she learned that Heisshitze and the others had
convinced her father to marry her to Ferdinand, whom they were desperate to
bring into their duchy, she “proposed” to Trauerqual and secured an engagement
with the royal family all on her own. She’s quite strong.
This volume’s cover art represents the
circling of the Royal Academy’s shrines. It includes three members of the royal
family, the divine-colored slates, and one of the shrines, though you can’t
really see it behind the title. Rozemyne isn’t wearing her usual school attire
either, since it’s the Archduke Conference and the end of spring. Compared to
her black uniform, her colorful getup is so fresh and cute!
The color illustration depicts work in the
underground archive. There’s Rozemyne, Magdalena, Hildebrand, and Hannelore.
This was Hannelore’s first appearance in the story in quite a bit, so I made
sure to ask that she be included. Thank you, Shiina-sama.
And finally, my utmost thanks to everyone who
read this book. May we meet again in Part 5 Volume 6.
January 2021, Miya Kazuki



















